CORNELL
UNIVERSITY
LIBRARY
GIFT OF
George B. Wakeley
Cornell University Library
arV16504
Elements of military art and science, or
3 1924 031 426 327
olin.anx
Cornell University
Library
The original of tliis book is in
tine Cornell University Library.
There are no known copyright restrictions in
the United States on the use of the text.
http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924031426327
ELEMENTS
MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE :
OK,
COURSE OF INSTRUCTION
STRATEGY, FORTIFICATION, TACTICS OF BATTLES, &e
EMBRACING
THE DUTIES OF STAFF, INFANTRY, CAVALRY,
ARTILLERY, AND ENGINEERS.
ADAPTED TO THE USE OF
VOLUNTEERS AND MILITIA.
3ttOX& ffibifiotr.
WITH CEITICAL NOTES ON THE MEXICAN AND CEIMEAN WAES.
BY
H. WAGER HALLECK, A. M.,
I.ATK OAPT. OF SNGIHEEBS, F. S. AKUY.
NEW YORK:
D. APPLETON & COMPANY,
846 & 848 BEOADWAT.
LONDON: 16 LITTLE BRITAIN.
1860.
Entered, according to the Act of Congress, in the year 1846,
By D. APPLETON & COMPANY,
In the Clerk's OfBce of the District Court of the United States for the Sonlhem
District of New Yorlc.
CONTENTS.
Fagk
Preface ■•••■ • 5
Cbaptrr I. Ihtrobuction.— Dr. Wayland's Arguments on the Justifiable
ness of War briefly examined 7
II. STRATEQY.^General Divisions of the Art. — Rules for planning
a Campaign. — Analysis of the Military Operations of Na-
poleon 35
UI. Fortifications.— Their Importance in the Defence of States
proved by numerous Historical Examples 61
IV. Logistics.— Subsistence. — Forage. — Marches.— Convoys. — Cas-
trametation 88
v. Tactics.— The Twelve Orders of Battle, with Examples of
each. — Different Formations of Infantry, Cavalry, Artillery,
and Engineers on the Field of Battle, with the Modes of
bringing Troops into action 114
VI. Military Polity. — The Means of National Defence best suited
to the character and condition of a Country, with a brief Ac-
count of those adopted by the several European Powers . • > ■ 135
VII. Defence of our Sea-coast. — Brief Description of our Mari-
time Fortifications, with an Examination of the several Con-
tests that have taken place between Ships and Forts, inclu-
ding the Attack on San Juan d'Ulloa, and on St. Jean
d'Acre 155
VIII. Our Northern Frontier Defences.— Brief Description of
the Fortifications on the Frontier, and an analysis of our
Northern Campaigns 210
IX. Armt Organization.— Staff and Administrative Corps.^Their
History, Duties, Numbers, and Organization 235
X. Army Oroanizatiok.— -Infantry and Cavalry. — ^Their History,
Duties, Numbers, and Organization • • • < • 256
XI. Army Organization.— Artillery,— Its History and Organiza-
tion, with a Brief Notice of the dififerent kinds of Ordnance,
the Manufacture of Projectiles, &c 275
XII. Army Organization. — Engineers.- Their History, Duties, and
Organization,-'with a Brief Discussion, showing their im-
portance as a part of a modem Army Organization 300
4
CONTENTS.
Fads
Chap. XIII. Permanent Fortifications. HLstoTlcal Notice of the progress
of this Art.— Description of- the several parts of a Fortress,
and the various Methods of fortifying a Position 327
XIV. Field Engineerinq. — Field Fortifications. — Military Commani-
cations.— Military Bridges. — Sapping, Mining, and the Attack
and Defence of a Fortified Place 342
XV. Military Education.— Military Schools of France, Prussia,
Austria, Russia, England, &c. — ^Washington's Reasons for
establishing the VTest Point Academy.— Rules of Appoint-
mentand Promotion in Foreign Services. — Absurdity and In-
justice of onr own System 378
Explanation of Plates 409
PREFACE-
The following pages were hastily thrown together in
the form of lectures, and delivered, during the past winter,
before the Lowell Institute of Boston. They were writ-
ten without the slightest intention of ever publishing them ;
but several officers of militia, who heard them delivered,
or afterwards read them in manuscript, desire their publi-
cation, on the ground of their being useful to a class of
officers now likely to be called into military service. It
is with this view alone that they are placed in the hands
of the printer. No pretension is made to originality in
any part of the work ; the sole object having been to em
body, in a small compass, well established military princi-
ples, and to illustrate these by reference to the events
of past history, and the opinions and practice of the best
generals.
Small portions of two or three of the following chap-
ters have already appeared, in articles furnished by the
author to the New York and Democratic Reviews, and in
a " Report on the Means of National Defence," published
by order of Congress.
H. W. H.
May, 1846.
ELEMENTS
MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER I.
INTRODUCTION.
Our distance from the old world, and the favorable cir-
cumstances in which we have been placed with respect
to the other nations of the new world, have made it so
easy for our government to adhere to a pacific policy, that,
in the sixty-two years that have elapsed since the ac-
knowledgment of our national independence, we have en-
joyed more than fifty-eight of general peace ; our Indian
border wars have been too limited and local in their char-
acter to seriously affect the other parts of the country, or
to disturb the general conditions of peace. This fortunate
state of things has done much to dififuse knowledge, pro-
mote commerce, agriculture, and manufactures ; in fine, to
increase the greatness of the nation and the happiness of
the individual. Under these circumstances our people
have grown up with habits and dispositions essentially
pacific, and it is to be hoped that these feelings may not
soon be changed. But in all communities opinions some-
times run into extremes ; and there are not a few among
us who, dazzled by the beneficial results of a long peace,
have adopted the opinion that war in any case is not only
useless, but actually immoral ; nay, more, that to engage
in war is wicked in the highest degree, and even brutish.
8 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
All modern ethical writers regard unjust war as not only
immoral, but as one of the greatest of crimes — murder on
a large scale. Such are all wars of mere ambition, en-
gaged in for the purpose of extending regal power ol
national sovereignty; wars of plunder, carried on from
mercenary motives ; wars of propagandisra, undertaken
for the unrighteous end of compelling men to adopt certain
religious or political opinions, whether from the alleged
motives of " introducing a more orthodox religion," or of
" extending the area of freedom." Such wars are held in
just abhorrence by all moral and religious people : and
this is believed to be the settled conviction of the great
mass of our own citizens.
But in addition to that respectable denomination of
Christians who deny our right to use arms under any cir-
cumstances, there are many religious enthusiasts in other
communions who, from causes already noticed, have
adopted the same theory, and hold all wars, even those in
self-defence, as unlawful and immoral. This opinion has
been, within the last few years, pressed on the piiblic with
great zeal and eloquence, and many able pens have been
enlisted in its cause. One of the most popular, and by
some regarded one of the most able writers on moral
science, has adopted this view as the only one consonant
with the principles of Christian morality.
It has been deemed proper, in commencing a course of
lectures on war, to make a few introductory remarks re-
specting this question of its justifiableness. We know of no
better way of doing this than to give on the one side the ob-
jections to war as laid down in Dr. Wayland's Moral Phi-
losophy, and on the other side the arguments by which
other ethical writers have justified a resort to war. We do not
select Dr. Wayland's work for the purpose of criticizing so
distinguished an author ; but because he is almost the only
writer on ethics who advocates these views, and because
INTRODUCTION. 9
the main arguments against war are here given in brief
space, and in more moderate and temperate language than
that used by most of his followers; I shall give his argu-
ments in his own language.
" I. All wars are contrary to the revealed will of God."
It is said in reply, that if the Christian religion con-
demns all wars, no matter how just the cause, or how ne-
cessary for self-defence, we must expect to find in the
Bible some direct prohibition of war, or at least a prohibi-
tion fairly implied in other direct commandments. But
the Bible nowhere prohibits war : in the Old Testament
we find war and even conquest positively commanded, and
although war was ragiflg in the world in the time of Christ
and his apostles, still they said not a word of its unlawful-
ness and immorality. Moreover, the fathers of the church
amply acknowledge the right of war, and directly assert,
that when war is justly declared, the Christian may en-
gage in it either by stratagem or open force. If it be of
that highly wicked and immoral character which some
have recently attributed to it, most assuredly it would be
condemned in the Bible in terms the most positive and
unequivocal.
But it has been said that the use of the sword is either
directly or typically forbidden to the Christian, by such
passages as " Thou shalt not kill," (Deut. v. 17,) " I say
unto you, that ye resist not evil : but whosoever shall
smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other also,"
(Matt. V. 39,) "Sfcc. If these passages are to be taken as
literal commands, as fanatics and religious enthusiasts
would have us believe, not only is war unlawful, but also
all our penal statutes, the magistracy, and all the institu-
tions of the state for the defence of individual rights, the
protection of the innocent, and the punishment of the
guilty. But if taken in conjunction with the whole Bible,
we must infer that they are hyperbolical expressions, used
10 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
lo impress strongly on our minds the general principle of
love and forgiveness, and that, so far as possible, we over-
come evil with good. Can any sober-minded man sup-
pose, for a moment, that we are commanded to encou-
rage the attacks of the wicked, by literally turning the
left cheek when assaulted on the right, and thus in-
duce the assailant to commit more wrong? Shall we in-
vite the thief and the robber to persevere in his depreda-
tions, by literally giving him a cloak when he takes our
coat ; and the insolent and the oppressor to proceed in
his path of crime, by going two miles with him if he bid
us to go one ?
Again, if the command, " Thou shalt not kill," is to be
taken literally, it not only prohibits us from engaging in
just war, and forbids the taking of human life by the
stale, as a punishment for crime ; it also forbids, says Dr;
Leiber, our taking the life of any animal, and even ex-
tends to the vegetable kingdom,-— for undoubtedly plants
have life, and are liable to violent death — to be killed.
But Dr. Wayland concedes to individuals the right to
take vegetable and animal life, and to society the right to
punish murder by death. This passage undoubtedly
means, thou shalt not unjustly kill, — thou shalt do no
murder ; and so it is rendered in our prayer-books. It
cannot have reference to war, for on almost the next page
we find the Israelites commanded to go forth an^ smite
the heathen nations,-^to cast them out of the land, — to
utterly destroy them, — to show them no mercy, &c. If
these passages of the Bible are to be taken literally, there
is no book which contains so many contradictions ; but if
taken in connection with the spirit of other passages, we
shall find that we are permitted to use force in preventing
or punishing crime, whether in nations or in individuals ;
but that we should combine love with justice, and free
our hearts from all evil motives.
INTRODUCTION. 11
II. All wars are unjustifiable, because " God commands
us to love every man, alien or citizen, Samaritan or Jew,
as ourselves ; and the act neither of society nor of gov-
ernment can render it our duty to violate this command."
It is true that no act of society can make it our duty to
violate any command of God : but is the above command
to be taken literally, and as forbidding us to engage in
just war ? Is it not rather intended to impress upon us,
in a forcible manner, that mutual love is a great virtue ;
that we should hate no one, not even a stranger nor an
enemy, but should treat all with justice, mercy, and
loving-kindness ? If the meaning attempted to be given
to this command in the above quotation be the true one, it
is antagonistical not only to just war, but to civil justice,
to patriotism, and to the social and domestic affections.
But are we bound to love all human beings alike ; that
is, to the same degree ? Does the Bible, as a whole, in-
culcate such doctrine ? On the contrary, Christ himself
had his beloved disciple, — one whom he loved pre-emi-
nently, and above all the others ; though he loved the
others none the less on that account. We are bound to
love our parents, our brothers, our families first, and above
all other human beings ; but we do not, for this reason,
love others any the less. A man is not only permitted to
seek first the comfort and happiness of his own family,
but if he neglect to do so, he is worse than an infidel.
We are bound to protect our families against the attacks
of others ; and, if necessary for the defence of their
lives, we are permitted to take the life of the assailant ;
nay more, we are bound to do so. But it does not follow
that we hate him whom we thus destroy. On the con-
trary, we may feel compassion, and even love for him.
The magistrate sentences the murderer to suffer the pen-
alty of the law ; and the sheriff carries the sentence into
execution by taking, in due form, the life of the prisoner ,•
12 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
nevertheless, both the magistrate and the sheriff may have
the kindest feelings towards him whom they thus deprive
of life.
So it is in' the external affairs of the state. Next to
my kindred and my neighbors do I love my countrymen.
I love them more than I do foreigners, because my in-
terests, my feelings, my happiness, my ties of friendship
and affection, bind me to them more intimately than to the
foreigner. I sympathize with the oppressed Greek, and
the enslaved African, and willingly contribute to their
relief, although their sufferings affect me very remotely ;
but if my own countrymen become oppressed and en-
slaved, nearer and dearer interests are affected, and pecu-
liar duties spring from the ties and affections which God
has formed. If my countrymen be oppressed, my neigh-
bors and kindred will be made unhappy and suffering ;
this I am bound to take all proper measures in my power
to prevent. If the assailant cannot be persuaded by ar-
gument to desist from his wicked intentions, I unite with
my fellow-citizens in forcibly resisting his aggressions.
In doing this I am actuated by no feelings of hatred to-
wards the hostile forces ; I have in my heart no malice,
no spirit of revenge ; I have no desire to harm indi-
viduals, except so far as they are made the instruments
of oppression. But as instruments of evil, I am bound
to destroy their power to do harm. I do not shoot at my
military enemy from hatred or revenge ; I fight against
him because the paramount interests of my country can-
not be secured without destroying the instnunent by
which they are assailed. I am prohibited from exercising
any personal cruelty ; and after the battle, or as soon as
the enemy is rendered harmless, he is to be treated with
kindness, and to be taken care of equally with the wound '
ed friend. All conduct to the contrary is regarded by
civilized nations with disapprobation.
INTRODUCTION. 13
That war does not properly beget personal malignity,
but that, on the contrary, the effects of mutual kindness
and courtesy on the battle-field, frequently have a bene-
ficial influence in the political events of after years, may
be shown by innumerable examples in all history. Soult
and Wellington were opposing generals in numerous bat-
tles ; but when the former visited England in 1838, he
was received by Wellington and the whole British nation
with the highest marks of respect ; and the mutual warmth
of feeling between these two distinguished men has con-
tributed much to the continuance of friendly relations be
tween the two nations. And a few years ago, when we
seemed brought, by our civil authorities, almost to the
brink of war by the northeastern boundary difficulties, the
pacific arrangements concluded, through the intervention
of General Scott, between the Governors of Maine and
New Brunswick, were mainly due to ancient friendships
contracted by officers of the contending armies during our
last war with Great Britain.
III. " It is granted that it would be better for man in
general, if wars were abolished, and all means, both of
offence and defence, abandoned. Now, this seems to me
to admit, that this is the law under which God has created
man. But this being admitted, the question seems to be
at an end ; for God never places man under circumstances
in which it is either wise, or necessary, or innocent, to
violate his laws. Is it for the advantage of him who lives
among a community of thieves, to steal ; or for one who
lives among a community of liars, to lie 1"
The fallacy of the above argument is so evident that it
is scarcely necessary to point out its logical defects.
My living among a community of thieves would not
justify me in stealing, and certainly it would be no reason
why I should neglect the security of my property. My
living among murderers would not iustify me in commit
14 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
ting murder, and on the other hand it would be no reason
why I should not fight in the defence of iny family, if the
arm of the law were unable to protect them. That other
nations carry on unjust wars is no reason why we should
do likewise, nor is it of itself any reason why we should
neglect the means of self-defence.
It may seem, to us short-sighted mortals, better that we
were placed in a world where there were no wars, or
murders, or thefts ; but God has seen fit to order it other-
wise. Our duties and our relations to our fellow-men are
made to suit the world as it is, and not such a world as
we would make for ourselves.
We live among thieves : we must therefore resort to
force to protect our property— that is, to locks, and bars,
and bolts ; we build walls thick and high^etween the
robber and our merchandise. And more : we enact laws
for his punishment, and employ civil officers to forcibly
seize the guilty and inflict that degree of punishment
necessary for the prevention of other -thefts and robberies.
We live among murderers : if neither the law nor the
ordinary physical protections suffice for the defence of our
own lives and the lives of our .innocent friends, we forci-
bly resist the murderer, even to his death, if need be.
Moreover, to deter others from like crimes, we inflict the
punishment of death upon him who has already taken
life.
These relations of individuals and of society are laid
down by all ethical writers as in accordance with the
strictest rules of Christian morality. Even Dr. Wayland
considers it not only the right, but the duty of individuals
and of society to resort to these means, and to enact these
laws for self-protection. Let us extend the same course
of reasoning to the relations of different societies.
We live among nations who frequently wage imjusi
wars ; who, disregarding the rights of others, oppress
INTRODUCTION. 15
and rob, and even murder their citizens, in order to reach
some unrighteous end. As individuals, we build fences
and walls for the protection of our grounds and our mer-
chandise^ so, as a nation, we build ships and forts to
protect our commerce, our harbors, and our cities. But
the walls of our houses and stores are useless, unless
made so strong and high that the robber cannot break
through or scale them without great effort and personal
danger ; so our national ships and forts would be utterly
useless for protection, unless fully armed and equipped.
Further : as individuals and as societies we employ
civil officers for the protection of our property and lives,
and, when necessary, arm them with the physical means
of executing the laws, even though the employment of
these means should cost human life. The prevention and
punishment of crime causes much human suffering ; nev-
ertheless the good of community requires that crime
should be prevented and punished. So, as a nation, we
employ military officers to man our ships and forts, to pro-
tect our property and our persons, and to repel and punish
those who seek to rob us of our life, liberty, and pursuit
of happiness. National aggressions are far more terrible
in their results than individual crime ; so also the means
of prevention and punishment are far more stupendous,
and the employment of these means causes a far greater
amount of human suffering. This may be a good reason
for greater caution in resorting to such means, but assuredly
it is no argument against the moral right to use them.
IV. War is unjustifiable because imnecessary :
" 1st. The very fact that a nation relied solely upon the
justice of its measures, and the benevolence of its con-
duct, would do more than any thing else to prevent the
occurrence of injury. The moral sentiment of every com-
munity would rise in opposition to injury inflicted upon
the just, the kind, and the merciful."
16 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
The moral duty of nations in this respect is the same
as that of individuals. Active benevolence and forbear-
ance should be employed, so far as may be proper ; but
there are points at which forbearance ceases to be a vir-
tue. If we entirely forbear to punish the thief, the rob-
ber, and the murderer, think you that crime will be dimin-
ished? Reason and experience prove the contrary.
Active benevolence and kindness should always attend
just punishment, but they were never designed to prohibit
it. The laws of God's universe are founded on justice as
well as love. " The moral sentiment of every community
rises in opposition to injury inflicted upon the just, the
kind, and the merciful;" but this fact does not entirely
prevent wicked men from robbing and murdering innocent
persons, and therefore wise and just laws require that
criminals shall be punished, in order that those who are
dead to all moral restraints may be deterred from crime
through fear of punishment.
" 2d. But suppose the [national] injury to be done. I
reply. The proper appeal for moral beings, upon moral
questions, is not to physical force, but to the consciences
of men. Let the wrong be set forth, but be set forth in
the spirit of love ; and in this manner, if in any, will the
consciences of men be aroused to justice."
Argument, and " appeals to the consciences of men"
should always be resorted to in preference to " physical
force ;'' but when they fail to deter the wicked, force
must be employed. I may reason with the robber and
the murderer, to persuade him to desist from his attempt
to rob my house, and murder my family ; but if he refuse
to listen to moral appeals, I employ physical force, — I
call in the strong arm of the law to assist me ; and if no
other means can be found to save innocent life that is as-
sailed, the life of the assailant must be sacrificed.
"If," says Puffendorf, "someone treads the laws of
INTRODUCTION. 17
peace imder his feet, forming projects whicli tend to my
ruin, lie could not, without the highest degree of impu-
dence, (impudentissime,) pretend that after this I should
consider him as a sacred person, who ought not to be
touched ; in other words, that I should betray myself, and
abandon the care of my own preservation, in order to
give way to the malice of a criminal, that he may act
with impunity and with full liberty. On the contrary,
since he shows himself unsociable towards me, and since
he has placed himself in a position which does not per-
mit me safely to practice towards him the duties of peace,
I have only to think of preventing the danger-'which
menaces me ; so that if I cannot do this without hurting
him, he has to accuse himself only, since he has reduced
me to this necessity.'' De Jure Nat. et Gent., lib. ii., ch.
v., § 1 . This same course of reasoning is also applied
to the duties of a nation towards its enemy in respect to
war.
" 3d. But suppose this method fail. Why, then, let us
suffer the evil."
This principle, if applied to its full extent, would, we
believe, be subversive of all right, and soon place all
power in the hands of the most evil and wicked men in
the community. Reason with the nation that invades our
soil, and tramples imder foot our rights and liberties, and
should it not desist, why, then, suffer the evil ! Reason
with the murderer, and if he do not desist, why, then,
suffer him to murder our wives and our children ! Reason
with the robber and the defaulter, and if they will not
listen, why, then, let them take our property ! We can-
not appeal to the courts, for if their decisions be not re-
spected, they employ force to compel obedience to theii
mandates. But Dr. Wayland considers the law of be-
nevolence to forbid the use of force between men. He
forgets this, it is true, in speaking of our duties towards
18 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
our fellow-men of the same society, and even allows us to
punish the murderer with death; but towards the for-
eigner he requires a greater forbearance and benevolence
than towards our neighbor ; for if another nation send its
armies to oppress, and rob, and murder us by the thou-
sand, we have no right to employ physical force either to
prevent or to punish them, though we may do so to pre-
vent or punish a neighbor for an individual act of the
same character. The greater the scale of crime, then,
the less the necessity of resorting to physical force to
prevent it !
" 4th. But it may be asked, what is to prevent repeated
and continued aggression? I answer, first, not instru-
ments of destruction, but the moral principle which God
has placed in the bosom of every man. I think that obe-
dience to the law of God, on the part of the injured, is
the surest preventive against the repetition of injury. I
answer, secondly, suppose that acting in obedience to the
law of benevolence will not prevent the repetition of in-
jury, will acting on the principle of retaliation prevent
it 1" , Again ; "I believe aggression from a foreign nation to
be the intimation from God that we are disobeying the
law of benevolence, and that this is his mode of teaching
nations their duty, in this respect, to each other. So that
aggression seems to me in no manner to call for retalia-
tion and injury, but rather to call for special kindness and
good-will."
This argument, if such it can be called, is equally ap-
plicable to individual aggressions. We are bound to
regard them as intimations of our want of benevolence,
and to reward the aggressors for the intimations ! Is it
true, that in this world the wicked only are oppressed,
and that the good are always the prospered and happy 1
Even suppose this true, and that I, as a sinful man, de-
serve God's anger, is this any reason why I should not
INTRODUCTION. 19
resist the assassin, and seek to bring him to punish-
ment? The whole of this argument of Dr. Wayland
applies with much greater force to municipal courts than
to war.
V. " Let us suppose a nation to abandon all means
both of offence and of defence, to lay aside all power of
inflicting injury, and to rely for self-preservation solely
upon the justice of its own conduct, and the moral effect
which such a course of conduct would produce upon the
consciences of men. * * * * How would such a
nation be protected from external attack, and entire sub-
jugation 1 I answer, by adopting the law of benevolence,
a nation would render such an event in the highest de-
gree impifobable. The causes of national war are, most
commonly, the love of plunder and the love of glory.
The first of these is rarely, if ever, sufiicient to stimulate
men to the ferocity necessary to war, unless when assisted
by the second. And by adopting as the rule of our con-
duct the law of benevolence, all motive arising from the
second cause is taken away. There is not a nation in
Europe that could be led on to war against a harmless,
just, forgiving, and defenceless people."
History teaches us that societies as well as individuals
have been attacked again and again notwithstanding that
they either would not or could not defend themselves.
Did Mr. White, of Salem, escape his murderers any the
more for being harmless and defenceless I Did the Qua-
kers escape being attacked and hung by the ancient New
Englanders any the more because of their non-resisting
principles 1 Have the Jews escaped persecutions through-
out Christendom any the more because of their imbecility
and non-resistance for some centuries past ? Poland was
comparatively harmless and defenceless when the three
gr^at European powers combined to attack and destroy
the entire nation, dividing between themselves the Polish
20 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
territory, aad enslaving or driving into exile the Polish
people.
" Oh, bloodiest picture in the book of time,
Saimatia fell, unwept, without a crime !"
We need not multiply examples under this head; all history
is filled with them.
Let us to-morrow destroy our forts and ships of war,
disband our army and navy, and apply the lighted torch
to our military munitions and to our physical means of de-
fence of every description ; let it be proclaimed to the
world that we will rely solely upon the consciences of
nations for justice, and that we have no longer either the
will or the ability to defend ourselves against aggression.
Think you that the African and Asiatic pirates would re-
frain, any the more, from plundering our vessels trading to
China, because we had adopted "the law of benevolence?"
Would England be any the more likely to compromise her
differences with us, or be any the more disposed to re-
frain from impressing our seamen and from searching our
merchant-ships ? Experience shows that an undefended
state, known to suffer every thing, soon becomes the prey
of all others, and history most abundantly proves tjie wis-
dom and justice of the words of Washington — " If we
DESIRE TO SECURE PEACE, IT MUST BE KNOWN THAT WE
ARE AT ALL TIMES READY FOR WAR."
But let US bring this case still nearer home. Let it be
known to-morrow that the people of Boston or New York
have adopted the strictly non-resisting principle, and that
hereafter they wiU rely solely on the consciences of men
for justice ; let it be proclaimed throughout the whole ex-
tent of our Union, and throughout the world, that you have
destroyed your jails and houses of correction, abolished
your police and executive law officers, that courts may
decide justice but will be allowed no force to compel re-
INTRODUCTION. 21
spect to their decisions, that you will no longer employ
walls, and bars, and locks, to secure your property and
the virtue and lives of your children ; but that you will
trust solely for protection to " the law of active benevo-
lence.'' Think you that the thieves, and robbers, and
murderers of Philadelphia, and Baltimore, and New Or-
leans, and the cities of the old world, will, on this ac-
count, refrain from molesting the peace of New York and
Boston, and that the wicked and abandoned men now in
these cities, will be the more likely to turn from the evil
of their ways 1
Assuredly, if this " law of active benevolence," as Dr.
Wayland denominates the rule of non-resistance, will
prevent nations from attacking the harmless and defence-
less, it will be still more likely to prevent individuals
from the like aggressions ; for the moral sense is less
active in communities than where the responsibility is
individual and direct.
Throughout this argument Dr. Wayland assumes that
all wars are wars of aggression, waged for " plunder" or
" glory," or through " hatred" or " revenge," whereas
such is far from being true. He indeed sometimes speaks
of war as being generally of this character ; at others he
speaks of it as being always undertaken either from a
spirit of aggression or retaliation. Take either form of
his argument, and the veriest schoolboy would pronounce
it unsound : viz..
All wars are undertaken either for aggression or retal-
iation ;
Aggression and retaliation are forbidden by God's laws ;
— ^therefore.
All wars are immoral and unjustifiable.
Or,
Wars are generally undertaken either for aggression or
retaliation ;
32 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Aggression and retaliation are forbidden by God's laws
— ^therefore,
All wars are immoral and unjustifiable.
VI. " Let any man reflect upon the amount of pecimiary
expenditure, and the awful waste of human life, which the
wars of the last hundred years have occasioned, and then
we will ask him whether it be not evident, that the one-
hundredth part of this expense and suffering, if employed
in the honest effort to render mankind wiser and better,
would, long before this time, have banished wars from
the earth, and rendered the civilized world like the gar-
den of Eden ? If this be true, it will follow that the cul-
tivation of a military spirit is injurious to a community,
inasmuch as it aggravates the source of the evil, the cor-
rupt passions of the human breast, by the very manner in
which it attempts to correct the evil itself."
Much has been said to show that war begets immo-
rality, and that the cultivation of the military spirit has a
corrupting influence on community. And members of the
clergy and of the bar have not unfrequently so far for-
gotten, if not truth and fact, at least the common cour-
tesies and charities of life, as to attribute to the military
profession an unequal share of immorality and crime.
We are declared not only parasites on the body politic,
but professed violaters of God's laws — ^men so degraded,
though unconsciously, that " in the pursuit of justice we
renounce the human character and assume that of the
beasts;" it is said that "murder, rob)bery, rape, arson,
theft, if only plaited with the soldier's garb, go unwhipped
of justice."* It has never been the habit of the military
to retort these charges upon the other professions. "We
prefer to leave them unanswered. If demagogues on the
" stump," or in the legislative halls, or in their Fourth-of-
* Sumner's Oration.
INTRODUCTION. 23
July addresses, can find no fitter subjects "to point a
moral or adorn a tale," we must be content lo bear theii
misrepresentations and abuse.
Unjust wars, as well as unjust litigation, are immoral
in their effects and also in their cause. But just wars
and just litigation are not demoralizing. Suppose all
wars and all courts of justice to be abolished, and the
wicked nations as well as individuals to be suffered to
commit injuries without opposition and without punish-
ment ; would not immorality and unrighteousness increase
rather than diminish ? Few events rouse and elevate the
patriotism and public spirit of a nation so much as a just and
patriotic war. It raises the tone of public morality, and
destroys the sordid selfishness and degrading submissive-
ness which so often result from a long-protracted peace.
Such was the Dutch war of independence against the
Spaniards ; such the German war against the aggressions
of Louis XIV., and the French war against the coalition
of 1793. But without looking abroad for illustration, we
find ample proof in our own history. Can it be said that
the wars of the American Kevolution and of 1812, were
demoralizing in their effects 1 " Whence do Americans,"
says Dr. Lieber, "habitually take their best and purest
examples of all that is connected with patriotism, public
spirit, devotedness to comirion good, purity of motive and
action, if not from the daring band of their patriots of the
Kevolution 1"
The principal actors in the military events of the Revor
lution and of 1812, held, while living, high political offi-
ces in the state, and the moral tone which they derived
from these wars may be judged of by the character
stamped on their administration of the government. These
men have passed away, and their places have, for some
time, been filled by men who take their moral tone from the
relations of peace To the true believer in the efficacy
24 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
of > non-resistance, and in the demoralizing influence of all
wars, how striking the contrast between these different
periods in our political history ! How infinitely inferior
to the rulers in later times were those, who, in the blind-
ness of their infatuation, appealed to physical force, rather
than surrender their life, liberty, and pursuit of happiness !
Let us trace out this contrast : —
In the earlier ages of our republic, and under the rule
of those whose moral character had been corrupted by
war, party spirit ran higher and was less pure than at
later periods in our history. The object of the principal
leaders of the great political parties was then to render
the opinions of the opposite party odious : now, their only
object is to sustain their own opinions by argmnent.
Then, each party claimed to itself an exclusive love of
country, and stigmatized the other as aliens and the natu-
ral enemies of the state : now, they both practise great
forbearance, love, and charity, towards political opponents.
Then, men obtained place through intrigue and corruption,
and a universal scramble for the loaves and fishes of of-
fice on the one side, and a universal political proscription
on the other, were regarded as the natural results of an
election : now, this disgusting strife for office has ceased ;
men no longer seek place, but wait, like Cincinnatus, to
be called from their ploughs ; and none are proscribed for
opinion's sake. Then, in electing men to office the most
important social and constitutional principles were forgot-
ten or violated : now, we have the august spectacle of a
nation choosing its rulers under the guidance of strict
moral principle. Then, the halls of congress were fre-
quently filled with demagogues, and tiplers, and the small
men of community : now, the ablest and best of the coun-
try are always sought for as representatives. Then, the
magnates of party were the mere timid, temporizing slaves
of expediency, looking, not to the justice and wisdom of
INTRODUCTION. 25
•
their measures, but to their probable popularity with their
sneaking train of followers : now, they rely for respect
and support upon the judgment of the honest and enlight-
ened. Then, the rank and file of party were mere politi-
cal hirelings, who sold their manhood for place, who
reviled and glorified, and shouted huzzas and whispered
calumnies, just as they were bidden ; they could fawn
upon those who dispensed political patronage with a
cringing servility that would shame the courtiers of Louis
XIV., or the parasites and hirelings of Walpole : now, all
political partisans, deriving their moral tone from the piping
times of peace, are pure, disinterested patriots, who, like
the Roman farmer, take office with great reluctance, and
resign it again as soon as the state can spare their ser-
vices. Then, prize-fighters, and blacklegs, and gamblers,
having formed themselves into political clubs, were court-
ed by men high in authority, and rewarded for their dirty
and corrupting partisan services by ofiices of trust and
responsibility : now, no man clothed with authority would
dare to insult the moral sense of community by receiving
such characters in the national coxmcils, or by bestowing
public offices upon these corrupt and loathsome dregs of
society.
Such, the advocates of non-resistance would persuade
us, are the legitimate results in this country of war on the
one hand and of a long-protracted peace on the other.
But there are men of less vivid imaginations, and, per-
haps, of visions less distorted by fanatical zeal, who fail
to perceive these results, and who even think they see
the reverse of all this. These men cannot perceive any
thing in the lives of Washington, Hamilton, and Knox, to
show that they were the less virtuous because they had
borne arms in their country's service : they even fail to
perceive the injurious effects of the cultivation of a mili-
tary spirit on the military students of West Point, whose
26 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE
graduates, they think, will compare favorably in mord
character with the graduates of Yale and Cambridge.
Nay, more, some even go so far as to say that our army,
as a body, is no less moral than the corresponding classes
in civil life; that our common soldiers are as seldom
guilty of riots, thefts, robberies, and murders, as similarly
educated men engaged in other pursuits ; that our miUtgiry
officers are not inferior in moral character to our civil
officers, and that, as a class, they will compare favorably
with any other class of professional men — ^with lawyers,
for example. In justification of these opinions — which
may, perhaps, be deemed singularly erroneous — ^they say,
that in the many millions of public money expended during
the last forty years, by mUitary officers, for the army, for
military defences, and for internal improvements, but a
single graduate of West Point has proved a defaulter, even
to the smallest sum, and that it is exceedingly rare to see
an officer of the army brought into court for violating the
laws.
But even suppose it true that armies necessarily difiuse
immorality through commimity, is it not equally true that
habitual submission to the injustice, plunder, and insult
of foreign conquerors would tend stiU more to degrade
and demoralize any people 1
With regard to " pecuniary expenditures" required in
military defence, many absurd as well as false statements
have been put forth. With respect to our own country,
the entire amounts expended^ under the head of war de-
partment, whether for Indian pensions, for the purchase
of Indian lands, the construction of government roads, the
improvement of rivers and harbors, the building of break-
waters and sea-waUs, for the preservation of property, the
surveying of public lands, &c., &c. ; in fine, every ex-
penditure made by officers of the army, under the war
department, is put down as " expenses for military de-
INTRODUCTION. 27
fence.'' Similar misstatements are made with respect to
foreign countries : for example, the new fortifications of
Paris are said to have already cost from fifty to seventy-
five millions of dollars, and as much more is said to be re-
quired to cornplete them. Indeed, we have seen the whole
estimated cost of those works stated at two hundred and
forty millions of doUars, or twelve hundred millions of
francs ! The facts are these : the works, when done,
will have cost about twenty-eight millions. We had the
pleasure of examining them not long since, in company
with several of the engineer officers employed on the
works. They were then three-fourths done, and had
cost about twenty millions . We were assured by these offi-
cers that the fortifications proper would be completed for
somewhat less than the original estimate of twenty-eight
millions. Had we time to enter into details, other examples
of exaggeration and misrepresentation could be given.
But it is not to be denied that wars and the means of
military defence have cost vast amounts of money. So
also have litigation and the means deemed requisite for
maintaining justice between individuals. It has been
estimated that we have in this country, at the present
time, thirty thousand lawyers, without including petti-
foggers. Allowing each of these to cost the country the
average sum of one thousand dollars, and we have the
annual cost to the country, for lawyers, thirty millions of
dollars. Add to this the cost of legislative halls and legis-
lators for making laws ; of. court-houses, jails, police-
offices, judges of the difierent courts, marshals, sheriffs,
justices of the peace, constables, clerks, witnesses, &c.,
employed to apply and enforce the laws when made ; the
personal loss of time of the different plaintiffs and defend-
ants, the individual anxiety and suffering produced by
litigation ; add all these together, and I doubt not the re-
sult for a single year will somewhat astonish these modem
28 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
economists. But if all the expenditures of this nature
that have been made for the la,st fifty years, in this indi-
vidual " war of hate," be added together, we have no doubt
a very fruitful text might be obtained for preaching a cru-
sade against law and lawyers ! But could any sane man
be found to say that, on account of the cost of maintaining
them, all laws and Jawyers are useless and should be
abolished ?
If, therefore, these vast sums of money are deemed
necessary to secure justice between individuals of the
same nation, can we expect that the means of international
justice can be maintained without expenditures commen-
surate with the object in view ? If we cannot rely exclu-
sively upon the " law of active benevolence" for main-
taining justice between brothers of the same country, can
we hope that, in the present state of the world, strangers
and foreigners will be more ready to comply with its re-
quisitions ?
The length of the preceding remarks admonishes us
to greater brevity in the further discussion of this subject.
It is objected to war, that men being rational beings,
should contend with one another by argument, and not by
force, as do the brutes.
To this it is answered, that force properly begins only
where argument ends. If he who has wronged me can-
not be persuaded to make restitution, I apply to the court,
— ^that is, to legal force, — to compel him to do me justice.
So nations ought to resort to military force only when all
other means fail to prevent aggression and injury.
But war often fails to procure redress of grievances, or
to prevent repeated and continued aggression.
So does a resort to civil force ; but such a resort is
none the less proper and just on that account.
But in war the innocent party is sometimes the sufferer,
while the guilty triumph.
INTRODUCTION. 29
So it often is ia civil life : God, for some wise purpose,
sometimes permits tlie wicked to triumph for a, season.
But in all wars one party must be in the wrong, and
frequently the war is unjust on both sides.
So in suits at law, one party is necessarily wrong, and
frequently both resort to the civil tribunals in hopes of
attaining unrighteous ends.
But nations do not resort to tribunals, like individuals,
to settle their differences.
■ For the reason that it is believed a tribunal of this
character — a congress of nations, as it has been called,
— ^would be more productive of evil than of good. By
such an arrangement the old and powerful European
monarchies would acquire the authority to interfere in
the domestic affairs of the weaker powers. We see the
effects of establishing such a tribimal in the so-called
Holy Alliance, whose influence is regarded by the friends
of liberty as little less dangerous than the Holy Inqui-
sition. Moreover, such a tribunal would not prevent war,
for military force would still be resorted to to enforce its
decisions. For these and other reasons, it is deemed
better and safer to rely on the present system of Inter-
national Law. Under this system, and in this country, a
resort to the arbitrament of war is not the result of im-
pulse and passion, — a yielding to the mere " bestial pro-
pensities'' of our nature ; it is a dehberate and solemn
act of the legislative power, — of the representatives of
the national mind, convened as the high council of the
people. It is this power which must determine when all
just and honorable means have been resorted to to obtain
national justice, and when a resort to military force is
requisite and proper. If this decision be necessarily un-
christian and barbarous, such, also, should we expect
to be the character of other laws passed by the same
body, and imder the same circiunstances. A declaration
30 MILITARY ART AND SCIKNCE.
of 'war, m this country, is a law of the land, made by a
deliberative body, imder the high sanction of the consti-
tution. It is true that such a law may be unjust and
wrong, but we can scarcely agree that it will necessarily
be so. The distinction between war, as thus duly de-
clared, and " international Lynch-law" is too evident to
need comment.
But it is said that the benefits of war are more than
coimterbalanced by the evils it entails, and that, " most
commonly, the very means by which we repel a des-
potism from abroad, only establishes over us a military
despotism at home." *
Much has been said and written about military des-
potism ; but we think he who studies history thoroughly,
wiU not fail to prefer a military despotism to a des-
potism of mere politicians. The governments of Alex-
ander and Charlemagne were infinitely preferable to
those of the petty civil tyrants who preceded and fol-
lowed them ; and there is no one so blinded by prejudice
as to say that the reign of Napoleon was no better than
that of Robespierre, Ihinton, and the other " lawyers"
who preceded him, or of the Bourbons, for whom he was
dethroned.
" CsBsar," says a distinguished senator of our own
country, " was rightfully killed for conspiring against his
country ; but it was not he that destroyed the liberties of
Rome. That work was done by the profligate politicians
without him, and before his time ; and his death did not
restore the republic. There were no more elections :
rotten politicians had destroyed them ; and the nephew
of Csesar, as heir to his uncle, succeeded to the empire
on the principle of hereditary succession.
" And here History appears in her grand and instruc-
tive character, as Philosophy teaching by example : and
let us not be senseless to her warning voice. Superficial
INTRODUCTION. 31
readers believe it was the military men wlio destroyed
the Roman republic ! No such thing ! It was the poli-
ticians who did it! — factious, corrupt, intriguing politi-
cians — destroying public virtue in their mad pursuit after
office — destroying their rivals by crime — deceiving and
debauching the people for votes — and bringing elections
into contempt by the frauds and violence with which they
were conducted. From the time of the Gracchi there
were no elections that could bear the name. Confederate
and rotten politicians bought and sold the consulship.
Intrigue and the dagger disposed of rivals. Fraud, vio-
lence, bribes, terror, and the plunder of the public trea-
sury commanded votes. The people had no choice ; and
long before the time of Caesar, nothing remained of re-
publican government but the name and the abuse. Read
Plutarch. In the ' Life of Csesar,' and not three pages
before the crossing of the Rubicon, he paints the ruined
state of the elections, — shows that all elective government
was gone, — ^that the hereditary form had become a neces-
sary relief from the contests of the corrupt, — and that in
choosing between Pompey and Csesar, many preferred
Pompey, not because they thought him republican, but
because they thought he wovdd make the milder king.
Even arms were but a small part of Caesar's reliance,
when he crossed the Rubicon. Gold, stiU more than the
sword, was his dependence ; and he sent forward the ac-
cumulated treasures of plundered Gaul, to be poured into
the laps of rotten politicians. There was no longer a
popular government ; and in taking all power himself, he
only took advantage of the state of things which profli-
gate politicians had produced. In this he was culpable,
and paid the forfeit with his life. But in contemplating
his fate, let us never forget that the politicians had under-
mined and destroyed the republic, before he came to
seize and to master it."
32 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
We could point to numerous instances, where the ben-
efits of war have more than compensated for the evils
which attended it ; benefits not only to the generations
who engaged in it, but also to their descendants for long
ages. Had Rome adopted the non-resistance principle
when Hannibal was at her gates, we should now be in
the night of African ignorance and barbarism, instead of
enjoying the benefits of Roman learning and Roman civ-
ilization. Had France adopted this principle when the
allied armies invaded her territories in 1792, her fate had
followed that of Poland. Had our ancestors adopted this
principle in 1776, what now had been, think you, the
character and condition of our country ?
Dr. Lieber's remarks on this point are peculiarly just
and apposite. " The continued efibrts," says he, " requi-
site for a nation to protect themselves against the ever-
repeated attacks of a predatory foe, may be infinitely
greater than the evils entailed by a single and energetic
war, which forever secures peace from that side. Nor
will it be denied, I suppose, that Niebuhr is right when
he observes, that the advantage to Rome of having con-
quered Sicily, as to power and national vigor, was unde-
niable. But even if it were not so, are there no other
advantages to be secured 1 No human mind is vast
enough to comprehend in one glance, nor is any human
life long enough to follow out consecutively, all the im-
measurable blessings and the unspeakable good which
have resolved to mankind from the ever-memoraWe vic-
tories of little Greece over the rolling masses of servile
Asia, which were nigh sweeping over Europe like the
high tides of a swollen sea, carrying its choking sand
over all the germs of civilization, liberty, and taste, and
nearly all that is good and noble. Think what we should
have been had Europe become an Asiatic province, and
the Eastern principles of power and stagnation should
INTRODUCTION. 33
have become deeply infused into her population, so that
no process ever after could have thrown it out again !
Has no advantage resulted from the Hebrews declining
any longer to be ground in the dust, and ultimately anni-
hilated, at least mentally so, by stifling servitude, and the
wars which followed their resolution ? The Netherlands
war of independence has had a penetrating and decided
effect upon modem history, and, in the eye of all who
value the most substantial parts and elementary ideas of
modern and civil liberty, a highly advantageous one, both
directly and through Great Britain. Wars have frequently
been, in the hands of Providence, the means of dissemi-
nating civilization, if carried on by a civilized people — as
in the case of Alexander, whose wars had a most decided
effect upon the intercourse of men and extension of civili-
zation — or of rousing and reuniting people who had fallen
into lethargy, if attacked by less civilized and numerous
hordes. Frequently we find in history that the ruder and
victorious tribe is made to recover as it were civilization,
already on the wane with a refined nation. Paradoxical
as it may seem at first glance, it is, nevertheless, amply
proved by history, that the closest contact and consequent
exchange of thought and produce and enlargement of
knowledge, between two otherwise severed nations, is
frequently produced by war. War is a struggle, a state
of suffering; but as such, at times, only that struggling
process without which — in proportion to the good to be
obtained, or, as would be a better expression for many
cases, to the good that is to be borne — ^no great and essen-
tial good falls ever to the share of man. Suffering, merely
as suffering, is not an evU. Our religion, philosophy,
every day's experience, prove it. No maternal rejoicing
brightens up a mother's eve without the anxiety of la-
bor."
One word more, and we must leave this subject. It
34 MILITARY AKT AND SCIENCE.
has been said by some that the duties of patriotism are
less binding upon us than upon our ancestors ; that, ■what-
ever may have been the practice in years that are past
the present generation can in no manner bear arms in
their country's cause, such a course being not only dis-
honorable, but in the eye of the Christian, wicked, and
even infamous ! It is believed, however, that such are
not the general opinions and sentiments of the religious
people of this country. Our forefathers lighted the fires
of Religion and Patriotism at the same altar; it is be-
lieved that their descendants have not allowed either to
be extinguished, but that both still bum, and will continue
to bum, with a purer and brighter flame. Our forefathers
were not the less mindful of their duty to their God, be-
cause they also faithfully served their country. If we are
called upon to excel them in works of charity, of benev-
olence, and of Christian virtue, let it not be said of us
that we have forgotten the virtue of patriotism.*
* For further discuseion of this subject the reader is referred to
liieber's Political Ethics, Part II., book vii. chap. 3 ; Paley's Moral and
Political Philosophy ; Legsire's Report of June 13, 1838, in the House
of Representatives ; Mackintosh's History of the Revolution of 1688,
chap, z.; Bynkershock; Vatel; Puffendorf; Clausewitz ; and most
other writers on international law and the laws of war.
Dr. Wayland's view of the question is advocated vrith much zeal by
Dymond in his Inquiry into the Accordancy of War with the Princi-
ples of Christianity ; Jay's Peace tind War ; Judd's Sermon on Peace
and War ; Peabody's Address, &c. ; Cone's Tract on What is the Usa
of the Navy ? Sumner's True Grandeur of Nations.
BTKATEGY. 35
CHAPTER II.
STRATEGY.
War has been defined, " A contest between nations and
states carried on by force." But this definition is by some
considered defective, inasmuch as it would exclude all
civil wars.
When war is commenced by attacking a nation in peace,
it is called offensive, and when undertaken to repel invasion,
or the attacks of an enemy, it is called defensive. A war
may be essentially defensive even where we begin it, if
intended to prevent an attack or invasion which is under
preparation. Besides this general division of war, mili-
tary writers have made numerous others, such as —
Wars of intervention, in which one state interferes in
favor of another. This intervention may either have re-
spect to the internal or to the external a,fiairs of a nation.
The interference of Russia in the aifairs of Poland, of
England in the government of India, Austria and the
allied powers in the affairs of France during the Revolu-
tion and under the empire, are examples under the first
head. The intervention of the Elector Maurice of Sax-
ony against Charles .V., of King William against Louis
XIV., in 1688, of Russia and France in the seven years'
war, of Russia again between France and Austria, in
1805, and between France and Prussia, in 1806, are ex-
amples under the second head Most liberal publicists
consider intervention in the intema,l afiairs of nations as
indefensible ; but the principle is supported by the advo-
cates of the old monarchies of Europe.
Wars of insurrection to gain or to regain liberty ; as
36 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
was the case with the Americans in 1776, and the modem
Greeks in 1821.
Wars of independence from foreign dictation and control,
as the wars of Poland against Russia, of the Netherlands
against Spain, of France against the several coalitions of
the allied powers, of the Spanish Peninsula against France,
and of China and India against England. The American
war of 1812 partook largely of this character, and some
judicious historians have denominated it the war of Inde-
pendence, as distinguished from the war of the Revolution.
Wars of opinion, like those which the Vendeans have
sustained in support of the Bourbons, and those France
has sustained against the allies, as also those of propa-
gandism, waged against the smaller European states by
the republican hordes of the French Revolution. To this
class also belong —
Religious wars, like those of Islamism, of the crusades,
and of the Reformation.
Wars of conquestfYike those of the Romans in Gaul, of
the English in India, of the French in Egypt and Africa,
and of the Russians in Circassia.
National wars, in which the great body of the people
of a state engage, like those of the Swiss against Austria
and the Duke of Burgundy, of the Catalans in 1712, of
the Americans against England, of the Dutch against
Phillip II., and of the Poles and Circassians against
Russia.
Civil wars, where one portion of the state fights against
the other, as the war of the Roses in England, of the
league in France, of the Guelphs and GhibeUnes in Italy,
and of the factions in Mexico and South America.
It is not the present intention to enter into any discus-
sion of these different kinds of war, but rather to consider
the general subject, and to discuss such general principles
and rules as may be applicable to all wars.
STKATEGY. 37
War in its most extensive sense may be regarded both
as a science and an art. It is a science so far as it inves-
tigates general principles and institutes an analysis of
military operations ; and an art when considered with re-
ference to the practical rules for conducting campaigns,
sieges, battles, &c. So is engineering a science so fal
as it investigates the general principles of fortification,
and also artillery, in analyzing the principles of gunnery ;
but both are arts when considered with reference to the
practical rules for the construction, attack, and defence
of forts, or for the use of cannon.
This distinction has not always been observed by wri-
ters on this subject, and some have asserted that strategy
is the science, and tactics the art of war. This is evi-
dently mistaking the general distinction between science,
which investigates principles, and art, which forms prac-
tical rules.
In popular language, however, it is usual to speak of
the military art when we refer to the general subject of
war, and of the military sciences when we wish to call
attention more particularly to the scientific principles upon
which the art is founded. "We shall here consider the
military art in this general sense, as including the entire
subject of war.
As thus defined, the military art may be divided into
four distinct branches, viz.: 1st. Strategy; 2d. Fortifica-
tion, or Engineering; 3d. Logistics; 4th. Tactics. Sev-
eral general treatises on this art add another branch,
called The Policy of War, or the relations of war with
the aflfairs of state.
Strategy is defined to be the art of directing masses on
decisive points, or the hostile movements of armies be-
yond the range of each other's cannon. Engineering em-
braces all dispositions made to enable troops to resist a
superior force the longest time possible; and also tha
38 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
means resorted to by the opposing army to overcome
these material obstacles. Logistics embraces the prac-
tical details of moving and supplying armies. Tactics is
the art of bringing troops into action, or of moving them
in the presence of an enemy, that is, within his view, and
within the reach of his artillery. All these are most in-
timately connected. A fault in tactics may occasion the
loss of strategic lines ; the best combined manceuvres on
the field of battle may lead to no decisive results, when
the position, or the direction of the operation is not strat-
egic ; sometimes not only battles, but entire campaigns,
are lost through neglect of the engineer's art, or faults in
his dispositions ; again, armies would be of little use with-
out the requisite means of locomotion and of subsistence.
I. Strategy regards the theatre of war, rather than the
field of battle. It selects the important points in this
theatre, and the lines of communication by which they
may be reached ; it forms the plan and arranges the gen-
eral operations of a campaign ; but it leaves it to the
engineers to overcome material obstacles and to erect
new ones ; it leaves to logistics the means of supporting
armies and of moving them on the chosen lines ; and to
tactics, the particular dispositions for battle, when the ar-
mies have reached the destined points. It is well to
keep in mind these distinctions, which may be rendered
still more obvious by a few illustrations. The point
where several lines of communications either intersect
or meet, and the centre of an arc which is occupied by
the enemy, are strategic points ; but tactics would reject
a position equally accessible on all sides, especially with
its flanks exposed to attack. Sempronius at Trebbia and
Varro at Cannae, so placed their armies that the Cartha-
genians attacked them, at the same time, in front, on the
flanks, and in rear; the Roman consuls were defeated:
but the central strategic position of Napoleon at Rivoli
STRATEGY. 39
was eminently successM. At the battle of Austerlitz the
allies had projected a strategic movement to their left, in ■
order to cut off Napoleon's right from Vienna ; Weyrother
afterwards changed his plans, and executed a correspond-
ing tactical movement. By the former there had been
some chance of success, but the latter exposed him to
inevitable destruction. The little fort of Kcenigsten,
from its advantageous position, was more useful to the
French, in 1813, than the vast works of Dresden. The
little fort of Bard, with its handful of men, was near de-
feating the operations of Napoleon in 1800, by holding in
check his entire army ; whereas, on the other hand, the
Ul-advised lines of Ticino, in 1706, caused an army of
78,000 French to be defeated by only 40,000 men under
Prince Eugene of Savoy.
War, as has already been said, may be either offensive
or defensive. If the attacking army be directed against
an entire state, it becomes a war of invasion. If only a
province, or a military position, or an army, be attacked,
it is simply regarded as taking the initiative in offensive
movements.
Offensive war is ordinarily most advantageous in its
moral and political influence. It is waged on a foreign
soil, and therefore spares the country of the attacking
force ; it augments its own resources at the same time
that it diminishes those of the enemy; it adds to the
moral courage of its own army, while it disheartens its
opponents. A war of invasion may, however, have also
its disadvantages. Its lines of operation may become too
deep, which is always hazardous in an enemy's country.
All the natural and artificial obstacles, such as mountains,
rivers, defiles, fortifications, &c., are favorable for de-
fence, but difficult to be overcome by the invader. The
local authorities and inhabitants oppose, instead of fa-
cilitating his operations ; and if patriotism animate the
40 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
defensive anny to fight for the independence of its threat
ened country, the war may become long and bloody. Bui
if a political diversion be made in favor of the invading
force, and its operations be attended with success, it
strikes the enemy at the heart, paralyzes all his military
energies, and deprives him of his military resources, thus
promptly terminating the contest. Regarded simply as
the initiative of movements, the ofiensive is almost always
the preferable one, as it enables the general to choose his
lines for moving and concentrating his masses on the de-
cisive point.
The first and most important rule in ofiensive war is, to
keep your forces as much concentrated as possible. This
will not only prevent misfortune, but secure victory, —
since, by its necessary operation, you possess the power
of throwing your whole force upon any exposed point of
your enemy's position.
To this general rule some writers have laid down the
following exceptions : —
1st. When the food and forage of the neighborhood in
which you act have been exhausted and destroyed, and
your magazines are, from any cause, unable to supply the
deficiency, one of two things must be done ; either you
must go to places where these articles abound, or you
must draw from them your supplies by detachments. The
former is rarely compatible with your plan, and neces-
sarily retards its execution ; and hence the preference
which is generally given to the latter.
2d. When reinforcements are about to join you, and
this can only be effected by a march through a country
actually occupied by hostile corps, or liable to be so oc-
cupied, you must again waive the general rule, and risk
one party for the security of the other ; or, (which may
be better,) make such movements with your main body aa
shall accomplish your object.
STRATEGY. 41
3d. When you have complete evidence of the actual,
or probable insurrection in your favor, of a town or prov-
ince of your enemy, or of a division of his army, you
must support this inclination by strong detachments, or by
movements of your main body. Napoleon's operations
in Italy, in 1796-7, furnish examples of what is here
meant.
4th. When, by dispatching a detachment, you may be
able to intercept a convoy, or reinforcement, coming to
the aid of your enemy.
These are apparent rather than real exceptions to the
rule of concentration. This rule does not reqiure that
all the army should occupy the same position. Far from it.
Concentration requires the main body to be in immediate
and supporting reach : small detachments, for temporary
and important objects, like those mentioned, are perfectly
legitimate, and in accordance with correct principles.
Napoleon's position in Spain will serve as an illustration.
A hand, placed oi^the map of that country, will represent
the position of the invading forces. When opened, the
fingers will represent the several detachments, thrown
out on important strategic lines, and which could readily
be drawn in, as in closing the hand, upon the principal
and central mass, preparatory to striking some important
blow.
" If, as we have seen, it be the first great rule for an
army acting on the offensive principle, to keep its forces
concentrated, it is, no doubt, the second, to keep them fully
employed. Is it your intention to seize a particular prov-
ince of your enemy 1 to penetrate to his capital 1 or to
cut him ofi" from his supplies ? Whatever measure be
necessary to open your route to these objects must be
promptly taken ; and if you mean to subsist yourself at
his expense, your movements must be more rapid than
his. Give him time to breathe, — and above all, give him
42 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
time to rest, and your project is blasted ; his forages will
be completed, and his magazines filled and secured. The
roads of approach will be obstructed, bridges destroyed^
and strong points everjrwhere taken and defended. You
will, in fact, like Burg03me, in 1777, reduce yourself to
the necessity of bleeding at every step, without equiva
lent or use.
" Such caimot be the fate of a cormnander who, know-
ing aU the value of acting on the offensive, shakes, by
the vigor and address of his first movements, the moral
as well as physical force of his enemy, — who, selecting
his own time, and place, and mode of attack, confounds
his antagonist by enterprises equally hardy and tmex-
pected, — and who at last leaves to him only the alterna-
tive of resistance without hope, or of flying without re-
sistance."
The British army, in the war of the American Revo-
lution, must have been most wretchedly ignorant of these
leading maxims for conducting offensive war. Instead of
concentrating their forces on some decisive point, and
then destroying the main body of our army by repeated
and well-directed blows, they scattered their forces over
an immense extent of country, and became too weak to
act with decision and effect on any one point. On the
other hand, this policy enabled us to call out and disci-
pline our scattered and ill-provided forces.
The main object in drfensive war is, to protect the
menaced territory, to retard the enemy's progress, to mul-
tiply obstacles in his way, to guard the vital points of the
coimtry, and — at the favorable moment, when the enemy
becomes enfeebled by detachments, losses, privations,
and fatigue — ^to assume the offensive, and drive him from
the country. This combination of the defensive and
offensive has many advantages. The enemy, being
forced to take the defensive in his turn, loses much ot
STRATEGY. 43
the moral superiority due to successful offensive opera-
tions. There are numerous instances of this kind of
war, " the defensive-offensive,'' as it is sometimes called,
to be found in history. The last four campaigns of Fred-
erick the Great of Prussia, are examples which may
serve as models. Wellins;ton played a similar part in the
Spanish peninsula.
To merely remain in a defensive attitude, yielding grad-
ually to the advances of the enemy, without any effort to
regain such positions or provinces as may have fallen into
his power, or to inflict on him some fatal and decisive
blow on the first favorable opportunity ; such a system is
always within the reach of ignorance, stupidity, and cow-
ardice ; but such is far from being the true Fabian system
of defensive war.
" Instead of finding security only in flight ; instead of
habitually refusing to look the enemy in the face ; instead
of leaving his march undisturbed ; instead of abandoning,
without contest, points strong by nature or by art ; — ^instead
of all this, the true war of defence seeks every occasion
to meet the enemy, and loses none by which it can annoy
or defeat him ; it is always awake ; it is constantly in
motion, and never unprepared for either attack or defence.
When not employed in efforts of courage or address, it
incessantly yields itself to those of labor and science. In
its front it breajis up roads or breaks down bridges ; while
it erects or repairs those in its rear : it forms abbatis,
raises batteries, fortifies passes, or intrenches encamp-
ments ; and to the system of deprivation adds all the ac-
tivity, stratagem, and boldness of la petite guerre. Divi-
ding itself into detachments, it multiplies its own attacks
and the alarms of the enemy. Collecting itself at a single
point, it obstructs his progress for days, and sometimes
for weeks together. Does it even abandon the avenues
it is destined to defend ? It is but for the purpose of
44 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
shielding them more securely, by the attack of his hospi-
tals, magazines, convoys, or reinforcements. In a word,
by adopting the maxim, that the enemy must he made to pay
for whatever he gains, it disputes with him every inch of
ground, and if at last it yields to him a victory, it is of
that kind which calls forth only his sighs."
In discussing the subject of strategy, certain technical
terms are employed, such as theatre of war ; theatre of
operations; base of operations, or the line from which
operations start ; objective points, or points to which the
operations are directed ; line of operations, or the line
along which an army moves ; key points, or points which
it is important for the defensive army to secure ; line of
defence, or the line which it is important to defend at all
hazards : and in general, strategic points, strategic lines,
strategic positions, <^c. As these terms are very generally
used in military books, it may be well to make ourselves
thoroughly acquainted with their import. After defining
these terms and explaining their meaning and application,
it is deemed best to illustrate their use by reference to
well-known and striking historical examples.
The theatre of a war embraces not only the territory of
the two belligerent powers, but also that of their allies,
and of such secondary powers as, through fear or interest,
may be drawn into the contest. "With maritime nations it
also embraces the seas, and sometimes crosses to another
continent. Some of the wars between France and Eng-
land embraced the two hemispheres.
The theatre of operations, however, is of a more limited
character, and should not be confounded with the theatre
of war. In general, it includes only the territory which
an army seeks, on the one hand, to defend, and on the
other, to invade. If two or more armies be directed to-
wards the same object, though by different lines, their
combined operations are included in the same theatre;
STRATEGY. 45
but if each, acts independently of the others, and seeks
distinct and separate objects, each must have its own in-
dependent theatre of operations.
A war between France and Austria may embrace all
Italy and Germany, but the theatre of operations may be
limited to only a portion of these countries. Should the
Oregon question lead to hostilities between the United
States and England, the theatre of war would embrace
the greater part of North America and the two oceans,
but the theatre of operations would probably be limited to
Canada and our northern frontier, with naval descents
upon our maritime cities.
The first point to be attended to in a plan of military
operation is to select a good base. Many circumstances
influence this selection, such as mountains, rivers, roads,
forests, cities, fortifications, military d6p6ts, means of sub-
sistence, &c. If the frontier of a state contain strong
natural or artificial barriers, it may serve not only as a
good base for ofiensive operations, but also as an excellent
line of "defence against invasion. A single frontier line
may, however, be penetrated by the enemy, and in that
case a second or third base further in the interior becomes
indispensable for a good defence.
A French army carrying on military operations against
Germany would make the Rhine its first base ; but if driven
from this it would form a second base on the Meuse or
Moselle, a third on the Seine, and a fourth on the Loire ;
or, when driven from the first base, it would take others
perpendicular to the front of defence, either to the right,
on Befort and Besanijon, or to the left, on Mezieres and
Sedan. If acting offensively against Prussia and Russia,
the Rhine and the Main would form the first base, the
Elbe and the Oder the second, the Vistula the third, the
Nieman the fourth, and the Dwina and the Dnieper the
fifth.
46 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
A French army operating against Spain wonld have the
Pyrenees for its first base ; the line of the Ebro for a
second, resting its wings on the gulf of Gascony and the
Mediterranean. If from this position it advance its left,
possessingitself of the kingdom of Valencia, the line of the
Sierra d'Estellas becomes its third base of operations
against the centre of Spain.
A base may be parallel, oblique, or perpendicular to
our line of operations, or to the enemy's line of defence.
Some prefer one plan and some another ; the best authori-
ties, however, think the oblique or perpendicular more
advantageous than the parallel ; but we are not often at
liberty to choose between these, for other considerations
usually determine the selection.
In 1806, the French forces first moved perpendicular
to their base on the Main, but afterwards efiected a change
of front, and moved on a line oblique or nearly parallel to
this base. They had pursued the same plan of operations
in the Seven Years' War. The Russians, in 1812, based
perpendicularly on the Oka and the Kalouga, and extended
their flank march on Wiozma and Krasnoi ; in 1813, the
allies, based perpendicularly on Bohemia, succeeded in
paralyzing Napoleon's army on the Elbe.
An American army moving by Lake Champlain, would
be based perpendicular on the great line of communica-
tion between Boston and Buffalo ; if moving from the New
England states on Quebec and Montreal, the line of oper-
ations woidd be oblique ; and if moving from the Niagara
frontier by Lake Ontario and the St. Lawrence, the line
would be nearly parallel both to our base and to the ene-
my's line of defence — an operation, under the circum-
stances, exceedingly objectionable.
Any point in the theatre of operations which gives to
the possessor aji advantage over his opponent, is regarded
as strategic. Their geographical position and political
STRATEGY. 47
and military character, give them a greater or less influ-
ence in directing the campaign. These points are occu-
pied by the defensive army, and attacked by the offensive ;
if on or near the base, they become the key points for the
former, and the objective points for the latter.* There are
also between these two a greater or less number of strate-
gic points, which have an important though inferior influ-
ence upon the result of the war.
The first object of the French in attacking Belgium, is
to gain possession of the Meuse, as this position would
give them a decided advantage in any ulterior operations.
In attacking southern Germany, the course of the Danube
offers a series of points which exercise an important in-
fluence on the war. For northern Germany, Leipsic and
the country bordering on the Saale and the Elbe, are ob-
jects often fiercely contested by the French and other bel-
ligerent powers. In a war between this country and
England, Montreal and the points on the St. Lawrence
between Montreal ahd Quebec, would become objects of
the highest importance, and their possession would prob-
ably determine the resiUt of the war.
The capital of a state, from its political importance
as well as its military influence, is almost always a decir
sive strategic point, and its capture is therefore frequently
the object of an entire campaign. The possession of
Genoa, Turin, Alexandria, Milan, &c., in 1796, both
from their political and military importance, had a decided
influence upon the results of the war in these several
states. In the same way Venice, Eome, and Naples, in
1797, Vienna, in the campaigns of 1805 and 1809, Berlin,
* It may be well toiemark that a strategic point is not necessarily a
geometrical point ; an entire province, or a considerable portion of a
geographical frontier, is, in military language, sometimes denominated
a point. In the same way, strategic lines, instead of being mathemati-
cal lines, are frequently many miles in width.
48 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
in 1806, Madrid, in 1808, and Paris, in 1814 and 1815.
If Hannibal had captured the capital innnediately after the
battle of Cannee, he would thus have destroyed the Roman
power. The taking of Washington, in 1814, had little or
no influence on the war, for the place was then of no im-
portance in itself, and was a mere nominal capital. It,
however, greatly influenced our reputation abroad, and re-
quired many brilliant successes to wash the blot from our
national escutcheon.
Lines of defence in strategy are either permanent or
temporary. The great military frontiers of a state, espe-
cially when strengthened ^by natural and artificial obsta-
cles, such as chains of mountains, rivers, lines of for-
tresses, &c., are regarded as permanent lines of defence.
The Alpine range between France and Piedmont, with its
fortified passes ; the Rhine, the Oder, and the Elbe, with
their strongly-fortified places ; the Pyrenees, with Bay-
orme at one extremity and Perpignon at the other ; the
triple range of fortresses on the Belgian frontier — are all
permanent lines of defence. The St. Lawrence river is
a permanent line of defence for Canada ; and the line of
lake Champlain, the upper St. Lawrence, and the lakes,
for the United States.
Temporary lines of defence are such as are taken up
merely for the campaign. Napoleon's position in Saxony,
in 1813 ; the line of the allies in Belgium, in 1815 ; the
line of the Mame, in 1814, are examples of temporary
lines of defence.
It wiU be seen from these remarks that lines of defence
are not necessarily bases of operation.
Strategic positions are such as are taken up during the
operations of a war, either by a corps d'armee or grand de-
tachment, for the purpose of checking or observing an
opposing force ; they are named thus to distinguish them
from tactical positions or fields of battle. The positions
STRATEGY. 49
of Napoleon at Rivoli, Verona, and Legnano, in 1796 and
1797, to watch the Adige ; his positions on the Passarge, .
in 1807, and in Saxony and SUesia in front of his line of
defence, in 1813 ; and Massena's positions on the Albis,
along the Linunat and the Aar, in 1799^ are examples
under this head.
Before proceeding further it may be well to illustrate
the ^strategic relations of lines and positions by the use of
diagrams.
(Fig. 1.) The army at A covers the whole of the
ground in rear of the line DC perpendicular to the line
AB, the position of the enemy being at B.
(Fig. 2.) AJ being equal to BJ, A will still cover ev-
ery thing in rear of DC.
(Fig. 3.) If the army A is obliged to cover the point a,
the army B will cover all the space without the circle
whose radius is aB ; and of course A continues to cover
the point a so long as it remains within this circle aB.
A line of operations embraces that portion of the theatre
of war which an army or corps d'arm&e passes over in at-
taining its object ; ihe front of operations is the front form-
ed by the army as it advances on this line.
When, an army acts as a single mass, without forming
independent corps, the line it follows is denominated a
simple line of operations.
If two or more corps act in an isolated manner, but
against the same opposing force, they are said to follow
double or multiple lines.
The lines by which Moreau and Jourdan entered Ger-
many in 1796, were double lines ; but Napoleon's advance
by Bamberg and Gera, in 1806, although moving in seven
distinct corps (Parmee, formed but a single line of opera-
tions.
Interior lines of operations are those followed by an
anny which operates between the enemy's lines in such
5
50 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
a way as to be able to concentrate his forces on one of
these lines before the other can be brought to its assist-
ance. For example, Napoleon's line of operations in
1814, between the Marne and the Seine, where he man-
oeuvred with so much skill and success against the im-
mensely superior forces of the allies.
Exterior lines present the opposite results ; they are
those which an army will form in moving on the extremi-
ties of the opposing masses. For example, the lines of the
Marne and the Seine, followed by the army of Silesia and
the grand Austro-Russian army, in the campaign of 1814.
Burg03me's line of operations, in 1777, was double and
exterior.
Concentric lines are such as start from distant points, and
are directed towards the same object, either in the rear or
in advance of their base.
If a mass leaves a single point and separates into sev-
eral distinct corps, taking divergent directions, it is said
to pursue eccentric lines.
Lines are said to be deep, when the end to be attained
is very distant from the base.
The lines followed by a secondary or auxiliary force
are denominated secondary lines.
The lines pursued by the army of the Sombre-et-Meuse
in 1796, and by Bagration in 1812, were secondary lines,
as the former were merely secondary to the army of the
Rhine, and the latter to that of Barclay.
Accidental lines are those which result from a change
in the primitive plan of campaign, which give a new direc-
tion to the operations. These are of rare occurrence,
but they sometimes lead to important results.
The direction given to a line of operations depends not
only on the geographical situation of the country, but also
on the positions occupied by the enemy. The general
plan of campaign is frequently determined on previous to
STRATEGY. SI
beginning operations, but the choice of lines and positions
must ordinarily result from tbe ulterior events of the war,
and be made by the general as these events occur.
As a general rule, a line of operations should he directed
upon the centre, or. one of the extremities of the enemy's line
of defence; imless our forces be infinitely superior in num-
ber, it would be absurd to act against the front and ex-
tremities at the same time.
If the configuration of the theatre of operations be fa-
vorable to a movement against the extremity of the ene-
my's liiie of defence, this direction maybe best calculated
to lead to important results. (Fig. 4.)
In 1800 the army of the Rhine was directed against
the extreme left of the line of the Black Forest ; the army
of reserve was directed- by the St. Bernard and Milan on
the extreme right and rear of Melas's line of defence : both
operations were most eminently successful. (Fig. 5.)
It may be well to remark that it is not enough merely
to gain the extremity and rear of the enemy, for in that
case it may be possible for him to throw himself on our
communications and place us in the very dilemma in
which we had hoped to involve him. To avoid this dan-
ger it is necessary to give such a direction to the line of
operations that our army shall preserve its communica-
tions and be able to reach its base.
Thus, if Napoleon; in 1800, after crossing the Alps,
had marched by Turin on Alexandria and received battle
at Marengo, without having first secured Lombardy and
the left of the Po, his own line of retreat would have
been completely cut off by Melas ; whereas, by the direc-
tion which he gave to his line of operations he had, in
case of reverse, every means for reaching either tjie Var
"or the Valois. (Fig. 6.) Again, in 1806, if he had march-
ed directly from Gera to Leipsic, he would have been cut
off from his base on the Rhine ; whereas, by turning from
52 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Gera towards Weimar, he not only cut off the Prussians
from the Elbe, but at the same time secured to himself
the roads of Saalfield, Schleitz, and Hoff, thus rendering
perfectly safe his communications in his rear. (Fig. 7.)
We have said that the configuration of the ground and
the position of the hostile forces may sometimes render it
advisable to direct our line of operations against the ex-
tremity of the enemy's line of defence ; but, as a general
rule, a central direction will lead to more important re-
sults. This severs the enemy's means of resistance, and
enables the assailant to strike, with the mass of his force,
upon the dissevered and partially paralyzed members of
the hostile body. (Fig. 8.)
Such a plan of operations enabled Napoleon, in the
Italian campaigns of 1796 and 1797, to pierce and destroy,
with a small force, the large and successive armies which
Austria sent against him. In 1805 his operations were
both interior and central • in 1808 they were most em-
inently central : in 1809, by the central operations in the
vicinity of Ratisbonne, he defeated the large and almost
victorious army of the Archduke Charles : in 1814, from
his central position between the Mame and Seine, with
only seventy thousand men against a force of more than
two hundred thousand, he gained numerous victories, and
barely failed of complete success. Again in 1815, with
an army of only one hundred and twenty thousand men
against an allied force of two hundred and twenty thou-
sand, -by his central advance on Charferoi and Ligny, he
gained a most decided advantage over the enemy — an ad-
vantage lost by the eccentric movement of Grouchy : and
even in 1813, his central position at Dresden would have
secure^ him most decisive advantages, had not the faults
of his lieutenants lost these advantages in the disasters of
Kulm and the Katzbach.
For the same frontier it is objectionable to form more
STRATEGY. 53
than one anriy ; grand detachments and corps of observa-
tion may frequently be used with advantage, but double or
multiple lines of operation are far less favorable than one
simple line. It may however sometimes occur that the
position of the enemy's forces will be such as to make
this operation the preferable one. In that case, interior
lines should always be adopted, xmless we have a vast
superiority in number. Double exterior lines, with corps
several days' march asunder, must be fatal, if the enemy,
whether acting on single or d(kible interior lines, take ad-
vantage of his position to concentrate his masses succes-
sively against our isolated forces. The Roman armies
under the consuls Flaminius and Servilius opposed Han-
nibal on exterior lines, the one by Florence and Arrezzio,
and the other by Modena and Ariminum. Hannibal turned
the position of Flaminius and attacked the Roman armies
separately, gaining a complete and decisive victory. Such
also was the character of the operations of the French in
1795, under Pichegru and Jourdan ; they met with a
bloody and decisive defeat. Again in 1796, the French
armies under Jourdan and Moreau, pursued exterior lines ;
the -Archduke Charles, from his interior position, succeed-
ed in defeating both the opposing generals, and forcing
them to retreat. If the two armies united had pursued a
single line, the republican flag had been carried in tri-
umph to Vienna.
Converging lines of operation are preferable, under
most circumstances, to diverging lines. Care should be
taken, however, that the point of meeting be such that it
may not be taken as a strategic position by the enemy,
and our own forces be destroyed in detail, before they
can effect a junction. In 1797 the main body of the
Austrians, under Alvinzi, advanced against Napoleon, on
three separate lines, intending to concentrate at Rivoli,
and then attack the French in mass ; but Napoleon took
54 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
his Strategic position at Rivoli, and overthrew the en-
emy's corps as they successively appeared. In the same
way the Archduke Charles took an interior position, be-
tween Moreau and Jourdan, in 1796, and prevented them
from concentrating their forces on a single point. Wurm-
ser and Quasdanowich attempted to concentrate their
forces on the Mincio, by moving on the opposite shores
of Lake Garda ; but Napoleon took an interior position
and destroyed them. In 1815 Blucher and Wellington,
from their interior position, prevented the junction of
Napoleon and Grouchy.
Diverging lines may be employed with advantage
against an enemy immediately after a successful battle
or strategic manosuvre ; for by this means we separate
the enemy's forces, and disperse them ; and if occasion
should require it, "may again concentrate our forces by
converging lines. Such was the manoBuvre of Frederick
the Great, in 1757, which produced the battles of Ros-
bach and Leuthen ; such also was the manoeuvre jof Na-
poleon at Donawert in 1805, at Jena in 1806, and at Rat-
isbon in 1809.
Interior lines of operations, when properly conducted,
have almost invariably led to success : indeed every in-
stance of failiure may be clearly traced to great unskilful-
ness in their execution, or to other extraneous circirai-
stances of the campaign. There may, however, be cases
where it will be preferable to direct our forces on the
enemy's flank ; the geographical character of the theatre
of war, the position of other collateral forces, &c., ren-
dering such a direction necessary. But as a general
rule, interior and central lines, for an army of moderate
forces, will lead to decisive results.
Napoleon's Italian campaigns in 1796 and 1797, the
campaign of the Archduke Charles in 1796, Napoleon's
campaigns of 1805 and 1809 against Austria, and of
STKATEGY. 55
1806 and 1807 against Prussia and Russia, of 1808 in
Spain, lis manoeuvres in 1814, between the battle of Bri-
enne and that of Paris, and his operations previous to the
battle of Ligny in 1815, are all brilliant exa,mples under
this head.
To change the line of operations, in the middle of a
campaign, and follow accidental lines, is always a delicate
afiair, and can only be resorted to by a general of great
skill, and with disciplined troops. In such a case it may
be attended with important results. It was one of Na-
poleon's maxims, that " a line of operations, when once
chosen, should never be abandoned." This maxim, how-
ever, must sometimes be disregarded by an army of un-
disciplined troops, in order to avoid entire destruction ;
but the total abandonment of a line of operations is al-
ways attended with great loss, and should be regarded as
a mere choice of evils. A regular army can always
avoid this result, by changing the direction of its line ;
thus frequently gaining superior advantages in the new
theatre of action. If the plan of this change be the re-
sult of a good coup d'ail^ and it be skilfully executed, the
rear of the operating army will be secure from the en-
emy ; and moreover, he will be left in doubt respecting
its weak points. But such is the uncertainty of this
manoeuvre, that it is very rarely taken by the best troops,
unless actually forced upon them. If the army be of in-
congruous materials, generally a change of direction wUl
be less advantageous than to entirely abandon the line,
and save as many as possible of the troops for some new
plan of operations. (Maxim 20.) If, however, the imdis-
ciplined army be sustained by fortifications, it can take
up the accidental line of operations in the same maimer,
and with the same probability of success, as is done by a
regular force.
We have examples of accidental lines in the operations
56 MILITARY Ant AND SCIENCE.
of the king of Prussia, after the battle of Hohenkirchen,
and of Washington, in New- Jersey, after the action of
Princeton. This is one of the finest in military history.
Napoleon had projected a change in his line of opera-
tions, in case he lost the battle of Austerlitz ; but victory
rendered its execution unnecessary. Again in 1814 he
had planned an entire change of operations ; but the
want of co-operation of the forces under Mortier and
Marmont forced him to abandon a plan which, if properly
executed, had probably defeated the allies. Jomini pro-
nounced it one of the most brilliant of his military career.
Having explained the principal terms used in strategj',
let us trace out the successive operations of war in their
usual strategic relations. .
We will suppose war to be declared, and the army to be
just entering upon a campaign. The political and military
authorities of the state determine upon the nature of the
wa.r, and select the theatre of its enterprises. The chief
selects certain points, on or near the borders of the seat
of war, where his troops are to be assembled, and his
materiel collected. These points^ together, foTm his base
of operations. He now selects some point, within the
theatre of the war, as the first object of his enterprises,
and chooses the line of operations most advantageous for
reaching this objective point. The temporary positions
taken on this line become strategic positions, and the line
in his rear, a line of defence. When he arrives in the
vicinity of his first object, and the enemy begins to oppose
his enterprises, he must force this enemy to retreat^,- either
by an attack or by manoeuvres. For this purpose he
temporarily adopts certain lines of manoeuvre, which may
deviate from his general line of operations. The ulterior
events of the campaign may possibly cause him to' make
these new, or accidental lines, his lines of operations.
The approach of hostile forces may cause him to detach
STRATEGY. 57
secondary corps on secondary lines ; or to divide his
army, and pursue double or multiple lines. The primi-
tive object may also be relinquished, and new ones pro-
posed, with new lines and new plans of operations. As
he advances, far from his primitive base, he forms new
depots and' lines of magazines. He may encounter nat-
ural and artificial obstacles. To cross large rivers in the
face of an enemy is a hazardous operation; and he re-
quires all the art of the engineer in. constructing bridges,
and securing a safe passage for his army. If a fortified
place is to. be taken, he will detach a siege corps, and
either continue his march with the main army, or take a
strategic position to cover this siege. Thus Napoleon,
in 1796, with an army of only 50,000 combatants, could
not venture to penetrate into Aiistria, with Mantua and
its .garrison of 25,000 men in his rear, and an Austrian
force of 40,000 before him. But in 1806 the great supe-
riority of his army enabled him to detach forces io be-
siege the principal fortresses of Silesia, and still to con-
tinue his operations with his principal forces. The chief
of the army may meet the enemy under circumstances
such as to induce or compel him to give battle. If he
should be victorious, the enemy must be .pursued and
harassed to the uttermost. If he should be defeated, he
niust-form the best plan, and; provide the bfest means of
retreat. If possible, he must take shelter in some line
of (fortifications, and prepare to resume the offensive.
Lines of intrenchment and temporary works may some-
times servehim as a sufficient protection. Finally,. when
the unfavorable season compels him to suspend his oper-
ations, he will go' into winter cantoimients, and prepare
for a new campaign.
3uch are the ordinary operations of war : its relations
to strategy must be evident, even to the most superficial
reader.
58 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Not unfrequently the results of a campaign depend more
upon the strategic operations of an army, than upon its
victories gained in actual combat. Tactics, or movements
within the range of the enemy's cannon, is therefore sub-
ordinate to the cTioice of positions : if the field of battle be
properly chosen, success will be decisive, and the loss
of the battle not disastrous ; whereas, if selected without
reference to the principles of the science, the victory, if
gained, might be barren, and defeat, if suffered, totally
fatal : thus demonstrating the truth of Napoleon's maxim,
that success is oftener due to the genius of the general,
and to the nature of the theatre of war, than to the niunber
and bravery of the soldiers. (Maxim 17, 18.)
We have a striking illustration of this in the French
army of the Danube, which, from the left wing of General
Kray, marched rapidly through Switzerland to the right
extremity of the Austrian line, " and by this movement
alone' conquered all the coimtry between the Rhine and
Danube without pulling a trigger."
Again, in 1805, the army of Mack was completely para-
lyzed, and the main body forced to surrender, at Ulm,
without. a single important battle. In 1806, the Prussians
were essentially defeated even before the battle of Jena.
The operations about Heilesberg, in 1807, the advance
upon Madrid, in 1808, the manoeuvres about Ratisbon, in
1809, the operations of the French in 1814, and the first
part of the campaign of 1815, against vastly superior
numbers, are all familiar proofs of the truth of the maxim.
Strategy may therefore be regarded as the most impor-
tant, though least understood, of all the branches of the
military art.*
* Strategy may be learned from didactic works or from general mili-
tary histories. There are vfi^ few good elementary works on this
branch of the military art. The general treatises of the Archduke
STRATEGY. 59
Charles, and of General Wagner, in German, (the former has been
translated into French,) are considered as the beet. The discussions
of Jomini on this subject in his great work on the military art, are ex-
ceedingly valuable ; also the writings of Rocquancourt, Jacquinot de
Presle, and Gay de Vernon. The last of these has been translated
into English, but the translation is exceedingly inaccurate. The
military histories of Lloyd, Templehoff, Jomini, the Archduke Charles,
Grimoard, Gravert, Souchet, St. Cyr, Beauvais, Laverne, Stutter-
heim, Wagner, Kausler, Gourgaud and Montholon, Foy, Mathieu
Dumas, S&gai, Pelet, Koch, Clausewitz, and Thiers, may be read
with great advantage. Napier's History of the Peninsular War is the
only English History that is of any value as a military work : it is a
most excellent book. Alison's great History of Europe is utterly
worthless to the military man ; the author is ignorant of the first prin-
ciples of the military art, and nearly every page is filled with the
grossest blunders.
We subjoin the titles of a few of the best works that treat of strategy^
either directly or in connection with military history.
Principes de la Strategic, ^c, par le Princ6 Charles, traduit de
1' Allemand, 3 vols, in 8vo. This is a work of great merit. The tech-
nical terms, however, are very loosely employed.
Precis de VArt de la Guerre, par le Baron Jomini. His chapter
on strategy embodies the principles of this branch of the art.
Grundsatze der Strategies Von Wagner.
Cours Elementaire d^Art et d'Histoire Militaire, par Rocquan-
court. This work contains much valuable information connected with
the history of the art of war ; but it is far too diifuse and ill-arranged
for an elementary book.
Cours d'Art et d'Histoire Militaire, par Jacquinot de Presle. This
work is especially designed for cavalry officers, and the other branches
of military service are but very briefly discussed.
De Vernon's Treatise on the Science of War and Fortification con-
tains much valuable information ; but, as an elementary book, it has
the same objections as that of Rocquancourt.
History of the Seven Years' War, by Lloyd and Templehoffi The
military writings of Lloyd and Templehoff are valuable as connected
with the history of strategy ; but many of the principles laid down by
these writers are now regarded as erroneous.
Memoires de Napoleon. The Memoirs of Napoleon, as dictated by
himself to Gourgaud and Montholon, have been translated into Eng-
lish. It is hardly necessary to remark thcit they contain all the gen
60 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
eral principles of military art and science. No military man slould
fail to study them thoroughly. The matter is so condensed, emd unpor*
tant principles sure embodied in so few words, that they are not easily
understood by the ordinary reader, and probably will never be popular
with the multitude.
JEssai genirnl de Tactique, par Guibert. A work very popular in
its day, but now far less valuable than the writings abready mentioned.
Ausfuhrliche Besckreibung der ScMacht des Pirmaiens, von
Gravert. Regarded by military men as a yaluable historical fragment.
Memoires aur Us Campagnes en Eepagne. Souchet.
Memoires de Gouvion St.. Cyr.
Statistique de la Gnerre, par Reveroni St. Cyr.
Premiere Campagnes de la Revolution, par Grimoard.
Victoires et Conquites. ■ Beauvais.
Campagnes de Suwarrou). Laverne.
Histoire de la Guerre de la Peninaule. Foy.
Precis des Evinements Militaires. Mathieu Dumas.
Histoire de Napolfon et de la Grande Armee en 1812. S^gur.
Memoires sur la Guerre de 1809. Felet.
La Campagne de 1814. Koch.
Vom Kriege — Die Feldxugge, ^c. Clausewitz.
La Rivoluiion, le Cotisulat et I'Empire. Thiers.
Memoires sur la Guerre de 1812 — sur la Campagne du Vice-roi
en Ita,lie, en 1813 et 1814; Histoire de la Guerre en Allemagne en
1814 ; Histoire des Campagnes de 1814 et 1815, en France. Vau-
doncourt.
EssaisttrVArtMilitaire,^c. Canons— Nisas.
Histoire de VExpedititm en Russie en 1812. Chambray,
War in Spain, Portugal, and the South, of France. John Jones.
Peninsular War. Napier.
Notices of the War of 1812. Armstrong
All the above are works of merit ; but none are more valuable to
the military man than the militEi^ histories of Jomini and Eaudert
vith their splendid diagrams and maps.
POKTIFICATIONS. 61
CHAPTER III.
FORTIFICATIONS.
Fortifications, or engineering, may be considered with
refeience to the defence of states and the grand operation
of armies ; or with reference to the details of the con-
struction, and attack, and defence of forts, and the influ-
ence of field-works on the tactical manoeuvres of armies.
It is proposed to speak here only of its general character,
as a branch of the military art, without entering into any
professional discussion of details.
The connection of fortification and strategy may be con-
sidered under two distinct heads : 1st, the- choice of sites
for constructing fortresses for defence; 2d, their influence
in oflfensive operations, and the determination of the ques-
tion whether they can be passed with safety, or whether
the attacking force wUl be under the necessity of be-
sieging them.
The centre and extremities of a base of operations should
always be secured either by natural or artificial obstacles.
This base is generally chosen so that fortifications will
be necessary for strengthening only a part of the line.
But if a frontier, like the side of France towards Belgium,
be destitute of natural obstacles, the artificial means of
defence must be proportionally increased. Great care
should be taken that permanent fortifications be made
only on such places as may favor military operations. If
otherwise, the troops detached from the active army for
garrisoning them, will only tend to weaken this force
without any corresponding advantages. In this way, for-
tifications may become actually injurious to defence. A
62 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
number of the European fortresses whicli were built be-
fore the subject of strategy was properly understood, are
now regarded as utterly useless, from their ill-advised po-
sitions.
Whether a fortress may be safely passed with merely
blockading or observing it, depends very much upon the
nature of the war, and the numbers and position of the
defensive army. The allies, in 1814, invading France
with a million of soldiers, assisted by the political diver-
sion of factions and Bourbonists within the kingdom, and
treason in the frontier fortresses, and even in the ranks
of Napoleon's army, could conduct their military opera-
tions on a very different plan from that which would be
adopted by either Austria, Prussia, Russia, England, Spain,
Portugal, Holland, Italy, and the German powers, if singly
waging war with the French. Napoleon sometimes de-
tached a corps to observe a fortress which threatened his
line of operations or of manoeuvre ; at others, he delayed
his advance till the place could be reduced.
" An army," says Jomini, " may sometimes penetrate
between places-on an open frontier, to attack the enemy's
forces in the field, taking care at the same time to'observe
these places ; but no invading army can cross a great
river, like the Danube, the Rhine, or the Elbe, without
reducing at least one of the fortresses on that river, so as
to secure a line of retreat ; but being in possession of such
a place, it can continue the offensive, while its materiel de
siige successively reduces the other places."
In case the main army is obliged to remain and cover
the besieging corps, it should take some central position,
where it can command all the avenues of approach, and
fall with vigor on the enemy, should he attempt to raise
the siege. Napoleon's operations before Mantua, in 1796,
offer the finest model for imitation.
The old system of intrenched camps and lines of con-
FORTIFICATIONS. 63
travallation is unsuited to the spirit of modern warfare.
In ancient times, and more particularly in the middle
ages, too much importance was attached to tactical posi-
tions, and not enough to strategic points and lines. This
gave to fortifications a character that never properly be-
longed to them. From the middle ages down to the pe-
riod of the French Revolution, wars were carried on
mainly by the system of positions — one party confining
their operations to the security of certain important places,
while the other directed their whole attention to the siege
and capture of these places. But Camot and Napoleon
changed this system, at the same time with the system
of tactics, or rather, returned from it to the old and true
system of strategic operations. Some men, looking merely
at the fact that a change was made, but without examining
the character of that change, have rushed headlong to the
conclusion that fortified places are now utterly useless in
war, military success depending entirely upon a good sys-
tem of marches.
On this subject. General Jomini, the great military his-
torian of the wars of the French Revolution, remarks that
" we should depend entirely upon neithfer organized masses,
nor upon material obstacles, whether natural or artificial.
To'foUow exclusively either of these systems would be
equally absurd. The true science of war consists in
choosing a just medium between the two extremes. The
wars of Napoleon demonstrated the great truth, that dis-
tance can protect no country from invasion, but that a
state, to be secure, must have a good system of fortresses,
and a good system of military reserves and military insti-
tutions."
In all military operations time is of vast importance.
If a single division of an army can be retarded for a few
hours only, it not imfrequently decides the fate of the
campaign.- Had the approach of Blucher been delayed
64 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
for a few liours, Napoleon must have been victorious al
the battle of Waterloo. An equilibrium can seldom be
sustained for more than six or seven hours between
forces on the field of battle ; but in this instance, the
state of the ground rendered the movements so slow as
to prolong the battle for about twelve hours ; thus ena-
bling the allies to eifect a concentration in time to save
Wellington.
Many of Napoleon's brilliant "rictories resulted from
merely bringing troops to bear suddenly upon some de-
cisive point. Rivoli in 1796-7, Marengo in 1800, Ulm
in 1805, Jena in 1806, Ratisbon in 1809, Brienne in
1814, and Ligny in 1 8 1 5 , are familiar examples . But this
concentration of forces:, even with a regidar army, cannot
be calculated on by the general with any degree of cer-
tainty, unless his communications are perfectly secure.
And this difficulty is very much increased where the
troops are new and undisciplined. When a country like
ours is invaded, large numbers of such troops must sud-
denly be called jnto the field. Not, knowing the designs
of the invaders, much time, will be lost in marches and
countermarches ,; and if there be no safe places of resort
the operations must be indecisive and insecure.
To a defensive army fortifications are valuable as
points of repose, upon which the troops, if beaten, may
fall back, and shelter their, sick and wounded, collect
their scattered forces, repair their materials, and draw
together a new supply of stores and provisions ; and as
rallying, points, where new troops may be assembled, with
safety, and the army, in a few days, be prepared to again
meet the enemy in the open field. Without these de-
fences, undisciplined and. inexperienced armies, when
once routed, can seldom be rallied again, except with
great losses. But when supported by forts, they can se-
lect their opportunity for fighting, and offer or refuse
FORTIFICATIONS. 65
battle according to the probability of success ; and, hav-
ing a safe place of retreat, they are far less influenced by
fear in the actual conflict.
The enemy, on the other hand, being compelled either
to besiege or observe these works, his army will be sep-
arated from its magazines, its strength and efficiency
diminished by detachments, and: his whole force exposed
to the horrors of partisan warfare. It has therefore been
estimated by the best military writers, that an army sup-
ported by a judicious system of fortifications, can repel a
l^nd force six times as large as itself.
Every government should prepare, in time of peace, its
most 1 prominent and dwable means of defence. By se-
curing in a permanent manner its important points, it will
enable a small force to retain possession of these places
against a greatly superior army, for a considerable length
of time. This serves the same purpose as a battle gain-
ed ; for, in the begiiming of a war of invasion, the
economy of time is of the utmost importance to the de-
fensive party, enabling it to organize and prepare the
great military resources of the state.
In all mountainous frontiers, or sides of states border-
ing on large rivers, or chains of lakes, there will neces-
sarily be but few points by which an invader can pene-
trate into the interior of the country. Let us suppose
that, for a frontier of moderate extent, there* are jive
passes, or avenues through which the enemy may ap-
proach the interior. To effectually defend these ap-
proaches against the invading army will require, for each,
an army of ten thousand men. Not being able to decide
positively on the plans of the enemy, all these communi-
cations must be defended at the same time. This re-
quires a defending army of fifty thousand men. Let us
now suppose each of these passes to be fortified in such
a way, that one thousand men will be able to hold the
66 MILITARY. ART AND SCIENCE.
enemy in check, and force him to resort to the operations
of a siege ; or, at least, to retard his advance till an
active army can be organized in the interior, and pre-
pared to meet him in the field. We here see that five
thousand men, by means of fortifications, can accomplish
the same defensive object as fifty thousand men virithout
these artificial means of security.
But let us enter a little more into the details of frontier
defences, and examine the character of the several sys-
tems which have been successively proposed or adopted.
Frontiers are divided into four distinct classes, according
as the state may be open on one or more sides, or bound-
ed by mountains, large rivers and lakes, or by the sea.
An open frontier is the most difficult of defence ; and
while there exists a perfect uniformity among military
men upon the vast importance of fortifying sijch a fron-
tier, there is an equal diversity of opinion respecting the
best manner of arranging these works. We shall here
mention three general systems of arranging forts for the
defence of an open country, each of which has been ad-
vocated at difierent times, and afterwards received vari-
ous modifications and additions. These three systems
comprise the main features of all others worthy of much
consideration. They are : —
1st. The system of continuous lines, proposed by Mont-
alembert.
2d. A system of three lines of detached works, strongly
recommended by D'Arqon and others.
3d. A system proposed by Vauban, and advocated by
Rogniat, consisting of lines of very strong works, placed
at considerable distances from each other and covering
large intrenched camps.
The first of these systems was proposed in 1790, and
for a time attracted considerable notice in France, but
has long since been discarded, as being utterly incompat-
FORTIFICATIONS. 67
ible with the principles of the military art. A writer,
however, of some pretensions in this comitry, recom-
mends its adoption for the defence of Baltimore and the
shores of the Chesapeake. The same author would dis'-
pense entirely with our present system of fortifications
on the sea-coast, and substitute in their place wooden
Martello towers ! This would be very much like build-
ing 130 gun ships at Pittsburg and Memphis, for the de-
fence of the Ohio and the Mississippi rivers, and sending
out duck-boats to meet the enemy on the Atlantic !
In the second system, the works on the extreme fron-
tier are to be placed about thirty or forty miles apart, and
those of the second and third lines respectively thirty or
forty miles in rear of the first and second lines, and op-
posite the intervals.
In the third system, first recommended by Vauban and
more recently by Rogniat, the works are to be arranged in
the same manner as in that of D'Ar^on, but the distance be-
tween them is to be from seventy to one hundred miles, and
each fort arranged for covering a large intrenched camp.
Either of these last two systems is well suited to the
defence of an open frontier. The former is applied to
the side of France towards Belgium, and the latter, with
certain modifications, to the defence of Western Ger-
many. The first line of fortifications on the northern
frontier of France consists of Dunkirk, Lille, Valen-
ciennes, Gonde, Quesnoy, Rocroi, Charlemont, M^zieres,
and Sedan ; the second line, of Calais, Andres, St. Omer,
B6thune, Arras, Douai, Chambrai, Landrecies, and Aves-
nes ; the third line, of Boulogne, Montreuil, Hesdin, Abbe-
ville, Amiens, Bapaume, Peronne, Ham, and Laon.
For mountainous frontiers it is deemed necessary to
secure all the important passes with small redoubts or
military works, and to defend with strong forts the grand
interior strategic points on which these communications
68 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
are directed. For a frontier of moderate extent there
may be some six or eight gorges in the mountains by
which an army might penetrate ; but it will always be
found that these roads concentrate on two or three points
in the great valleys below. Take, for example, the fron-
tier of France towards Switzerland and Italy. The passes
of the mountains are secured by the' little works of Fort
UEcluse, Fort Pierre-chatel, Fort Barraux, Brian^on,
Mont Dauphin, Colmars, Entrevanx, and Antibes ; while
Be8an9on, Grenoble, and Toulon, form a second line ;
and Lyons a grand central d6pdt.
Where a great river or chadn of lakes forms the boun-
dary of a state, the system of defence will be much the
same as that of an open land frontier, the works of the
first line being made to secure the great bridges or ferries
by which the enemy might effect a passage ; those of the
second line, to cover the passes of the highlands that
generally approach more or less near the great water-
course ; and those of the third line, far enough in rear to
protect the great internal communications of the country.
Let us take, for exaniple, the side of France bordering on
the Rhine. Wissembourg and Lauterbourg, Fort Louis,
Haguenau, Strasbourg, Schelstadt, Neuf-Brisach, and Hu-
neguen, cover the several passages of the river ; while
Bitche, Phalsbourg, and B6fort form a second line ; Thion-
ville, Metz, and Toul, a third line ; and Verdun a grand
central dep6t.
The following are the principal objects proposed to be
accomplished by fortifications on a sea-coast.
1st. To close all important harbors to an enemy, and
secure them to the navy of the country.
2d. To prevent the enemy from forming an establish-
ment on our shores, from which, by his naval superiority,
he might destroy our commerce and keep the whole fron-
tier in continual alarm.
FORTIFICATIONS. 69
3d. To cover our great cities against a maritime attack
and bombardment.
4th. To cover our ship-yards and great naval d€pdts.
5th. To prevent, as much as possible, the great ave-
nues of interior navigation from being blockaded by naval
means at their entrance into the ocean.
6th. To give to our navy facilities for protecting our
coast trade from the enemy's ships of war, and our inter-
nal communications, which lie near the coast, from mari-
time descents.
Let us notice how France has attempted to accomplish
this object. The Mediterranean frontier has Fort QuarrI,
Fort St. Marguerite, St. Tropez, Brigancjon, the forts of
Point Man, of I'Ertissac, and of Langoustier, Toulon, St.
Nicholas, Castle, of If, Marseilles, Tour de Boue, Aigues-
Montes, Fort St. Louis, Fort Brescou, Narbonne, Cha-
teau de Salces, Perpignan, GoUioure, Fort St. Elme, and
Port Jfendre. Toulon is the great naval depot for this
frontier, and Marseilles the great commercial port. Both
are well secured by strong fortifications. The Atlantic
frontier has Bayonne ; the forts of Royan, Grave, Medoc,
Pate, &c., on the Gironde ; Rochefort, with the forts of
Chapus, Lapin, Aix, Oleron, &c., to cover the roadstead ;
La Rochelle, with the forts of the Isle of Re; Sables,
with the forts of St. Nicholas, and Des Moulines, Isle
Dieu, Belle Isle, Fort du Pilier, Mindin, Ville Martin;
Quiberon, with Fort Penthievre ; L'Orient, with its harbor
defences ; Fort Cigogne ; Brest, with its harbor defences ;
St. Malo, with Forts Cezembre, La Canch€e, L'Anse du
Verger, and Des Rimains ; Cherbourg, with its defensive
forts and batteries ; Havre, Dieppe, Boulogne, Calais, and
Dunkirk. Cherbourg, Brest, and Rochefort, are great
naval depots ; and Havre, Nantes, and Bordeaux, the
principal commercial ports. Many of the works above
enumerated are small in extent and antiquated in their
70 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
construction, and some of them quite old and dilapidated ,
nevertheless, they have heretofore been found sufficient
for the defence of the naval dip&ts and commercial sea-
ports of France against the superior naval forces of her
neighbor.
Omitting for the present all discussion of seacoast de-
fences, let us examine more particularly the character
and influence of fortifications on land frontiers.
All military writers agree that fortifications have here-
tofore exerted a great, and frequently a decisive, influence
on the operations of a war. Those of France are fre-
quently referred to as proofs of this influence. But, while
all are disposed to allow that these works contributed
much in former times to the defence of states, yet some
have said that modem improvements in the mode of at-
tack have rendered forts far less valuable than formerly.
Such, however, is not the case. Improvements in the
mode of attack have not kept pace with the facilities of
locomotion ; and, although fortifications do not now usually
sustain a siege of as many days as in former times, still,
as compared with the relative lengths of campaigns in
ancient and modern wars, the proportional length of sieges
is now even greater than formerly. When the same is
accomplished in a campaign of seven weeks as was for-
merly done in a war of seven years, it is not necessary
that fortified places should hold out a very long time. A
place that can sustain a siege of a month is now deemed
sufficiently strong for ordinary campaigns ; for by the end
of that time the defensive army will either be destroyed,
or be able to come to its succor. In either case a longer
defence would not be required.
A reference to the most important sieges of the last
century or two will show that forts are, on an average,
capable of sustaining a siege for more than that length of
time.
FORTIFICATIONS. 71
Lille, in 1708, held the allies in check for a whole
year; and again, in 1792, compelled the Austrians to
raise the siege after an unsuccessful attack of fifteen days.
Antwerp, in 1585, sustained a siege of fourteen months
against greatly superior forces ; in 1814 Carnot defended
the citadel of this place for four months, and until, an ar-
mistice had been concluded between the contending par-
ties ; in 1832, it sustained, with a garrison of only 4,500
men and 145 pieces of ordnance, a siege of twenty-five
days, against a force of 55,000 men and 223 cannon.
Namur, near the end of the seventeenth century, sus-
tained a siege often weeks.
Ismail, in 1790, sustained a siege of more than two
months against the Russians. ,
Maestricht, in 1793, sustained a siege of nearly two
weeks ; and again, in 1794, sustained a blockade and
siege of nearly two months.
Magdeburg, in the thirty years' war, resisted the array
of Wallenstein for seven months; and in 1813-14, al-
though garrisoned by only 4,000 men, it for a long time
resisted the overwhelming forces of the allies.
Dantzic, at the same time, sustained a siege against
superior forces for more than nine months.
Landau, in 1793, sustained a siege of nine months.
Valenciennes and Mayence, in 1793, each sustained a
siege of about three months.
Charleroi, Fort Vauban, and L'Ecluse, in 1794,. each
sustained a siege of about thirty days.
Quesnoy, in 1794, sustained a siege of about three
weeks.
Rosas, in 1795, sustained a siege of some seventy days.
Mantua, in 1796-7, protected from invasion, for eight
months, the Tyrol and iim heart of the Austrian mon-
archy.
Kehl and Huninguen, in 1796, sheltered Moreau for
72 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
three months against all the eflforts of the Archduke
Charles.
St. Jean d'Acre, in 1799, sustained a siege of sixty
days of open trench.
Uhn, in 1800, held Moreau in check for more than a
month.
Genoa, in 1800, sustained a blockade of sixty and a
siege of forty days.
Saragossa in 1808 sustained a close siege of near two
months ; and in 1809 it was again besieged for two
months.
Rosas in 1808 sustained a siege of thirty days.
Gerona in 1809 sustained a siege and blockade of
seven months, nearly four of them being of open trench.
Mequinenza (a very small work) in 1810 sustained a
siege of more than two weeks^
Astorga in 1810 sustained a siege of thirty days;
twenty-four being of open trench. .
Lerida in 1810 sustained a siege of thirty days, two
weeks being of open trench.
Ciudad Eodrigo in 1810 sustained a siege of two
months.
Almeida in 1810 sustained a siege of more than a
month.
Tortosa in 1810 sustained a siege of six months.
Tarragona in 1811 sustained a siege of nearly two
months.
Badajos in 1811 sustained a siege of more than forty
days open trench.
Lerida in 1811 sustained a siege of two weeks open
trench.
Saguntum in 1811 sustained a siege of a month.
Valencia in 1811-12 sustained a siege of two months.
Ciudad Eodrigo in 1812 sustained a blockade of seve-
ral months, and a close siege of two weeks.
FORTIFICATIONS. 73
Badajos in 1812 sustained twenty-one days of open
trenches.
Burgos in 1812 sustained thirty-three days of open
trenches.
St. Sebastian in 1813 sustained a siege and blockade
of nearly three months, with fifly-nine days of open
trenches.
Pampeluna in 1813 sustained a siege of more than
four months.
Monzon in 1813-14 also sustained a siege of more
than four months.
This list might be increased with numerous other ex-
amples, to show that even poorly fortified towns are
capable of defending themselves, on an average, for more
than a month. These examples, be it remembered, are
nearly all taken from a period of history since any mate-
rial improvements have been made in the art of attack.
Since the time of Vauban the improvements in attack
have not kept pace with the increased means of defence.
Moreover, these examples are taken from the sieges of
towns defended mainly by old and antiquated works, and
entirely incapable of offering the same resistance as de-
tached fortifications, with all the modem improvements.
The value of fortifications, as land defences, is suf-
ficiently proved by showing their general capability of
resisting an invader, even for a limited period ; thus af-
fording us time and opportunity to provide other means
of security. But it must not be inferred that forts be-
sieged en rigle will necessarily fall after so many days.
Such is far from being the case. The besieged have
usually great advantages over the besiegers ; and unless
the latter are vastly superior in number, or the work is of
a very inferior character, or the garrison is destitute of
the requisite means and energy to resist an attack, they
will not be taken.
7
74 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
M6ziSres was not taken in 1520; nor Marseilles in
1524 ; nor Peronne in 1536 ; nor Landrecies in 1543 ;
nor Metz in 1552 ; nor Montauban in 1621 ; nor Lerida
in 1647; nor Maestricht in 1676; nor Vienna in 1529,
and again in 1683 ; nor Turin in 1706 ; nor Cond6 in
1744 ; nor Lille in 1792 ; nor Landau in 1793 ; nor Ulm
in 1800; nor Saragossa in 1808; nor Burgos in 1812.
This Ust might be extended almost indefinitely with the
names of places that could be reduced neither by force
nor by starvation.
But, as has already been noticed, some have asserted
that fortifications have become of little comparative im-
portance, tmder the new system of warfare introduced
during the wars of the French Revolution. On this sub-
ject let us consult the opinions of the best military judges
of the present century.
Napoleon says of fortifications, " they are an excellent
means of retarding, fettering, enfeebling, and disquieting
a conquering foe."
" The possession of strategic points," says the Arch-
duke Charles, " is decisive in military operations ; and
the most efficacious means should, therefore, be employed
to defend points whose preservation is the country's safe-
guard. This object is accomplished by fortifications, in-
asmuch as they can resist, for a given time, with a small
number of troops, every efibrt of a much larger force ;
fortifications should, therefore, be regarded as the basis
of a good system of defence." " It should be a maxim
of state policy in every country, to fortify, in time of
peace, all such points, and to arrange them with great
care, so that they can be defended by a small number of
troops. For the enemy, knowing the difliculty of getting
possession of these works, will look twice before he in-
volves himself in a war." " Establishments which can
secure strategic advantages are not the works of a mo-
FORTIFICATIONS. 75
ment ; they require time and labor. He who has the
direction of the military forces of a state, should, in time
of peace, prepare for war." " The proper application or
neglect of these principles will decide the safety or the
ruin of the state." " Fortifications arrest the enemy in
the pursuit of his object, and direct his movements on
less important points ; — he must either force these for-
tified lines, or else hazard enterprises upon lines which
oflfer^nly disadvantages. In fine, a country secured by
a system of defences truly strategic, has no cause to fear
either the invasion or the yoke of the enemy ; for he can
advance to the interior of the country only through great
trouble and ruinous efforts. Of course, lines of fortifica-
tions thus arranged cannot shelter a state against all re-
verses ; but these reverses will not, in this case, be
attended by total ruin ; for they cannot take from the
state the means nor the time for collecting new forces ;
nor can they ever reduce it to the cruel alternative of
submission or destruction."
" Fortifications," says Jomini, " fulfil two objects of
capital importance, — 1st. The protection of the frontiers ;
and 2d. Assisting the operations of the army in the field."
" Every part of the frontiers of a state should be secured
by one or two great places of refuge, secondary places,
and even small posts for facilitating the active operations
of the armies. Cities girt with walls and slight ditches
may often be of great utility in the interior of a country,
as places of deposite, where stores, magazines, hospitals,
&c., may be sheltered from the incursions of the enemy's
light troops. These works are more especially valuable
where such stores, in order not to weaken the regulai
army by detachments, are intrusted to the care of raw
and militia forces.'' It is not supposed that any system
of fortifications can hermetically close a frontier ; " but,
although they of themselves can rarely present an abso-
76 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
lute obstacle to tlie advance of the hostile army, yet it is
indisputable that they straiten its movements, change the
direction of its marches, and force it into detachments ;
while, on the contrary, they afford all the opposite advan-
tages to the defensive army ; they protect its marches,
favor its debouches, cover its magazines, its flanks, and
its movements, and finally furnish it with a place of
refuge in time of need."
These opinions were uttered, be it remembered? long
since the period at which modern military quacks date the
downfall of fortifications as inland defences, by men, too,
who were not engineers, and consequently had no profes-
sional predilections in favor of fortifications. The Arch-
duke Charlps, as a general, knew no rival but Napoleon,
and General Jomini is universally regarded as the first
military historian of the age. The truth of their remarks
on fortifications is most fully confirmed by the military
histories of Germany and France.
For a long period previous to the Thirty Years' War, its
strong castles and fortified cities secured the German em-
pire from attacks from abroad, except on its extensive
frontier, which was frequently assailed, but no enemy was
able to penetrate to the interior till a want of union among
its own princes opened its strongholds to the Swedish
conqueror ; nor then, did the cautious Gustavus Adolphus
venture far into its territories till he had obtained posses-
sion of all the military works that might endanger his re-
treat.
Again, in the Seven Years' War, when the French neg-
lected to secure their foothold in Germany, by placing in
a state of defence the fortifications that fell into their
power, the first defeat rendered their ground untenable,
and threw them from the Elbe back upon the Rhine and
the Mayne. They afterwards took the precaution to for-
tify their positions, and to secure their magazines under
FOETIFICATIONS. 77
shelter of strong places, and, consequently, were enabled
to maintain themselves in the hostile country till the end
of the war, notwithstanding the inefficiency of their gen-
erals, the great reverses they sustained in the field, the
skill and perseverance of the enemy they were contending
with, and the weak and vacillating character of the cabi-
net that directed them.
But this system of defence was not so carefully main-
tained in the latter part of the eighteenth century, for at
the beginning of the French Revolution, says Jomini,
" Germany had too few fortifications ; they were generally
of a'poor character, and improperly located." France, on
the contrary, was well fortified : and although without
armies, and torn in pieces by dbmestic factions, (we here
use the language of the Archduke,) " she sustained her-
self against all Europe ; and this was because her govern-
ment, since the reign of Louis XIII., had continually la-
bored to put her frontiers into a defensive condition agreeably
to the principles of strategy ; starting from such a system
for a basis, she subdued every country on the continent
that was not thus fortified ; and this reason alone will ex-
plain how her generals sometimes succeeded in destroy-
ing an army, and even an entire state, merely by a strate-
gic success."
This may be illustrated by reference to particular cam-
paigns. In 1792, when the Duke of Brunswick invaded
France, she had no armies competent to her defence.
Their numbers upon paper were somewhat formidable, it
is true, but the license of the Revolution had so loosened
the bonds of discipline as to effect an almost complete
disorganization. " It seemed, at this period," says the
historian, " as if the operations of the French generals
were dependent upon the absence of their enemies : the
moment they appeared, the operations were precipitately
abandoned." But France had on her eastern frontier a
78 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
triple line of good fortresses, although her miserable sol-
diery were incapable of properly defending them. The
several works of the first and second lines fell, one after
another, before the slow operations of a Prussian siege,
and the Duke of Brunswick was already advancing upon
the third, when Dumourier, with only twenty-five thousand
men, threw himself into this line, and by a well-conducted
war of positions, placing his raw and unsteady forces be-,
hind unassailable intrenchments, succeeded in repelling a
disciplined army nearly four times as numerous as his
own. Had no other obstacle than the French troops been
interposed between Paris and the Prussians, all agree that
France must have fallen.
In the campaign of 1793, the French army in Flanders
were beaten in almost every engagement, and their forces
reduced to less than one half the number of the allies.
The French general turned traitor to his country, and the
National Guards deserted their colors and returned to
France. The only hope of the Kepublicans, at this crisis,
was Vauban's line of Flemish fortresses. These alone
saved France. The strongholds of Lille, Cond6, Valen-
ciennes, Quesnoy, Landrecies, &c., held the Austrians in
check till the French could raise new forces and reorganize
their army. "The important breathing-time which the
sieges of these fortresses," says an English historian,
" afibrded to the French, and the immense advantage
which they derived from the new levies which they re-
ceived, and fresh organization which they acquired during
that important period, is a signal proof of the vital impor-
tance of fortresses in contributing to national defence.
Napoleon has not hesitated to ascribe to the three months
thus gained the salvation of France. It is to be constantly
recollected that the Republican armies were then totally
unable to keep the field ; that behind the frontier fortresses
there was neither a defensive position, nor a corps to re-
FORTIFICATIONS. 79
inforce them ; and that if driven from their vicinity, the
capital was taken and the war concluded."
In the following year, 1794, when France had com-
pleted her vast armaments, and, in her turn, had become
the invading power, the enemy had no fortified towns to
check the progress of the Republican armies ; which,
based on strong works of defence, in a few weeks over-
ran Flanders, and drove the allies beyond the Rhine.
In the campaign of 1796, when the army of Moreau
had been forced into a precipitate retreat by the admira-
ble strategic operations of the Archduke Charles, the
French forces owed their safety to the fortifications on
the Rhine. These works arrested the enemy's pursuit
and obliged him to resort to the tedious operations of
sieges ; and the reduction of the French advanced posts
alone, Kehl and Huninguen, poorly as they were defended,
employed aU the resources of the Austrian army, and the
skill of their engineers, from early in October till late in
February. Kehl was at first assaulted by a force four
times as numerous as the garrison ; if the enemy had
succeeded, he would have cut off Moreau's retreat, and
destroyed his army. Fortunately the place was strong
enough to resist all assaults ; and Moreau, basing himself
on the fortresses of Alsace, his right covered by Hunin-
guen, Neuf-Brisach, and B6fort, and his left by the iron
barrier of the Netherlands, effectually checked the waves
of Austrian success.
Let us now turn to the campaigns of Napoleon. In his
first campaign in Italy, 1796, the general was directed
" to seize the forts of Savona, compel the senate to furnish
him with pecuniary supplies, and to surrender the keys of
Gavi, a fortress perched on the rocky height commanding
the pass of the Bocchetta." Setting out from Savona, he
crossed the mountains at a weak point between the Alps
and the Apennines, and succeeded in piercing the enemy's
80 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
line of defence. The king of Sardinia, jealous of Aus-
trian influence, had refused to permit the Austrian army
to garrison his linei of fortifications. Napoleon, profiting
by his victorious attitude, the mutual jealousy of Austria
and Sardinia, and the intrigues of his diplomatists, soon
gained possession of these important works. " These
Sardinian fortresses" he wrote to the Directory, " at once
■put the Republicans in possession of the lieys of the Penin-
sula." Basing himself on Coni, Mondovi, Ceva, Gavi,
and Alessandria, with Tortosa as his d6p8t of magazines,
he advanced against Lombardy. Now basing himself on
the Adda and Po, with the fortress of Pizzighettone as the
d6pot of his magazines, he advanced upon the line of the
Adige. Pechiera became his next depot, and he now had
four fortresses in echelon between him and his first d6p6t
of magazines ; and, after the fall of Mantua, basing him-
self on the Po, he advanced against the States of the
Church, making Ferrara and then Ancona, his places of
depot.
From the solid basis of the fortresses of Piedmont and
Lombardy, " he was enabled to turn his undivided atten-
tion to the destruction of the Austrians, and thus commence,
with some security, that great career of conquest which
he already meditated in the imperial dominions." In this
campaign of 1797, after securing his base, he fortified
Palma-Nuova, Osapo, &c., repaired the old fortifications
of Klagenfurth, and, as he advanced, established, to use
his own words, " a good point d'appui at every five or sis
marches."
Afterwards, when the Austrians had nearly wrested
Italy from the weak grasp of Napoleon's successors, the
French saved their army in the fortress of Genoa and be-
hind the line of the Var, which had been fortified with
care in 1794—5. Numerous attempts were made to force
this line, the advanced post of Fort Montauban being sev-
FORTIFICATIONS. 81
eral times assaulted by numerous forces. But the Aus-
trian columns recoiled from its murderous fire of grape
and musketry, which swept off great numbers at every
discharge. Again the assault was renewed with a vast
superiority of numbers, and again " the brave men who
headed the column almost perished at the foot of the in-
trenchment ; and, after sustaining a heavy loss, they were
compelled to abandon the enterprise.
While the forces on the Var thus stayed the wave^ of
Austrian success, Massena, in the fortifications of Genoa,
sustained a blockade of sixty, and a siege of forty days,
against an army five times as large as his own ; and
when forced to yield to the stern demands of famine, he
almost dictated to the enemy the terms of the treaty.
These two defences held in check the elite of the Aus-
trian forces, while the French reserve crossed the Alps,
seized the important points of the country, and cut off
the Austrian line of retreat. ■ " But even after the victory
of Marengo," says Napoleon, " I did not consider the
whole of Italy reconquered, until all the fortified places
between me and the Mincio should be occupied by my
troops. I gave Melas permission to return to Mantua, on
condition of his surrendering all these fortresses.''
He now directed Chasseloup de Laubat and his en-
gineers to repair and remodel the fortifications of Verona,
Legnano, Pechiera, Mantua, the line of the Adda, Milan,
Alessandria,* Roco d'Auf^ Genoa, and several smaller
works ; thus forming a quadruple line of defence against
Austrian aggression in Italy. These works were of great
service to the French in 1805, enabling Massena with
fifty thousand men to hold in check the Archduke Charles
with more than ninety thousand, while Napoleon's grand
* More than twenty millions of money were appropriated for this
place alone.
82 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
army, starting from the solid base of the Rhiae, traversed
Germany and seized upon the capital of Austria.
The neglect of the Prussians to place their coimtry in
a state of military defence, previous to declaring war
against Napoleon in 1806, had a most disastrous influ-
ence upon the campaign. Napoleon, on ihe other hand,
occupied and secured all the important military positions
which he had captured in the preceding campaign. " The
Prussians," said he, " made no preparations for putting
into a state of defence the fortifications on their first Une,
not even those within a few marches of our cantonments.
While I was piling up bastion upon bastion at Kehl, Cas-
sel, and Wesel, they did not plant a single palisade at
Magdeburg, nor put in battery a single cannon at Span-
dau." The works on the three great lines of the Oder,
the Elbe, and the Weser, had they been properly re-
paired, garrisoned, and defended, were sufficient to have
held in check the French, even after the great victory of
Jena, till the newly-organized forces, acting in concert
with the Russian army, could re-establish the Prussian
monarchy in its ancient greatness. Profiting by the
neglect of the Prussians, Napoleon seized upon the great
defensive works of the country, which, to his great joy,
were readily surrendered into his hands by the old and
inefficient generals who commanded them; and French
garrisSns were almost immediately established in the for-
tresses of Stettin, Custrin, Gl^gau, Magdeburg, Spandau,
Hameln, Nieubourg, &c. " Spandau," said he in the
19th Bulletin, "is an inestimable acquisition. In our
hands it could sustain two months of operations. But
such was the general confusion, that the Prussians had
not even armed its batteries." The possession of these
fortifications inclined the scale at Eylau. All the histo-
rians of the war noticie their influence on the campaigns
of Friedland and Tilsit.
FORTIFICATIONS. 83
These Prussian fortresses were retained by Napoleon
at the treaty of Tilsit. The campaign of 1809 proved
the wisdom of this policy, as they effectually prevented
Prussia from joining Austria in rekindling the flames of
war. And again in 1813, these works might have pro-
duced a decided influence on the campaign, had not the
political perfidy of Austria, and the treason of the French
generals, prevented Napoleon from profiting by the ad-
vantages of his position.
The influence of the fortifications of Spain upon the
Peninsular campaigns has often been alluded to by his-
torians. Those works which had been given up to Na-
poleon previous to the opening of hostilities, contributed
very much to the success of his arms ; while those which
had been retained by Spain and her allies contributed in
an equal degree to fetter and embarrass his operations.
Some of these, like Saragossa, Tarragona, Gerona, Tor-
tosa, &c. &c., with their broken walls and defective ar-
maments, kept the enemy in check for months; and, by
compelling the French to resort to the tedious operations
of sieges; did much to weaken the French power in the
Peninsula.
The influence of the fortifications of the French fron-
tiers in furnishing a secure basis for the successful oper-
ations of Napoleon into the enemy's territory, has al-
ready been noticed. If these fortresses of France, after
the disasters of 1812 and '13, failed to save the nation,
the cause must be sought for in the peculiar features of
the invasion itself, rather than any lack of military influ-
ence in the French defences. As has been already re-
marked, a million of disciplined men, under consummate
leaders, were here assailing a single state, impoverished
by the fatal war in Russia, — torn in pieces by political
factions, — deserted by its sworn allies, — its fortresses
basely betrayed into the enemy's hands, and its military
84 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
power paralyzed by the treason of generals with theii
entire armies. Its only hope was in the fortresses which
had remained faithful ; and Napoleon said at St. Helena,
that if he had collected together the garrisons of these
few fortresses and retired to the Rhine, he could have
crushed the allies even after their entrance into Paris.
But political considerations prevented the operation.
Again in 1815, Napoleon, even after the defeat of Wa-
terloo, possessed lines of defence sufficiently strong to
resist all attempts at invasion. But again the want of
co-operation on the part of the government at Paris, and
the treason of his own generals, forced his second abdica-
tion. If he had retained the command of the army, and
the nation had seconded his efforts, the allies would never
have reached Paris. But the new government presented
the disgraceful spectacle of opening the way for the ene-
mies of their country. " France," said Napoleon, " will
eternally reproach the ministry with haying forced her
whole people to pass under the Caudiile-forks, by order-
ing the disbanding of an army that' had for twenty-five
years been its country's glory, and by giving up to our as-
tonished enemies our still invincible fortresses."
History fully supports Napoleon's opinion of the great
danger of penetrating far into a hostile country to attack
the capital, even when that capital is without fortifications.
The fatal effects of such an advance, without properly se-
curing the means of retreat, is exemplified by his own
campaign of 1812, in Russia. If, after the fall of Smo-
lensk, he had fortified that place and Vitepsk, which by
their position closed the narrow passage comprise.d be-
tween the Dnieper and the Dwina, he might in all proba-
bility, on the following spring, have been able to seize
upon Moscow and St. Petersburg. But leaving the hos-
tile army of Tschkokoff in his rear, he pushed on to Mos-
cow, and when the conflagration of that city cut off his
FORTIFICATIONS. 85
hopes of winter quarters-there, and the premature rigor
of the season destroyed the horses of his artillery and
provision-trains, retreat became impossible, and the awful
fate of his immense army was closed by scenes of horror
to which there is scarcely a parallel in history. This
point might be stiU fiirther illustrated by the Russian cam-
paign of Charles XII., in 1708-9, the fatal advance of the
French army on Lisbon, in the Peninsular war, and other
examples of the same character.
Even single works sometimes effect the object of lines
of fortifications, and frustrate the operations of an entire
army. Thus, LiUe suspended for a whole year the oper-
ations of Prince Eugene and Marlborough ; the siege of
Landrecies gave Villars an opportunity of changing the
fortunes of the war ; Pavia, in 1525, lost France her
monarch, the flower of her nobility, and her Italian con-
quests ; Metz, in 1552, arrested the entire power of
Charles V., and saved France from destruction ; Prague,
in 1757, brought the greatest warrior of his age to the
brink of ruin; St. Jean d'Acre, in 1799, stdpped the suc-
cessful career of Napoleon; Burgos, in 1812, saved the
beaten army of Portugal, enabled them to collect their
scattered forces, and regain the ascendancy ; Strasburg
has often been the bulwark of the French against Ger-
many, saving France from invasion, and- perhaps subjuga-
tion.
In nearly the language of Napoleon, (Memoirs, vol. IX.,)
If Vienna had been fortified in 1805, the battle of Ulm
would not have decided the fate of the war. Again, in
1809, if this capital had been fortified, it would have en-
abled the Archduke Charles, after the disaster of Eckmuhl,
by a forced retreat on the left of the Danube, to form a
junction with the forces of General Hiller and the Arch-
duke John.
If Berlin had been fortified in 1806, the army routed at
86 MILITARY AKT AND SCIENCE.
Jena would have rallied there and been joined by the
Russians. If Madrid had been strongly fortified in 1808,
the French army, after the victories of Espinosa, Tudela,
Burgos, and Sommo-Sierra, would not have marched to-
wards that capital, leaving in rear of Salamanca and Val-
ladolid, both the English army of General Moore and the
Spanish army of Romana. If Moscow had been fortified
in 1812, its conflagration would have been avoided, for,
with strong defensive works, and the army of Kutusoflf
encamped on its ramparts, its capture would have been
impossible.
Had not Constantinople been well fortified, the empire
of Constantine must have terminated in the year 700,
whereas the standard of the Prophet was not planted
there until 1440. This capital was therefore indebted to
its walls for eight hundred years of existence. During
this period it was besieged fifty-three times, but only one
of these sieges was successful. The French and Vene-
tians took'it, but not without a very severe contest.
Paris has Often owed its safety to its walls. In 885
the Noanans besieged it for two years without efiect. In
1358 the Dauphin besieged it in vain. In 1359 Edward,
king of England, encamped at Montrouge, devastated the
country to its walls, but recoiled from before it, and re-
tired to Chartres. In 1429 it repulsed the attack of
Charles VII. In 1464 the Count of Charlerois surrounded
the city, but was unsuccessful in his attacks. In 1472 it
repulsed the army of the Duke of Boiirgone, who had al-
ready ravaged its precincts. In 1536, when attacked by
Charles V., it again owed its safety to its walls. In 1588
and 1589 it repulsed the armies of Henry III. and Henry
IV. In 1636 and several succeeding years the inhabitants
of Paris owed their safety to its walls. If this capital
had been strongly fortified in 1814 and 1815, the allied
armies would not have dared to attempt its investment.
FORTIFICATIONS, 87
But it is deemed unnecessary to further specify exam-
ples ; the whole history of modem warfare is one con-
tinued proof of the impeitance of fortifications as a
means of national defence, and as an auxiliary in ofiien-
sive military operations. Our illustrations have been
mostly drawn from European wars, but our own brief
history, as will be shown hereafter, is not without its
proofs.
The use and importance of field-fortifications, intrench-
ed camps, &c., as well as the class of military works
called coast-defences, will be discussed hereafter.*
* The use of fortifications in the defence of states is discussed by
Ternay, Vauban, Cormontaigne, iN'apoleon, the Archduke Charles,
Jomini, Fallot, and, incidentally, by most of the military historians of
the wars of the French Revolution. The names of such standard
works as give the detailed arrangements of fortifications will be men-
tioned hereafter
88 MILITAEY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER IV.
LOGISTICS.
III. We have defined logistics to be that branch of the
military art which embraces all the practical details of
moving and supplying armies. The term is derived from
the title of a French general officer, {major-general des
logis,) who was formerly charged with directing the
marches, encampments, and lodging of the troops. It
has been still further extended by recent military writers,
and many of them now regard logistics as a distinct and
important branch of the art.
We shall here consider logistics as including the mili-
tary duties ordinarily attributed to the pay, subsistence,
clothing, medical, hospital, and transportation depart-
ments ; in fine, of all the civil and civico-military corps
of the army. We shall therefore diseuss under this head,
the preparation of all the necessary materials for fitting
out troops for a campaign and for putting them in motion ;
the regulating of marches, convoys, the means of trans-
port for provisions, hospitals, munitions, and supplies of
all kinds ; the preparation and protection of magazines ;
the laying out of camps and cantonments ; in fine, every
thing connected with preparing, moving, and guarding the
impedimenta of an army.
The ofiicers connected with this branch of service
must consult with the engineers in every thing relating
to the defence of their depots, magazines, camps, canton-
ments, communications, and the passage of rivers, and in
all that relates to their connection with the attack and
defence of places : but in all that relates to strategy and
LOGISTICS. 89
tactics they must receive instructions directly from tLe
chief of the staff of the army, who will have the general
direction of every thing connected with logistics. Before
commencing the operations of the campaign, or beginning
the execution of the plans decided upon at head-quarters,
this officer should satisfy himself respecting the condition
of the various materials belonging to the different depart-
ments of the army ; — the horses and horse equipments,
carriages, caissons, ponton and artillery equipages, siege
equipages, moveable hospitals, engineer and artillery uten-
sils, clothing, and munitions of all kinds ; he must supply
whatever may be wanting, and provide means for the
transportation of every thing.
Subsistence. — The art of subsisting troops during active
operations in a hostile country, is one of the most diffi-
cult subjects connected with war; and it is a question
well worthy of study, both for the statesman and the war-
rior, how Darius and Xerxes, Philip and Alexander, in
ancient times — and the Greek emperors and the barba-
rians — and, later still, the crusaders of the middle ages,
contrived to support the immense masses of men which
they led to war.
Csesar has said that war should be made to support
war; and some modem generals have acted upon this
principle to the extreme of supporting their armies en-
tirely at the expense of the country passed over. Others
hare adopted either in part or entirely the principle of
regular magazines.
Louis XIV. and Frederick II. fought mostly on their
own frontiers, and followed the system of regular depots
and supplies. But the revolutionary armies of France
made war without magazines, subsisting, sometimes on
the inhabitants, sometimes by requisitions levied on the
country passed over, and at others by pillage and maraud-
ing. Napoleon found little difficulty in supporting an
90 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
army of a hundred or a hundred and twenty thousand men
in Italy, Suabia, and on the rich borders of the Rhine and
the Danube ; but in Spain, Poland, and Russia, the sub-
ject of subsistence became one of extreme embarrass-
ment.
All d6p6ts of provisions and other supplies for an army
are denominated magazines ; these are divided into prin-
cipal, secondary, and provisional. The first are usually on
the base of operations ; the second, on the line of opera-
tions ; and the last in the immediate vicinity of the troops,
and contain supplies for a few days only.
The system of magazines is objected to by some, be-
cause it fetters the movements of an army, and makes its
military operations subordinate to the means of supply.
Moreover, as the movements of an army must be so ar-
ranged as to cover these magazines, their establishment
at given points reveals to the enemy our plan of cam-
paign.
On the other hand, the system of requisitions, either for
immediate supplies or for secondary magazines, gives far
greater velocity and impetuosity to an active army ; and
if it be so regulated as to repress pillage, and be levied
with uniformity and moderation, it may be relied on with
safety in well-cultivated countries; but in more barren
and less populous districts, an army without magazines,
especially in case of a prolonged stay or a forced retreat,
will be exposed to great suifering and loss, if not to total
destruction.
Before commencing a campaign the general should
make himself acquainted with all the resources of the
country to be passed over — determine the amoimt of sup-
plies which it may be necessary to take with him, and
the amount that can be obtained by requisitions; these
requisitions being levied in a uniform and legal manner,
and through the existing local authorities.
LOGISTICS. 91
In great wars of invasion it is sometimes impracticable,
at least for a time, to provide for the immense forces
placed on foot, by any regular system of magazines or of
ordinary requisitions : in such cases their subsistence is
entirely intrusted to the troops themselves, who levy con-
tributions wherever they pass. The inevitable conse-
quences of this system are imiversal pillage and a total
relaxation of discipline ; the loss of private property and
the violation of individual rights, are followed by the
massacre of all straggling parties, and the ordinary peace-
ful and non-combatant inhabitants are converted into bit-
ter and implacable enemies.
In this connection the war in the Spanish peninsula is
well worthy of study. At the beginning of this war Na-
poleon had to choose between methodical operations, with
provisions carried in the train of his army, or purchased
of the inhabitants and regularly paid for ; and irregular
warfare, with forced requisitions — ^war being made to sup-
port war. The question was thoroughly discussed.
On the one hand, by sacrificing three or four millions
of francs from the French treasury, he would have been
able to support his troops without requisitions, would have
maintained good order and discipline in his armies, and
by the distribution of this money among a people poor
and interested, he would have made many partisans. He
could then have offered them, with a firm and just hand,
the olive or the sword. But then the drafts upon the
French treasury, had the war been a protracted one,
would have been enormous for the support of an army of
200,000 men in Spain. Moreover, the hostile and insur-
rectionary state of the local authorities rendered regular
and legal requisitions almost impossible ; and the want
of navigable rivers, good roads, and suitable transport,
rendered problematical the possibility of moving a sufii-
cient quantity of stores in an insurrectionary country.
92 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Besides, no great detachments could have been made to
regulate the administration of the provinces, or to pursue
the insurgent corps into the fastnesses of the mountains.
In fine, by this system, he would have effected a military
occupation of Spain without its subjugation.
On the other hand, by marching rapidly against all or-
ganized masses, living from day to day upon the local re-
sources of the country, as he had done in Italy, sparing
his reserves for the occupation and pacification of the
conquered provinces ; this mode promised more prompt
and decisive results than the other. Napoleon, therefore,
determined to adopt it for his active masses, employing
the system of magazines and regular requisitions so far as
practicable. In favorable parts of the country, Soult and
Souchet, with smaller armies, succeeded in obtaining in
this way regular supplies for a considerable length of
time, but the others lived mainly by forced requisitions
levied as necessity required. This sometimes gave place
to great excesses, but these were principally the faults
of subordinate officers who tolerated them, rather than
of Napoleon, who punished such breaches of discipline,
when they were known to him, with great severity. He
afterwards declared that, " had he succeeded he would
have-indemnified the great mass of the Spanish people for
their losses, by the sale of the hoarded wealth of the
clergy, which would have rendered the church less pow-
erful, and caused a more just division of property ; thus
the evil of the war would have been forgotten in the
happy triumph of public and private interest over the in-
terest of an ambitious and exclusive clergy."
The following maxims on subsistence have the sanction
of the best military writers :
1st. Regular magazines should be formed, so far as
practicable, for the supplies of an army ; the levying of
requisitions being resorted to only where the nature of
LOGISTICS. 93
the war, and the requisite rapidity of marches, render
these absolutely necessary to success.
2d. Depots should be formed in places strengthened by
nature or art, defended by small corps, or garrisons, and
situated in positions least liable to attack.
3d. All great d6p6ts should be placed on navigable
rivers, canals, railways, or practical roads, communicating
with the line of operations, so that they may be transported
with ease and rapidity, as the army advances on this line.
4th. An army should never be without a supply for ten
or fifteen days, otherwise the best chances of war may
be lost, and the army exposed to great inconveniences.
Templehoff says that the great Frederick, in the cam-
paign of 1757, always carried in the Prussian provision-
train bread for six, and flour for nine days, and was there-
fore never at a loss for means to subsist his forces, in
undertaking any sudden and decisive operation. The
Roman soldier usually carried with him provisions for fif-
teen days. Napoleon says, " Experience has proved that
an army ought to carry with it a month's provisions, ten
days' food being carried by the men and baggage-horses
and a supply for twenty days by the train of wagons ; so
that at least four hundred and eighty wagons would be
required for an army of forty thousand men ; two hundred
and forty being regularly organized, and two hundred and
forty being obtained- by requisition. For this purpose
there would be a battalion of three companies for the mili-
tary stores of each division, each company having its estab-
lishment for forty wagons, twenty being furnished by tha
commissariat, and twenty obtained by requisition. This
gives for each division one hundred and twenty wagons,
and for each army, four hundred and eighty. Each bat-
talion for a provision-train should have two hundred and
ten men.''
5th. An army, while actually in motion, can find tern-
94 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
porary resources, unless in a sterile country, or one al-
ready ravaged by war, or at the season of the year when
the old crops- are nearly exhausted and the new ones not
ready for harvest ; but, even supposing the army may in
this way be partially or wholly supplied, while in motion,
it nevertheless frequently happens that it may remain for
some days in position, (as the French at Austerlitz and
Ulm ;) a supply of hard bread for some ten days will
therefore be important to subsist the army tiU a regular
commissariat can be established. '
6th. " Supplies of bread and biscuit," says Napoleon^
" are no more essential to modem armies than to the Ro-
mans ; flour, rice, and pulse, may be substituted in marches
without the troops suffering any harm. It is an error to
suppose that the genprals of antiquity did not pay great
attention to their magazines ; it may be seen in Caesar's
Commentaries, how much he was occupied with this care
in his several campaigns. The ancients knew how to
avoid being slaves to any system of supplies, or to being
obliged to depend on the purveyors ; but all the great
captains well understood the art of subsistence."
Forage is a military term applied to food of any kind for
horses or cattle, — as grass, hay, corn, oats, &c.; and also
to the operation of collecting such food. Forage is of two
kinds, green and dry ; the former being collected directly
from the meadows and harvest-fields, and the latter from
the bams and granaries of the farmers, or the storehouses
of the dealers.
The animals connected with an army may be subsisted by
regular magazines, by forced requisitions, or by authorized
foraging* As has already been remarked, it is not always
politic, or even possible, to provide regular magazines for the
entire supplies of an army during the active operations of a
* This term is sometimes, though improperly, applied to the opera-
tion of forcibly collecting food for the troops.
LOGISTICS. 95
campaign. On account of the great expense and difficulty of
transporting forage, the general of an armyis more fre-
quently vmder the necessity of resorting to requisitions, or
forced contributions as they are called, and to foraging,
for the subsistence of his animals, than to provide food for
his men. Nor are requisitions and foragings for this ob-
ject so objectionable as in the other case, being far less
likely to produce general want and distress among the
non-combatant inhabitants.
The commanding officer of troops should always use his
best endeavors to obtain his forage by purchase of the in-
habitants, or by requisitions on the local authoi^ties ; and
even where these means are impracticable, the foraging
parties should be strictly directed to make their levies
with uniformity and due moderation. Accurate accounts
should be kept of the kinds and quantities of aU produce
and other property taken, so that it may be regularly dis-
tributed and accounted for. Under no circumstances
should individuals be permitted to appropriate to them-
selves more than their ^yo rata allowance. Foraging par-'
ties may sometimes attain their object in a peaceiiil man-
ner, by representing to the inhabitants the nature' of their
instructions and the necessity of obtaining immediate sup-
plies. Even where no recompense is proposed, it may
be well to offer certificates to the effect that such arti-
cles have been taken for the use of the army. These
certificates, even when of no value in themselves, fre-
quently tend to appease excited passions and allay insur-
rections. In defensive war, carried on in one's own coun-
try, it is often necessary to seize upon private property and
appropriate it to the public service : in all such cases the
certificates of the foraging officers become proofs of indi-
vidual claims against the government.
No foraging party should ever be sent out till after the
country has been properly reconnoitred. A good military
96 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
escort and vanguard should always accompany and pre-
cede the foragers, for protection against the enemy's light
cavalry and an insurgent militia. Trustworthy troops must
be placed in the villages and hamlets of the country to be
foraged, in order to prevent the foragers from engaging in
irregular and unauthorized pillage. Officers of the staff
and administrative corps are sent with the party to see to
the proper execution of the orders, and to report any irreg-
ularities on the part of the troops. In case any corps en-
gage in unauthorized pillage, due restitution should be
made to the inhabitants, and the expense of such restitu-
tion deducted from the pay and allowances of the corps
by whom such excess is committed. A few examples of
this kind of justice will soon restore discipline to the ar-
my, and pacify the inhabitants of the coimtry occupied.
Experience is the best guide in estimatiag the amount
of hay or grain that may be taken from a given field : the
produce of an acre is, of course, very different for different
soils and climates. In distributing the burdens to the sev-
eral pack-horses and wagons employed in conveying the
forage to the army, it is important for the foraging officers
to know the relative weight and bulk of each article.
Ordinary pressed hay in this country will average
about ....
. 12 lbs.
per
cubic foot
Wheat . . . weighs
. . 60 lbs.
per
bushel.
Rye .... «
. 56 "
(C
Maize or Indian corn "
. 56 "
u
Barley .... "
. 50 "
((
Oats ....'«
. 35 "
i<
Meal, flour, and ground feed of all kinds, are purchased
by the pound.
As it would be exceedingly dangerous to send forward
the regular train of the army for the conveyance of forage
collected by these foraging parties, the country wagons
LOGISTICS. 97
and pack-horses are usually pressed into service for this
purpose.
Troops of horse are sometimes sent into the vicinity of
meadows and grain-fields for temporary subsistence : in
such cases the horses and cattle may be farmed in the
neighborhood, and the grass and grain issued in regular ra-
tions, immediately as taken from the field ; but in no case
should the animals be turned out to pasture.
In a country like ours, where large bodies of new and
irregular forces are to be suddenly called into the field in
case of war, it is important to establish very rigid rules in
relation to forage and subsistence ; otherwise the opera-
tions of such troops must be attended with great waste of
public and private property, the want of means of subsist-
ence, the consequent pillage of the inhabitants, and a
general relaxation of discipline. Regular troops are far
less liable to such excesses than inexperienced and un-
disciplined forces.
Marches. — Marches are of two kinds : 1st. Route marches,
— 2d. Marches within reach of the enemy. The former be-
long to the domain of strategy ; the latter to that of tactics ;
both, however, are connected with logistics in every thing
that concerns the means of their execution.
When an army is moving on a line of operations, it
should be in as many columns as the facility of subsist-
ence, celerity of movement, the nature of the roads, &c.,
may require. Large columns cannot move with the same
rapidity as smaller ones, nor can they be so readily sub-
sisted. But when an army is within striking distance of
the enemy, concentration becomes more important than
celerity, and the forces must be kept in mass, or at least
within supporting distances of each other. We find only
two instances in the Seven Years' War, in which Frederick
attempted attacks by several columns at considerable dis-
tances from each other ; and in both these instances (at
9
98 MItlTARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Torgau and at Namiest, against Laudon, during the siege
of Olmutz) he was unsuccessful. His usual mode was to
bring his columns near together as he approached the
enemy, and to form his troops into line at the moment of
attack. Such was his order of march at Prague, KoUin,
Rosbach, Leuthen, Zomsdorf, and Kunersdorf. The
following is one of Frederick's orders respecting marches,
(October 2d, 1760.)
" The army will, as usual, march in three colunms by
lines. The first column will consist of the first line ; the
second, of the second line ; and the third, of the reserve.
The wagons, and hospital wagons, of regiments, will fol-
low their corps. The batteries of heavy calibre will fol-
low the infantry brigades to which they are assigned. On
passing woods, the regiments of cavalry will march be-
tween twp infantry corps.
" Each column will have a vanguard of one light battal-
ion and ten squadrons of hussars or dragoons. They wiU
be preceded by three wagons carrying plank-bridges.
The rear-guard is charged with taking up these bridges
after the army has defiled over them.
"The parks wiU be divided among the columns, to
avoid the embarrassment resulting from a great many
wagons being together in a body.
" If any thing should happen to the second and third
columns, the king will be instantly apprized of it ; he will
be found at the head of the first column. Should any
thing occur to the rear-guard, the same will be instantly
commimicated to Lieutenant-general Zeithen, who will be
with the rear-guard of the first column.
" The officers wiU take care that the soldiers march
with equal step, and that they do not stray to the right or
left, and thus uselessly fatigue themselves and lose their'
distances.
" When orders are given to form the line, the wagons
LOGISTICS. gg
will file out of the columns to the left, and will march to
be parked," &c.
The position of the baggage, when near the enemy,
will depend on the nature of the march. If the march be
to the front, it will be in rear of the column ; if the march
be by the flank, and the enemy be on the outer flank, the
baggage will be on the inner one, most remote from danger ;
if the march be in retreat, the baggage will be in advance
of the army. In either case it should be strongly guarded.
It was in direct violation of this rule that General Hull,
in the campaign of 1812, on reaching the Miami of the
Lake, (Maumee,) embarked his baggage, stores, sick, con-
valescent, and " even the instructions of his government
and the returns of his army," on board the Cuyahoga
packet, and dispatched them for Detroit, while the army,
with the same destination, resumed its march by land.
The result of thus sending his baggage, stores, official
papers, &c., without a guard, and on the flank nearest the
enemy, was just what might have been anticipated : — ^in
attempting to pass the British post of Maiden the whole
detachment was attacked and captured, " by a subaltern
and six men, in a small and open boat."
To prevent a surprise, detachments of light troops should
be always thrown out in front, on the flanks, and in rear
of the column, denominated from their position, Advanced-
Gtiard, Flankers, and Rear-Cfuard. These scan the coun-
try which is to be passed over by the column, watch the
enemy's motions, and give notice of his approach in time
to allow the main force to choose a suitable field of battle,
and to pass from the order of march to that of combat.
The strength and composition of these detachments de-
pend upon the nature of the ground, and the character
and position of the enemy. In case of an attack they
retire slowly, and on joining the main body, take iheir
assigned position in the line of battle.
.160 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
, In an open country the order of march presents but
little difficulty ; but in a broken country, and especially in
the vicinity of the enemy, a march cannot be conducted
with too many precautions. Before engaging in a defile
it shoiild be thoroughly examined, and sufficient detach-
ments sent out to cover the main body from attack while
effecting the passage. A neglect of these precautions has
sometimes led to the most terrible disasters.
In military operations very much depends upon the
rapidity of marches. The Roman infantry, in Scipio's
campaigns in Africa, frequently marched a distance of
twenty miles in five hoiurs, each soldier carrying from fifty
to eighty pounds of baggage. Septimius Severus, Gibbon
states, marched from Vienna to Rome, a distance of eight
hundred miles, in forty days. Caesar marched from Rome
to the Sierira-Morena, in Spain, a distance of four hundred
and fifty leagues, in twenty-three days !
Napoleon excelled aU modem generals in the celerity
of his movements. Others have made for a single day
as extraordinary marches as the French, but for general
activity during a campaign they have no rivals in modem
history. A few examples of the rapidity of their move-
ments may not be without interest.
In 1797 a part of Napoleon's army left Verona after
having fought the battle of St. Michaels, on the 13th of
January, then marched all night upon Rivoli, fought in
the mountains on the 14th, returned to Mantua on the
15th, and defeated the army of Provera on the morning of
the 16th, — ^thus, in less than four days, having marched
near fifty leagues, fought three battles, and captured more
than twenty thousand prisoners ! Well might he write to
the Directory that his soldiers had surpassed the much
vaunted rapidity of Caesar's legions.
Jn the campaign of 1800, Macdonald, wishing to pre-
vent the escape of Loudon, in a single day marched forty
LOGISTICS. 101
miles, crossing rivers, and climbing mountains and gla-
ciers.
In 1805 the grand French army broke up their camp at
Boulogne, in the early part of September, and in two
weeks reached their allotted posts on the Rhine, averag-
ing daily from twenty-five to thirty miles.
During the same campaign the French infantry, pursu-
ing the Archduke Ferdinand in his retreat from Ulm,
marched thirty miles a day in dreadful weather, and over
roads almost impassable for artUlery.
Again, in the campaign of 1806, the French infantry
pursued the Prussians at the rate of from twenty-five to
thirty miles per day.
In 1808 the advanced posts of Napoleon's army pursued
Sir John Moore's army at the rate of twenty-five miles a
day, in the midst of winter. Napoleon transported an
army of fifty thousand men from Madrid to Astorga with
nearly the same rapidity, marching through deep snows,
across high moimtains, and rivers swollen by the winter
rains. The activity, perseverance, and endurance of his
troops, during these ten days' march, are scarcely equalled
in history.
In 1812, the activity of the French forces under Clau-
sel was truly extraordinary. After almost unheard-of
efforts at the battle of Salamanca, he retreated forty miles
in a little more thaa twelve hours !
In 1814, Napoleon's army marched at the rate of ten
leagues a day, besides fighting a battle every twenty-four
hours. Wishing to form a junction with other troops, for
the succor of Paris, he marched his army the distance of
seventy-five miles in thirty-six hours ; the cavalry march-
ing night and day, and the infantry travelling en paste.
• On his return from Elba, in 1815, his guards marched
fifty miles the first day after landing ; reached Grenoblo
through a rough and mountainous country, a distance of
102 MILITAKY ART AND SCIENCE.
two hundred miles, in six days, and reached Paris, a dis-
tance of six hundred miles, in less than twenty days !
The marches of the allied powers, during the wars of
the French Revolution, were much less rapid than those
of the armies of Napoleon. Nevertheless, for a single
day the English and Spaniards have made some of the
most extraordinary marches on record.
In 1809, on the day of the battle of Talavera, General
Crawford, fearing that Wellington was hard pressed, made
a forced march with three thousand men the distance of
sixty-two miles in twenty-six hours !
The Spanish regiment of Romana, in their march from
Jutland to Spain, marched the extraordinary distance of
fifty miles in twenty-one hours.
Cavalry, for a single day, wiU march a greater distance
than infantry ; but for a campaign of several months the
infantry will march over the most ground. In the Russian
campaign of Napoleon, his cavalry faUed to keep pace
with the infantry in his forced march on Moskwa. But
in the short campaigns of 1805 and 1806, the cavalry of
Murat displayed the most wonderful activity, and effected
more extraordinary results than any moimted troops of
modem ages.
The English cavalry, however, have made one or two
short marches with a rapidity truly extraordinary.
In 1803 Wellington's cavalry in India marched the dis-
tance of sixty miles in thirty-two hours.
But the march of the English cavalry under Lord Lake,
before the battle of Furruckabad, is, if we can trust the
English accounts, still more extraordinary than any thing
recorded of the Romans or the French — it is said that he
marched seventy miles in twenty-four hours ! ! !
As a general rule, troops marching for many days in
succession wiU move at the rate of from fifteen to twenty
miles per day. In forced marches, or in pursuit of a fly-
LOGISTICS. 103
ing enemy, they will average from twenty to twenty-five
miles per day. And for only two or three days in succes-
sion, with favorable roads, thirty miles per day may be
calculated on. Marches beyond this are unusual, and,
when they do occur, are the result of extraordinary cir-
cumstances.
Convoy. — A convoy consists of provisions, military mu-
nitions, &c., sent from one point to another, under the
charge of a detachment of troops, called an escort. When
regular depots and magazines are established, with proper
relations to the line of operations, convoys requiring par-
ticular escorts are seldom necessary, because the position
of the army will cover the space over which the magazines
are to be moved. But in the immediate vicinity of the en-
emy, or in a country whose inhabitants are hostile or in-
surrectionary, precautions of this kind should always be
resorted to.
The size and composition of the escort must depend
upon the nature of the country and the imminence of the
danger. The ground to be passed over should be previ-
ously reconnoitred, and the line of march be taken up only
after the most satisfactory reports When once put in mo-
tion, the convoy should be thoroughly hemmed in by flank-
ers, to give warning to the escort of the approach of the
enemy. Small parties of cavalry are detached on all sides,
but particularly in advance. The main body of the escort
is concentrated on the most exposed point of the convoy,
while the other sides are guarded by subdivisions. In
case of an attack by a large party, the baggage wagons
may be formed into a kind of defensive field-work, which,
with one or two pieces of light artillery, can in this way
resist a pretty strong effort to destroy or carry away the
convoy.
As a general rule, it is better to supply the wants of an
army by small successive convoys than by periodical and
104 MILITARY AHT AND SCIENCE.
large ones. Even should some of the former be captured,
their loss would not be materially felt ; but a large period-
ical convoy offers so great a temptation to the enterprise
of the enemy, and is so difficult to escort, that he will ven-
ture much to destroy it, and its loss may frustrate our plans
of a siege or of an important military operation. If the
Prussian army, when besieging Olmutz, had observed this
rule, the capture of a convoy would not have forced them
to raise the siege and to retreat.
Napoleon estimates that an army of 100,000 men in po-
sition will require the daily arrival of from four to five hun-
dred wagon loads of provisions.
The difficulty of moving provisions, baggage, &c., in a
retreat, is always very great, and the very best generals
have frequently faUed on this point. Indeed, the best con-
certed measures wiU sometimes fail, amid the confusion
and disorder consequent upon a retreat with an able and
active enemy in pursuit. In such a case, the loss of the
provision-trains in a sterile or unfriendly country may lead
to the most terrible disasters. We will allude to two ex-
amples o'f this kind : the retreat of the English from Spain
in 1809, and that of the French from Russia in 1812.
When Sir John Moore saw that a retreat had become
necessary to save his army from entire destruction, he di-
rected all the baggage and stores to be taken to the rear,
and every possible arrangement to be made for their pres-
ervation and for the regular supplies of the army. But the
want of discipline in his troops, and more especially the
want of a proper engineer organization to prepare the re-
quisite means ibr facilitating his own marches, and impe-
ding the enemy's pursuit, prevented his plans from being
fully carried into execution. Much suffering and great
losses were consequently inflicted upon his troops ; a large
portion of his baggage and military stores was captured,
and even the treasure of his army, amounting to some
LOGISTICS. 105
200,000 dollars, was abandoned throughi the ignorance and
carelessness of the escorting officer.
In Napoleon's march into Russia, his plans had been so
admirably combined, that from Mentz to Moscow not a sin-
gle estafette or convoy, it is said, was carried off in this
campaign ; nor was there a day passed without his re-
ceiving intelligence from France. When the retreat was
begun, (after the burning of Moscow,) he had six lines
of magazines in his rear ; the 1st, at Smolensk, ten days'
march from Moscow ; those of the 2d line at Minsk and
Wilna, eight marches from Smolensk ; those of the Sdline at
Kowno, Grodno, and Bialystok ; those of the 4th line at
Elbing, Marienwerder, Thorn, Plock, Modlin, and War-
saw ; those of the 5th line at Dantzic, Bamberg, and Po-
sen ; those of the 6th line at Stettin, Custrin, and Glogau.
When the army left Moscow it carried with it provisions
sufficient for twenty days, and an abundance of ammuni-
tion, each piece of artillery being supplied with three
hundred and fifty rounds ; but the premature cold weather
destroyed thirty thousand horses in less than three days,
thus leaving the trains without the means of transportation
or suitable escorts for their protection : the horrible suf-
ferings of the returning army now surpassed all descrip-
tion.
The officer selected to escort convoys should be a man
of great prudence, activity, and energy, for frequently very
much depends upon the safe and timely arrival of the pro-
visions and military stores which he may have in charge.
Castrametation. — Castrametation is, strictly speaking,
the art of laying out and disposing to advantage the sev-
eral parts of the camp of an army. The term is some-
times more extensively used to include all the means for
lodging and sheltering the soldiers during a campaign, and
all the arrangements for cooking, &c., either in the field
or in winter quarters. A camp, whether composed of tents
106 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
or barracks, or merely places assigned for bivouacking,
must be divided and arranged in such a way that the sev-
eral divisions shall be disposed as they are intended to be
drawn up in order, of battle ; so that, on any sudden alarm,
the troops can pass from it promptly, and form their line
of battle without confusion. Suitable places must also bo
assigned for cooking, for baggage, and for provisions, mil-
itary stores, and ammunitions.
The extent of the color front of a camp depends much
on the character of the ground and the means of defence,
but as a general rule, it should never exceed the position
which the army would occupy in the line of battle. The
different arms should be encamped in the same order as
that of battle ; this order of course depending on the na-
ture of the battle-ground. A corps d^armse is composed
of battalions of infantry, squadrons of cavalry, batteries of
artillery, and companies of engineer troops, and the art of
encampments consists in arranging each of these ele-
ments so as to satisfy the prescribed conditions.
The choice of ground for a camp must be governed,
1st, by the general rules respecting military positions,
and, 3d, by other rules peculiar to themselves, for they
may be variously arranged in a manner more or less suit-
able on the same position.
That the ground be suitable for defence, is the first and
highest consideration.
It should also be commodious and dry : moist ground in
the vicinity of swamps and stagnant waters, woidd endan-
ger the health of the army : for the same reason it should
not be subject to overflow or to become marshy by heavy
rains, and the melting of snow.
The proximity of good roads, canals, or navigable
streams, is important for furnishing the soldiers with all
the necessaries of life.
The proximity of woods is also desirable for furnishing
LOGISTICS. 107
firewood, materials for huts, for repairs of military equip-
ments, for works of defence, &c.
Good water within a convenient distance, is also an es-
sential element in the choice of ground for a camp ; with-
out this the soldiers' health is soon undermined. The
proximity of running streams is also important for the pur-
poses of washing and bathing, and for carrying off the
filth of the camp.
The camp should not be so placed as to be enfiladed or
commanded by any poiiit within long cannon range ; if
bordering on a river or smaller stream, there should be
space enough between them to form in order of battle ;
the communications in rear should ofier the means of re-
treating in case of necessity, but should not afibrd facilities
to the enemy to make his attack on that side.
If the camp is to be occupied for a considerable length
of time, as for cantonments or winter-quarters, the greater
must be the care in selecting its position and in the ar-
rangement for the health and comfort of the soldiers. In
the latter case, (of winter-quarters,) the engineer's art
should always be called in play to form intrenchments,
lines of abattis, inundations, &c., to render the position
as difficult of access to the enemy as possible.
A bivouac is the most simple kind of camp. It consists
merely of lines of fires, and huts for the ofiicers and sol-
diers. These huts may be made of straw, of wood ob-
tained from the forest, or by dismantling houses and other
buildings in the vicinity of the camp, and stripping them
of their timbers, doors, floors, &c. Troops may be kept
in bivouac for a few days, when in the vicinity of the en-
emy, but the exposure of the soldier in ordinary bivouacs,
especially in the rainy seasons or in a rigorous climate,
is exceedingly destructive of human life,' and moreover
leads to much distress to the inhabitants of the country
occupied, in the destruction of their dwellings and the
108 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
most common necessaries of life. If the position is to
be occupied for any length of time, the huts should be ar-
ranged like tents, according to a regular system, and made
comfortable for the troops. Such should always be the
system adopted in camps of practice or manoeuvre, in can-
tonments, winter-quarters, or in intrenched positions.
We have adopted in our service the system of encamp-
ing in tents. These may do very well imder the ordinary,
circumstances ; but in the active operations of a campaign
they are exceedingly objectionable, as greatly encumber-
ing the baggage-trains. It would seem preferable to re-
sort to bivouacs for the temporary camp of a single night,
and to construct a regular system of huts where a position
is to be occupied for any length of time. This may be
regarded as a general rule, but in certain countries and
climates, the tent becomes almost indispensable.
Napoleon's views on this subject are certainly interest-
ing, if not decisive of the question : " Tents," says he,
" are not wholesome. It is better for the soldier to bi-
vouac, because he can sleep with his feet towards the
fire ; he may shelter himself from the wind with a few
boards or a little straw. The ground upon which he lies
wiU be rapidly dried in the vicinity of the fire. Tents
are necessary for the superior officers, who have occasion
to read and consult maps, and who ought to be ordered
never to sleep in a house — a fatal abuse, which has given
rise to so many disasters. All the European nations have
so far followed the example of the French as to discard
their tents ; and if they be still used in camps of mere pa-
rade, it is because they are economical, sparing woods,
thatched roofs, and villages. The shade of a tree, against
the heat of the sim, and any sorry shelter whatever, against
the rain, are preferable to tents. The carriage of the
tents for each battalion would load five horses, who would
be much better employed in carrying provisions. T^nts
LOGISTICS. 109
are a subject of observation for tbe enemies' spies and
officers of the staff: they give them an insight into your
numbers, and the position that you occupy ; and this in-
convenience occurs every day, and every instant in the
day. An army ranged in two or three lines of bivouac is
only to be perceived at a distance by the smoke, which
the enemy may mistake for the vapor of the atmosphere.
It is impossible to count the number of fires ; it is easy,
however, to count the number of tents, and to trace out
the position that they occupy."
The guarding of camps is a very important matter, and
requires much attention.
The camp-guard consists of one or two rows of senti-
nels placed around the camp, and relieved at regular in-
tervals. The number of rows of sentinels, and the dis-
tance between each man, will depend upon the character
of the ground and the degree of danger apprehended.
Detachments. of infantry and cavalry, denominated pic-
quets, are also thrown out in front and on the flanks, which,
in connection with the camp-guards, serve to keep good
order and discipline in and around the camp, to prevent
desertions, intercept reconnoitering parties, and to give
timely notice of the enemy's approach.
Still larger detachments, denominated grand-guards, are
posted in the surromiding villages, farm-houses, or small
field-works, which they occupy as outposts, and from which
they can watch the movements of the enemy, and prevent
any attempts to surprise the camp. They detach patrols,
videttes, and sentries, to furnish timely notice of danger.
They should never be so far from the camp as to be be-
yond succor in case of sudden attack. Outposts, when
too far advanced, are sometimes destroyed without being
able to give notice of the enemy's approach.
In encamping troops in winter-quarters, it is sometimes
necessary to scatter them over a considerable extent of
110 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
ground, in order to facilitate their subsistence. In such
a case, the arrangement of guards requires the utmost
care. A chain of advanced posts should be placed several
miles' distance from the line of camp ; these posts should
be supported by other and larger detachments in their
rear, and concentrated on fewer points ; and the whole
country around should be continually reconnoitered by
patrols of cavalry.
The manner in which Napoleon quartered and wintered
his army on the Passarge, in 1806-7, furnishes a useful
lesson to inilitary men, both in the matters of encampment
and subsistence. An immense army of men were here
quartered and subsisted, in a most rigorous climate, with
a not over fertile soil, in the midst of hostile nations, and
in the very face of a most powerful enemy.
A Roman army invariably encamped in the same order,
its troops being always drawn up in the same battle array.
A Roman staff-officer who marked out an encampment,
performed nothing more than a mechanical operation ; he
had no occasion for much genius or experience. The
form of the camps was a square. In later times, they
sometimes, in imitation of the Greeks, made them circular,
or adapted them to the ground. The camp was always
surrounded with a ditch and rampart, and divided into two
parts by a broad street, and into subdivisions by cross-
streets and alleys. Each tent was calculated to hold ten
privates and a petty officer.
In the middle ages, the form of the camp did not differ
very essentially from that of the Romans, the variation
consisting principally in the interior arrangements, these
arrangements being made to correspond to the existing
mode of forming a line of battle. The details of this sys-
tem may be foxmd in the military work of Machiavelli.
The art of fixing a camp in modem times is the same
as taking up a line of battle on the same position. Of
LOGISTICS. Ill
course all the projectile machines must be in play and
favorably placed. The position must neither be com-
manded, out-fronted, nor surrounded ; but on the contrary
ought, as far as possible, to command and out-front the
enemy's position. But even in the same position there
are numerous modes of arranging an encampment, or of
forming a line of battle, and to select the best of these
modes requires great experience, coup d'ml, and genius.
In relation to this point Napoleon makes the following
remarks : —
" Ought an army to be confined to one single encamp-
ment, or ought it to form as many as it has corps or di-
visions 1 At what distance ought the vanguard and the
flankers to be encamped 1 What frontage and what depth
ought to be given to the camp ? Where should the caval-
ry, the artillery, and the carriages be distributed ? Should
the army be ranged in battle array, in several lines ? and
if it should, what space should there be between those
lines ? Should the cavalry be in reserve behind the in-
fantry, or should it be placed upon the wings ? As every
piece has sufficient ammunition for keeping up its fire
twenty-four hours, should all the artillery be brought into
action at the beginning of the engagement, or should half
of it be kept in reserve ?
" The solution of these questions depends on the follow-
ing circumstances : — 1st. On the number of troops, and
the numbers of infantry, artillery, and cavalry, of which
the army is composed. 2d. On the relation subsisting
between the two armies. 3d. On the quality of the troops.
4th. On the end in view. 5th. On the nature of the field.
And 6th. On the position occupied by the enemy, and on
the character of the general who commands them. Noth-
ing absolute either can or ought to be prescribed on this
head. In modem warfare there is no natural order of
battle.
112 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
" The duty to be perfpnned by the commander of an
anny is more difficult in modem armies, than it was in
those of the ancients. It is also certain that his influence
is more • efficacious in deciding battles. In the ancient
armies the general-in-chief, at a distance of eighty or a
hundred toises from the enemy, was in no danger ; and
yet he was conveniently placed, so as to have an oppor-
tunity of directing to advantage all the movements of his
forces. In modem armies, a general-in-chief, though re-
moved four or five hundred toises, finds himself in the
midst pf the fire of the enemy's batteries, and is very
much exposed; and still he is so distant that several
movements of the enemy escape him. In every engage-
ment he is occasionally obliged to approach within reach
of small-arms. The effect of modem arms is much in-
fluenced by the situation in which they are placed. A
battery of guns, with a great range and a commanding
position that takes the enemy obliquely, may be decisive
of a victory. Modem fields of battle are much more ex-
tended than those of the ancients, whence it becomes
necessary to study operations on a large scale. A much
greater degree of experience and military genius is re-
quisite for the direction of a modem army than was ne-
cessary for an ancient one."
Figure 9 represents a camp (on favorable ground) of a
grand-division of an army, composed of two brigades or
twelve battalions of infantry, twelve squadrons of cavalry,
five batteries of artillery, and three companies of engi-
neers.
Figure 10 represents the details of a camp of a bat-
talion of infantry composed of eight companies.
Figure 11 is the camp of a squadron of cavalry.
Figure 12 is the camp of two batteries of foot artillery,
or two companies of foot engineers.
Figure 13 is the camp of two batteries of mounted ar-
LOGISTICS. 113
tillery, or two companies of mounted sappers and pon-
toniers.
On undulating or broken ground the arrangement and
order of the general camp, as well as the details of the
encampment of each arm, would admit of much variation.*
* There are many valuable remarks on the various subjects com-
prised under the head of logistics, in the works of Jomiui, Grimoard,
Thiebaiilt, Boutourlin, Guibert, Laroche Amyon, Bousmard, Temay,
Yauchelle, Odier, Andouin, Bardin, Chemevrieres, Daznan, Ballyet,
Dremaux, Dupre d'Aulnay, Motin, and in the published regulations
and orders of the English army.
114 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER V,
TACTICS.
IV. Tactics. — We have defined tactics to be the art
of bringing troops into action, or of moving them in the
presence of the enemy ; — that is, within his view, and
within the reach of his artillery. This branch of the
military art has usually been divided into two parts : 1st.
Grand Tactics, or the tactics of battles ; and 2d. Elemen-
tary Tactics, or tactics of instruction.*
A battle is a general action between armies. If only a
small portion of the forces are engaged it is usually de-
nominated a combat, an affair, an action, a skirmish, &c.,
according to the character of the conflict. The art of
"^ combining and conducting battles of all descriptions has
been designated by the name of Grand Tactics.
Battles may be arranged into three classes ; 1st. De-
* " It does not come within tlie view of this work to say any thing of
the merely mechanical part of the art ; because it must be taken for
granted, that every man who accepts the command of an army
knows at least the alphabet of his trade. If he does not, (unless his
enemy be as ignorant as himself,) defeat and infamy await him.
Without understanding perfectly what are called the evolutions, how
is it possible that a general cein give to his own army that order of
battle which shall be most provident and skilful in each particular
case in which he may be placed ? How know which of these evolu-
tions the enemy employs against him ? and, of course, how decide on
a counter-movement which may be necessary to secure victory or
avoid defeat? The man who shall take the command of an army
without perfectly understanding this elementary branch, is no less
presumptuous than he who should pretend to teach Greek without
knowing even his letters. If we have such generals, let them, for
their own sakes, if not for their country's, put themselves immediately
to school."
TACTICS. 115
fensive battles, or those given in a chosen position by an
anny waiting the attack of the enemy. 2d. Offensive
battles, or those made by an army which attacks the en-
emy in position. 3d. The mixed or unforeseen battles,
given by two armies meeting while on the march.
I. When an army awaits the attack, it takes its posi-
tion and forms its line of battle according to the nature of
the ground and the supposed character and strength of
the enemy's forces. Such is usually the case when an
army wishes to cover a siege, protect a capital, guard
depots of provisions and military stores, or some import-
ant strategic point. The general relations of positions
with strategy and engineering have already been consid-
ered ; we will now discuss merely their relations to bat-
tles.
The first condition to be satisfied by a tactical position
is, that its debouches shall be more favorable for falling
on the enemy when he has approached to the desired
point, than those which the enemy can have for attacking
our line of battle. 2d. The artUlery should have its full
efiect upon all the avenues of approach. 3d. We should
have good ground for manoeuvring our own troops un-
seen, if possible, by the enemy. 4th. We should have a
full view of the enemy's mancBuvres as he advances to
j«the attack. 5th. We should have the flanks of our line
well- protected by natural or artificial obstacles. 6th. We
should have some means of effecting a retreat without
exposing oiur army to destruction.
It is very seldom that all these conditions can be satis-
fied at the same time ; and sometimes the very means of
satisfying one, may be in direct violation of another. A
river, a forest, or a mountain, which secures a flank of a
line of battle, may become an obstacle to a retreat, should
the defensive forces be thrown back upon that wing.
Again, the position may be diflicult of attack in front or
116 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
on the wings, and at tlie same time unfavorable f()r re-
treat. Such was Wellington's position at Waterloo. The
park of Hougomont, the hamlet of Haye Sainte, and the
marshy rivulet of Papelotte, were serious obstacles against
the attacking force ; but the marshy forest of Soignies in
rear, with but a single road, cut off all hope of retreat.
II. According to the strategic relations of the contend-
ing forces in a campaign, will it be determined whether
we are to await the enemy, or to seek him out and attack
him wherever he may be found. We may sometimes be
obliged to make the attack at all hazards, for the purpose
of preventing the junction of two corps, or to cut off
forces that may be separated from the main body by a
river, &c. As a general rule the attacking force has a
moral superiority over the defensive, but this advantage
is frequently more than counterbalanced by other condi-
tions.
The main thing in an offensive battle is to seize upon
the decisive point of the field. This point is determined
by the configuration of the groimd, the position of the
contending forces, the strategic object of the battle ; or,
by a combination of these. For example, when one wing
of the enemy rests on a. height that commands the re-
mainder of his line, this would seem the decisive point to
be attacked, for its occupation would secure the greatest
advantages ; but this point may be so very difficult of ac-
cess, or be so related to the strategic object as to render
its attack out of the question. Thus it was at the battle
of Bautzen : the left of the allies rested on the moimtains
of Bohemia, which were difficult of attack, but favorable
for defence ; moreover, their only line of retreat was on
the right, which thus became the point of attack for the
French, although the topographical and tactical key of the
field was on the left.
III. It frequently happens in modem warfare that bat-
TACTICS. 117
ties result from the meeting of armies in motion, both
parties acting on the offensive. Indeed, an army that is
occupying a defensive position may, on the approach of
the enemy, advance to meet him while on the march.
Battjes of this kind may partake of the mixed character
of oifensive and defensive actions, or they may be of the
nature of a surprise to both armies. To this class belong
the battles of Rosbach, Eylau, Lutzen,' Luzzara, Abens-
berg, &c.
Surprises were much more common in ancient than in
modem times, for the noise of musketry and the roar of
artillery, belonging to the posts or wings assailed, will
prevent any general surprise of an army. Moreover, the
division into separate masses, or corps d'armee, will ne-
cessarily confine the surprise to a part, at most, of the
forces employed. Nevertheless, in the change given to
military terms, a surprise may now mean only an unex-
pected combination of manoeuvres for an attack, rather
than an actuEil falling upon troops unguarded or asleep.
In this sense Marengo, Lutzen, Eylau, &c. are numbered
with surprises. Benningsen's attack on Murat at Zaran-
tin in 1812 was a true surprise, resulting from the gross
negligence and carelessness of the king of Naples.
An order of battle is the particular disposition given to
the troops for a determined manoeuvre on the field of bat-
tle. A line of battle is the general name applied to troops
drawn up in their usual order of exercise, without any
determined manoeuvre ; it may apply to defensive posi-
tions, or to offensive operations, where no definitive object
has been decided on. Military writers lay down twelve
orders of battle, viz.: 1st. The simple parallel order;
2d. The parallel order with a crotchet ; 3d. The parallel
order reinforced on one or both wings ; 4th. The parallel
order reinforced on the centre ; 5th. The simple oblique
order ; 6th. The oblique order reinforced on the assailing.
118 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
wing ; 7tli. The perpendicular order on one or both wings ;
8th. The concave order; 9th. The convex order ; 10th.
The order by echelon on one or both wings ; 11th. The
order by echelon on the centre ; 12th. The combined or-
ders of attack on the centre and one wing at the same
time.
(Figure 14.)* The simple parallel order is the worst pos-
sible disposition for a battle, for the two parties here fight
with equal chances, and the combat must continue till ac-
cident, superior numbers, or mere physical strength de-
cides the day; skill can have little or no influence in
such a contest.
(Figure 15.) The parallel order with a crotchet on
the flank, is sometimes used in a defensive position, and
also in the offensive with the crotchet thrown forward.
Malplaquet, Nordlingen, Prague, and Kolin, are examples
of this order. Wellington, at Waterloo, formed the paral-
lel order with the retired crotchet on the right flank.
(Figure 16.) A line of battle parallel to the enemy's,
if strongly reinforced on one point, is according to cor-
rect principles, and may in certain cases secure the vic-
tory ; but it has many inconveniences. The weak part
of the line being too near the enemy, may, notwithstand-
ing its efforts to the contrary, become engaged, and run
the risk of a defeat, and thereby counterbalance the ad-
vantages gained by the strong point. Moreover, the rein-
forced part of the line will not be able to profit by its
success ^by taking the enemy's line in flank and rear,
without endangering its- connection with the rest of the
line.
* In the plans, 6 is the army in position, and A the attacking force
arranged according to the different orders of battle. To simplify the
drawings, a single line represents the position of an army, whereas, in
practice, troops are usually drawn up in three lines. Each figure i«-
Ditsents a grand division of twelve battalions.
TACTICS. 119
(Figure 17) represents the parallel order reinforced on
the centre. The same remarks are applicable to this as to
the preceding.
These two orders were frequently used by the ancients ;
as at the battle of Zama, for example ; and sometimes by
modem generals. Turenne employed one of them at Ens-
heim.
(Figure 18) is the simple oblique order.
(Figure 19) is the oblique order, with the attacking wing
reinforced. This last is better suited for an inferior army
in attacking a superior, for it enables it to carry the mass
of its force on a single point of the enemy's line^ while the
weak wing is not only out of reach of immediate attack,
but also holds the remainder of the enemy's line in check
by acting as a reserve ready to be concentrated on the fa-
vorable point as occasion may require.
The most distinguished examples imder this order are
the battles of Leuctra and Mantinea, imder the celebrated
Epaminondas ; Leuthen, under Frederick ; the Pyramids,
Marengo, and Jena, under Napoleon.
(Figure 20.) An army may be perpendicular upon afiank
at the beginning of a battle, as was the army of Frederick
at Rosbach, and the Russian army at KunersdoriT; but
this order must soon change to the oblique. An attack
upon both wings can only be made when the attacking
force is vastly superior. At Eylau, Napoleon made a per-
pendicular attack on one wing at the same time that he
sought to pierce the enemy's centre.
(Figure 21.) The concave order may be used with ad
vantage in certain cases, and in particular localities. Han-
nibal employed it at the battle of Cannse, the English at
Crecy and Agincourt, and the Austrians at Essling, in
1809.
(Figure 22.) The convex order is sometimes formed to
cover a defile, to attack a concave line, or to oppose an
120 MILITARY iOlT AND SCIENCE.
attack before or after the passage of a river. The Ro-
mans formed this order at the battle of Cosilinum ; the
French at Ramilies in 1706, at Fleurus in 1794, at Ess-
ling in 1809, and at the second and third days of Leipsic
in 1813, and at Brienne in 1814.
(Figure 23.) The order by echelon on one wing may be
frequently employed with advantage ; but if the echelon be
made on both wings, there is the same objection to its use as
to the perpendicular order on both wings. At Dresden, Na-
poleon attacked both wings at the same time ; this is the
only instance in his whole history of a similar attack, and
this was owing to peculiar circumstances in the groimd
and in the position of his troops.
(Figure 24.) The echelon order on the centre alone may
be employed with success against an army formed in a
thin or too extended line of battle, for it woidd be pretty
certain to penetrate and break the line.
The echelon order possesses in general very great ad-
vantages. The several corps composing the army may
manoeuvre separately, and consequently with greater ease.
Each echelon covers the flank of that which precedes it ;
and all may be combined towards a single object, and ex-
tended with the necessary ensemble. At the battle of the
Pjrramids, Napoleon formed the oblique order in echelon
by squares. Portions of his forces were arranged in eche-
lon in some of his other battles.
(Figure 25.) The combined order in columns on the
centre and one extremity at the same time, is better suited
than either of the preceding for attacking a strong contig-
uous line. Napoleon employed this order at Wagram,
Ligny, Bautzen, Borodino, and Waterloo.
It is impossible to lay down, as a general rule, which
of these orders of battle should be employed, or that either
should be exclusively followed throughout the whole bat-
tle. The question must be decided by the general him-
TACTICS. 121
self on the ground, where all the circumstances may be
duly weighed. An order well suited to one position might
be the worst possible in another. Tactics is in this re-
spect the very reverse of strategy — the latter being subject
to more rigid and invariable rules.
But whatever the plan adopted by the attacking force,
it should seek to dislodge the enemy, either by piercing
or turning his line. If it can conceal its real intentions,
and deceive him respecting the true point of attack, suc-
cess will be more certain and decisive. A turning ma-
noeuvre may frequently be employed with advantage at the
same time with the main attack on the line. The opera-
tions of Davoust at Wagram, and Richepanse at Hohen-
linden, are good examples imder this head. The ma-
noiuvre is, however, a difficult one, and unless executed
with skiU, may lead to disasters like the turning manoBuvres
of the Austrians at Rivoli and Austerlitz, and of the French
under Jourdan at Stackach, and under Marmont at Sala-
manca.
We will now discuss the particular manner of arranging
he troops on the line of battle, or the manner of employ-
ing each arm, without entering, however, much into the
detailed tactics of formation and instruction.
We shall begin with infantry, as the most important arm
on the battle-field.
There are four different ways of forming infantry for
battle : 1st, as tirailleurs, or light troops ; 2d, in deployed
lines ; 3d, in lines of battalions, ployed on the central di-
vision of each battalion, or formed in squares ; 4th, in deep
masses.
These different modes of formation are reduced to four
separate systems : 1st, the thin formation of two deployed
lines ; 2d, a line of battalions in columns of attack on the
centre, or in squares by battalions ; 3d, a combination of
these two, or the first line deployed, and the second in
11
122 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
columns of attack ; and 4th, the deep formation of heavy
colmuns of several battalions. The tirailleurs are merely
accessories to the main forces, and are employed to fill
up intervals, to protect the march of the columns, to an-
noy the enemy, and to manoeuvre on the flanks.
1st. Formerly the line of battle for infantry was very gen-
erally that of two deployed lines of troops, as shown in Fig.
26. But reason and experience have demonstrated that
infantry in this thin or light order can only move very
slowly ; that in attempting rapid movements it breaks and
exhibits great and dangerous undulations, and would be
easily pierced through by troops of a deeper order. Hence
it is that the light formation is only proper when the in-
fantry is to make use of its -fire, and to remain almost sta-
tionary.
2d. If the formation of a line of battaUons in columns
of attack be employed, the depth and mobility will depend
upon the organization or habitual formation of this arm.
In our service a battalion is supposed to be composed
of ten companies, each formed in three ranks. The two
flank companies are designed for tirailleurs. This would
give a column of four divisions, and consequently twelve
files deep ; and as only two of these files could employ
their fire, there would be much too large a portion of non-
combatants exposed to the enemy's artillery. In practice,
however, we employ the two-rank formation, which, if the
flank companies be detached, would give a column of at-
tack eight files in depth, which is not objectionable. If
however, the flank companies should be present in the
battalion, the depth of the column would stiU be ten files.
In the French service, each battalion is composed of
four divisions, formed in either two or three ranks. The
two-rank formation is the one habitually employed. If all
the companies be present, and the formation in three ranks,
the depth of column wiU be twelve fil^s ; if in two ranks
TACTICS. 123
the depth will be eight files. If the flank companies be
detached, the depth of column will be, for three ranks nine
files, and for two ranks six files. (Figs. 27 and 28.)
In the Russian service each battalion has four divisions
of three ranks each. But the third rank is employed as
tirailleurs, which gives a depth of column of eight files.
The employment of the third rank for tirailleurs is deemed
objectionable on account of the difficulty of rallying them
on the column. For this reason, the best authorities pre-
fer detaching an entire division of two companies.
The formation of squares is exceedingly effective in an
open country, and against an enemy who is superior in
cavalry. Formerly very large squares were employed,
but they are now formed either by regiment or by battal-
ion. The former are deemed best for the defensive, and
the latter for offensive movements. The manner of ar-
ranging these is shown in Figure 29.
3d. The mixed system, or the combination of the two
preceding, has sometimes been employed with success.
Napoleon used this formation at Tagliamento, and the
Russians at Eylau. Each regiment was composed of
three battalions, the first being deployed in line, and the
other two formed in columns of attack by division in rear
of the two extremities, as shown in Fig. 30. It may in
some cases be better to place the secdud and third bat-
talions in line with the first, and on the two extremities of
this battalion, in order to prolong the line of fire. The
centre of the line of each regiment would be less strong,
however, than when the two battalions by column are
placed in rear of the other which is deployed. This
mixed system of formation has many advocates, and in
certain situations may be employed with great advantage.
4th. The deep order of heavy columns of several bat-
talions is objectionable as an habitual formation for battle,
inasmuch as it exposes large masses of men to the ravages
124 MILITARY AET AND SCIENCE.
of artillery, and diminislies the mobility and impulsion of
an attack withoTit adding greatly to its force. Macdonald
led a column of this kind at the battle of Wagram with
complete success, although he experienced enormous
losses. But Ney's heavy columns of attack at Waterloo
failed of success, and suffered terribly from the concentric
fire of the enemy's batteries.
Whenever deep columns are employed, Jomini recom-
mends that the grand-division of twelve battalions should
have one battalion on each flank, (Fig. 31,) marching by
files, in order to protect its flanks from the enemy's at-
tacks. Without this defence a column of twelve bat-
talions deep becomes an inert mass, greatly exposed to be
thrown into disorder or broken, as was the column of Fon-
tenoy, and the Macedonian phalanx by Paulus Emillus.
A grand-division is sometimes arranged in two columns
by brigade, as is represented in Figure 32. These are less
heavy than a single column of grand-division by battalion,
but are subject to nearly the same objections.
All offensive operations on the field of battle require
mobility, solidity, and impulsion ; while, on the other hand,
all defensive operations should combine solidity with the
■ greatest possible amount of fire.
Troops in motion can make but little use of their fire-
arms, whatever may be their formation. If in very large
masses, they move slower and are more exposed ; but the
moral efiect of these large moveable columns is such, that
they frequently carry positions without ever emplo3Tng
their fire. The French columns usually succeeded against
the Austrian and Prussian infantry, but the English in-
fantry could not so easily be driven from their groimd ;
hey also employed their fire to greater advantage, as was
shown at Talavera, Busaco, Fuente de Honore, Albuera,
and Waterloo. The smaller columns and the mixed for-
mation were always most successful against such troops.
TACTICS. 125
From these remarks we must conclude — 1st, That the
very thin as well as the very deep formation is objec-
tionable under ordinary circumstances, and can seldom be
employed with safety.
2d. That the attack by battalions in colimms by division
is the best for carrying a position ; the column shoidd,
however, be diminished in depth as much as possible, in
order both to increase its own fire and to diminish its ex-
posure to the fire of the enemy ; moreover, it should be
well covered by tirailleurs and supported by cavalry.
3d. That the mixed formation of the first line deployed
and the second in columns of battalion by division is the
best for defence.
4th. That either of the last two may be employed in
the ofifensive or defensive, according to the nature of the
ground, the character of the general, and the character
and position of the troops. Squares are always good
against cavalry.
Troops should be habituated to all these formations, and
accustomed to pass rapidly from one to another in the
daytime or at night. None, however, but disciplined
troops can do this : hence the great superiority of regulars
on the field of battle, where skilful manceuvres frequently
efiect more than the most undaunted courage.
The arm next in importance on the battle-field is cav-
alry. The principal merit of this arm consists in its velo-
city and mobility. Cavalry has little solidity, and cannot
of itself defend any position against infantry ; but in con-
nection with the other arms, it is indispensable for begin-
ning a battle, for completing a victory, and for reaping
its full advantage by pursuing and destroying the beaten
foe.
There are four difierent modes of forming cavalry, the
same as for infantry : 1st, in deployed lines ; 2d, a line of
regiments in column of attack on the centre ; 3d, the
126 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
mixed formation ; and 4tli, the deep formation of several
columns.
1st. The thin formation was deemed objectionable for
infantry, on account of its liability to be penetrated by
cavalry. The same objection does not hold so forcibly
with respect to this latter arm ; but full lines are deemed
less advantageous than lines deployed checker-wise or in
echelon. In either case the distance between the lines
should be sufficient to prevent the second line from com-
ing in contact with the first, in case the latter receives a
slight check. This distance need not be so great in lines
deployed checker-wise, as when they are full, or in ech-
elon.
2d. The second system of formation, that is, a line of
columns of attack on the central division for infantry, is
by battalion, but for cavalry, by regiment. If the regiment
is composed of eight squadrons, the column will contain
four lines, two squadrons forming a division ; but if com-
posed of only six squadrons, the column will contain only
three lines, and consequently will be six files in depth.
In either case the distance between the lines should be
that of a demi-squadron, when the troops are drawn up in
battle array ; but when charging, the divisions may close
to a less distance.
3d. In forming a grand division of two brigades, by the
third or mixed system, two regiments may be deployed
in the first line, and three formed in columns of attack in
rear of the flanks and centre, as is shovra in Fig. 33, the
sixth being held in reserve. This formation is deemed a
good one.
4th. The fourth system, of deep columns of cavalry, is
entirely unsuited for the charge, and this formation can
only be employed for troops drawn up in reserve.
The flanks of lines or columns of cavalry are always
much exposed, and squadrons should therefore be formed
TACTICS. 127
in echelon on the right and left, and a little in rear of the
main body, in order to protect the flanks from the attacks
of the enemy's horse. Irregular cavalry is usually em-
jployed for this purpose.
In the formation of a grand division in line of battle,
care should be taken not to give too great an extent to the
command of the generals of brigade. If the formation be
in two lines, neither brigade should form an entire line,
but each should form a -wing of the division, two regiments
of the same brigade being placed in rear of each other.
This rule is an important one, and should never be ne-
glected.
It may also be laid down as a maxim, in the formation
of cavalry on the battle-field, that the first line after the
charge, even if most successful, may require reforming iu
rear of the second line, and that this last should be pre-
pared to act in the front line after the first onset. The
success of the battle frequently depends upon the charge
of the final reserve of cavalry on the fianks of lines already
engaged.
It is on accoimt of this frequent manoeuvring of the cav-
alry on the battle-field, its reforming for repeated charges,
that great bodies deployed in full lines are principally ob-
jected to. They cannot be handled with the facility and
rapidity of columns of regiments by divisions. The at-
tack of Nansouty's cavalry, formed in this way, on the
Prussian cavalry, deployed in advance of Chateau-Thierry,
in 1814, is a good proof of this.
Cavalry may be brought to a charge — 1st, in columns ;
2d, in line ; and 3d, in route, or at random, (d la deban-
dade.) These may also be varied by charging either at a
trot or a gallop. All these modes have been employed
with success. In a regular charge in line the lance ofiiers
great advantages ; in the m61ee the sabre is the best weap-
on; hence some military writers have proposed arming
128 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE,
the front rank with, lances, and ihe second with sabres.
The pistol and the carabine are useless in the charge, but
may sometimes be- employed with advantage against con-
voys, outposts, and light cavalry ; to fire the carabine with
any effect, the troop must be at a halt. In all charges in
line, especially against cavalry, the fast trot is deemed
preferable to the gallop, on account of the difficulty of
keeping up the alignment when the speed is increased.
Lances are utterly useless in a m6l6e, and in employing
troops armed in this way, it is of the greatest importance
to keep them in order and in line. In charging with the
sabre against artillery the gaUop may sometimes be em-
ployed, for velocity here maybe more important than force.
We will now consider the formation and use of artillery
on the field of battle. It may be laid down as a funda-
mental principle, that the fire of artillery should be di-
rected on that part of the enemy's line which we design
to pierce ; for this fire will not only weaken this point,
but will also aid the attack of the cavalry and infantry
when the principal efforts are directed towards the in-
tended point.
In the defence, the artillery is usually distributed through-
out the whole line, on groimd favorable for its fire ; but
the reserve should be so placed that it can easily be
brought, to bear on the point where the enemy wUl be
most likely to direct his principal attack.
Artillery placed on a plain, or with ground slightly in-
clined in front, and using the point-blank or ricochet fife,
is the most effective ; very high points are unfavorable.
If possible, the concentric fire should be employed against
the enemy's columns of attack. The position of the Eng-
lish artillery on the field of Waterloo, and the use of the
concentric fire, furnishes one of the best examples for the
disposition of this arm to be found in moderm military
history.
TACTICS. 129
The proper use of artillery on the battle-field is against
the enemy's infantry and cavalry, consequently only a
small part of it should be employed to respond to the fire
of the enemy's batteries ; not more than one third at most
can be spared for this object.
If possible, batteries should be established so as to take
the enemy's line in flank, either by an oblique or enfilading
fire. A direct fire against columns of attack, with a few
light pieces thrown out to take it in flank at the same time,
will always be advantageous. A direct and fiank fire was
employed with success by Kleist against the column of
Ney at the battle of Bautzen ; the French marshal was
forced to change his direction.
Batteries should always be well secured on the flanks,
and constantly sustained by infantry or cavalry. If at-
tacked by cavalry, the artillery should keep up its fire as
long as possible, first with ball, and then with grape when
the enemy arrives within a suitable distance. The .same
rule will apply to attacks of infantry, except that the fire
of solid shot at a great distance is much less efiective than
against mounted troops.
The engineer troops are employed on the field of battle
principally by detachments, acting as auxiliaries to the
other arms. Each regiment of infantry should have a de-
tachment of sappers armed with axes to act as pioneers,
for the removaj of obstacles that may impede its advance.
These sappers are of the utmost importance, for without
them an entire column might be checked and thrown into
confusion by impediments which a few sappers with their
axes would remove in a very short time. Detachments of
engineer troops must also act in concert with the cavalry
and artillery for the same purpose as above. In establish-
ing the batteries of artillery, in opening roads for their ma-
noeuvres, and in arranging material obstacles for their de-
fence, the axes, picks, and shovels of the sappers are of
130 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
*
infinite value. Field-works, bridges, and bridge-defences,
frequently have a decisive influence upon the result of a
battle, but as these are usually arranged previous to the ac-
tion, they will be discussed in another place. In the at-
tack and defence of these field-works, the engineer troops
play a distinguished part. The consideration of this part
of the subject, though perhaps properly belonging to
the tactics of battles, will also be postponed to another
occasion.
We will now discuss the employment of the combined
arms on the field of battle.
Before the French Revolution, all the infantry, formed
by regiments and brigades, was united in a single body
and drawn up in two lines. The cavalry was placed on
the two flanks, and the artillery distributed along the en-
tire line. In moving by wings, they formed four columns,
two of cavalry and two of infantry : in moving by a flank,
they formed only two very long columns ; the cavalry,
however, sometimes formed a third and separate column
in flank movements, but this disposition was rarely made.
The French Eevolution introduced the system of grand
divisions composed of the four arms combined ; each di-
vision moved separately and independently of the other.
In the wars of the Empire, Napoleon united two or more
of these divisions into a corps d^armee, which formed a
wing, the centre, or reserve of his grand army. In addition
to these divisions and corps d'armee, he had large reserves
of cavalry and artillery, which were employed as distinct
and separate arms.
■ If the forces be sufiiciently numerous to fight by corps
d^armee, each corps should have its own reserve, inde-
pendent of the general reserve of the army. Again, if the
forces be so small as to act by grand divisions only, each
division should then have its separate reserve.
An army, whether composed of separate corps or of
TACTICS. 131
grand divisions, usually forms, on the field of battle, a cen-
tre, two wings, and a reserve. Each corps or division
acts by itself, with its infantry, cavalry, artillery, and en-
gineer troops. The reserve of cavalry may be formed in
rear of the centre or one of the wings. In small forces
of fifty or sixty thousand men, the cavalry may act with
advantage on the wings, in the manner of the ancients.
If the reserve of this arm be large enough to form three
separate bodies, it may itself Yery properly be formed into
a centre and wings. If it be formed into two columns
only, they may be placed in rear of the openings between
the centre and the wings of the main force. The reserve
of artillery is employed either to reinforce the centre or
a wing, and in the defensive is frequently distributed
throughout the whole line of battle. In ofiensive opera-
tions, it may be well to concentrate as much fire as possi-
ble on the intended point of attack. The mounted artil-
lery either acts in concert with the cavalry, or is used to
reinforce that arm ; the light-foot acts with the infantry,
and the batteries of heavy calibre are distributed along
the line, or concentrated on some important point where
their fire may be most effectual. They reach the .enemy's
forces at a distance, and arrest the impulsion of his attack.
They may also be employed to draw the fire of his artil-
lery ; but their movements are too slow and difiicult for a
reserve.
The order of succession in which the different arms
are engaged in a battle, depeiids upon the nature of the
ground and other accidental circumstances, and cannot be
determined by any fixed rules. The following, however,
is most frequently employed, and in ordinary cases may
be deemed good. •
The attack is first opened by a carmonade ; light troops
are sent forward to annoy the enemy, and, if possible, to
pick off his artillerists. The main body then advances in
132 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
two lines : the first displays itself in line as it arrives
nearly within the range of grape-shot; the second line re-
mains in columns of attack formed of battalions by division,
at a distance from the first sufficient to be beyond the
reach of the enemy's musketry, but near enough to sup-
port the first line, or to cover it, if driven back. The
artillery, in the mean time, concentrates its fire on some
weak point to open a way for the reserve, which rushes
into the opening and takes the enemy in flank and rear.
The cavalry charges at the opportune moment on the
flank of the enemy's columns or penetrates an opening in
his line, and cutting to pieces his staggered troops, forces
them into retreat, and completes the victory. During this
time the whole line of the enemy should be kept occupied,
so as to prevent fresh troops from being concentrated on
the threatened point.
The following maxims on battles may be studied with
advantage : — 1st. General battles are not to be fought but
under the occurrence of one of the following circmn-
stances : when you are, from any cause, decidedly supe-
rior to the enemy ; when he is on the point of receiving
reinforcements, which will materially effect your relative
strength ; when, if not beaten or checked, he will deprive
you of supplies or reinforcements, necessary to the con-
tinuance or success of your operations ; and, generally,
when the advantage of winning the battle will be greater
than the disadvantage of losing it.
2d. Whatever may be your reason for risking a general
battle, you ought to regard as indispensable preliminaries,
— a thorough knowledge of the ground on which you are to
act ; an ample supply of ammunition ; the most perfect
order in your fire-arms ; hospital dlp6ts regularly estab-
lished, with surgeons, nurses, dressings, &c., sufScient
for the accommodation of the wounded ; points of ren-
dezvous established and known to the commanders of
TACTICS. 133
corps ; and an entire possession of the passes in your
own rear.
3d. The battle being fought and won, the victory must
be followed up with as much alacrity and vigor, as though
nothing had been gained, — a maxim very difficult of ob-
servance, (from the momentary disobedience which per-
vades all troops flushed with conquest,) but with which
an able general will never dispense. No one knew better
the use of this maxim than Napoleon, and no one was a
more strict and habitual observer of it.
4th. The battle being fought and lost, it is your first
duty to do away the moral effect of defeat, — the want of
that self-respect and self-confidence, which are its imme-
diate followers, and which, so long as they last, are the
most powerful auxiliaries of your enemy. It is scarcely
necessary to remark that, to effect this object, — to re-
inspire a beaten army with hope, and to reassure it of
victory, — ^we must not turn our backs on an enemy, without
sometimes presenting to him our front also ; — we must not
confide our safety to mere flight, but adopt such measures
as shall convince him that though wounded and overpow-
ered, we are neither disabled nor dismayed ; and that we
stUl possess enough both of strength and spirit to punish
his faults, should he commit any. Do you operate in a
covered or mountainous country? — ^avail yourself of its
ridges and woods ; for by doing so you will best evade
the pressure of his cavalry. Have you defiles or villages
to pass ? — seize the heads of these, defend them obsti-
nately, and make a show of fighting another battle. In a
word, let no error of your enemy, nor any favorable inci-
dent of the ground, escape your notice or your use. It is
by these means that your enemy is checked, and your
troops inspirited ; and it was by these that Frederick
balanced his surprise at Hohenkirchen, and the defeat of
his plans before Olmutz. The movement of our own
134 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Washington, after losing the battle of Brandy wine, was
of this character. He hastily recrossed the Schuylkill
with the professed intention of seeking the enemy and
renewing the combat, which was apparently prevented
onljr by a heavy and incessant fall of rain. A rumor was
now raised that the enemy, while refusing his left wing,
was rapidly advancing upon his right, to intercept our
passage of the river, and thus gain possession of Phil-
adelphia. This report justified a retreat, which drew
from the General repeated assurances, that in quitting his
present position and giving to his march a retrograde di-
rection, it was not his object to avoid, but to follow and
to fight the enemy. This movement, though no battle
ensued, had the efiect of restoring the confidence as well
of the people as of the army.*
* There Eire mnnmerable works in almost every language on ele-
mentary tactics ; very few persons, however, care to read any thing
further than the manuals used in our own service. Our system of
infantry, cavalry, and artillery tactics is generally taken from the
French ; and also the course of engineer instruction, so far as matured,
for sappers, miners, and pontoniers, is based on the French manuals
for the varied duties of this arm.
On Grand Tactics, or Tactics of Battles, the military and historical
writmgs of General Jomini abomid in most valuable instructions. Na-
poleon's memoirs, and the writings of Rocquancourt, Hoyer, Decker,
Okouneff, Rogniat, Jocquinot-de-FresIe, Guibert, Duhesme, Gas-
sendi, Wamery, Baron Bohan, Lindneau, Maiseroy, Miller, and Ter-
nay, are considered as being among the best authorities.
MILITARY POLITY. 135
CHAPTER VI.
MILITARY POLITY AND THE MEANS OF NATIONAL DEFENCE.
Military Polity. — In deciding upon a resort to arms,
statesmen are guided by certain general rules' which have
been tacitly adopted in the intercourse of nations : so also
both statesmen and generals are bound by rules similarly
adopted for the conduct of hostile forces while actually
engaged in military operations.
In all differences between nations, each state has a right
to decide for itself upon the nature of its means of redress
for injuries received. Previous to declaring open and
public war, it may resort to some other forcible means of
redress, short of actual war. These are : —
1st. Laying an embargo upon the property of' the of-
fending nation.
2d. Taking forcible possession of the territory or prop-
erty in dispute.
3d. Resorting to some direct measure of retaliation.
4th. Making reprisals upon the persons and things of
the offending nation.
It is not the present purpose to discuss these several
means of redress, nor even to enter into any examinatior
of the rights and laws of public war, when actually de-
clared ; it is intended to consider here merely such mili-
tary combinations as are resorted to by the state in prep-
aration for defence, or in carrying on the actual operations
of a war.
In commencing hostilities against any other power, we
must evidently take into consideration all the political and
136 MiLiTAay art and science.
physical circumstances of the people with whom we are
to contend : we must regard their general character for
courage and love of country; their attachment to their
government and political institutions ; the character of their
rulers and their generals ; the numbers, organization, and
discipline of their armies ; and particularly the relations
between the civil and military authorities in the state, for
if the latter be made entirely subordinate, we may very
safely calculate on erroneous combinations. We must
also regard their passive means of resistance, such as
their system of fortifications, their military materials and
munitions, their statistics of agriculture, commerce, and
manufactures, and especially the geographical position and
physical features of their country. No government can
neglect, with impunity, these considerations in its prepar-
ations for war, or in its manner of conducting military
operations.
Napoleon's system of carrying on war against the weak,
effeminate, and disorganized Italians required many modi-
fications when directed against the great military power
of Russia. Moreover, the combinations of Eylau and
Friedland were inapplicable to thef contest with the mad-
dened guerrillas of Minos, animated by the combined
passions of hatred, patriotism, and religious enthusiasm.
Military power may be regarded either as absolute or
relative : the absolute force of a state depending on the
number of its inhabitants and the extent of its revenues ;
the relative force, on its geographical and political posi-
tion, the character of its people, and the nature of its
government. Its military preparations should evidently
be in proportion to its resources. Wealth constitutes both
the apprehension and the incentive to invasion. Where
two or more states have equal means of war, with incen-
tives very unequal, an equilibrium cannot exist ; for dan-
ger and temptation are no longer opposed to each other.
MILITARY POLITY. 137
The preparation of states may, therefore, be equal with-
out being equivalent, and the smaller of the two may be
most liable to be drawn into a war without the means of
sustaining it.
The numerical relation between the entire population
of a state, and the armed forces which it can maintain,
must evidently vary with the wealth and pursuits of the
people. Adam Smith thinks that a country purely agri-
cultural may, at certain seasons, furnish for war one-fifth,
or even in case of necessity one-fourth, of its entire popu-
lation. A commercial or manufacturing country would be
unable to furnish any thing like so numerous a military
force. On this account small agricultural states are some-
times able to bring into the field much larger armies than
their more powerful neighbors. During the Seven Years'
War, Frederick supported an army equal to one-twentieth
of the entire Prussian population, and at the close of this
memorable contest one-sixth of the males capable of bear-
ing arms had actually perished on the field of battle.
But the number of troops that may be brought into the
field in times of great emergency is, of course, much
greater than can be supported during a long war, or as a
part of a permanent military establishment. Montesquieu
estimates that modem nations are capable of supporting,
without endangering their power, a permanent military
force of about one-hundredth part of their population.
This ratio differs but little from that of the present mili-
tary establishments of the great European powers.
Great Britain, with a population of about twenty-five
millions, and a general budget of $250,000,000, supports
a military and naval force of about 150,000 effective and
100,000 non-effective men, 250,000 in all, at an annual
expense of from seventy to eighty millions of dollars.
Russia, with a population of about seventy millions,
supports an active army of 632,000 men, with an ira-
138 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
mense reserve, at an expense of about $65,000,000, out
of a general budget of $90,000,000 ; that is, the expense
of her military establishment is to her whol^ budget as 7
to 10.
Austria, with a population of thirty-five millions, has an
organized peace establishment of 370,000, (about 250,000
in active service,) and a reserve of 260,000, at an ex-
pense of $36,000,000, out of a general budget of
$100,000,000.
Prussia, with a population of about fifteen mUlions, has
from 100,000 to 120,000 men in arms, with a reserve of
200,000, at an annual expense of more than $18,000,000,
out of a general budget of about $38,000,000.
France, with a population of near thirty-five millions,
supports a permanent establishment of about 350,000
men, at an expense of seventy or eighty millions of dol-
lars, out of a total budget of $280,000,000. France has
long supported a permanent military force of from one-
hundredth to one hundred-and-tenth of her population, at
an expense of from one-fourth to one-fifth of her whole
budget. The following table, copied from the " Specta-
teur MUitaire," shows the state of the army at six difiier-
ent periods between 1788 and 1842. It omits, of course^
the extraordinary levies of the wars of the Revolution
and of the Empire.
MILITARY POLITY.
Table.
139
Popalation.
Badget.
Army.
Of State.
Of the Ar-
my.
Peace
Estab.
War
Estab.
1788
1814
1823
1830
1840
1842
24,000,000
28,000,000
31,000,000
32,000,000
34,000,000
35,000,000
Livres.
500,000,000
Francs.
800,000,000
800,000,000
1,000,000,000
1,170,000,000
1,200,000,000
Livres.
100,000,000
Francs.
180,000,000
200,000,000
220,000,000
242,000,000
285,000,000
Men.
180,000
255,000
280,000
312,000
312,000
370,000
Men.
360,000
340,000
390,000
500,000
520,000
Ordinance
} of 1814.
t Report of
< Minister
( of War.
( Report of
< Aunister
( of War.
Budget of
{ 1840.
^Estimated
{ Expenses
( of 1842.
From these data we see that the great European powers
at the present day maintain, in time of peace, military es-
tablishments equal to about one-hundredth part of their
entire population.
The geographical position of a country also greatly in-
fluences the degree and character of its military prepar-
ation. It may be bordered on one or more sides by
mountains and other obstacles calculated to diminish the
probability of invasion ; or the whole frontier may be wide
open to an attack : the interior may be of such a nature as
to furnish security to its own army, and yet be fatal to the
enemy should he occupy it ; or it may furnish him advan-
tages far superior to his own country. It may be an island
in the sea, and consequently exposed only to maritime de-
scents — events of rare occurrence in modern times.
Again, a nation may be placed between others who are
interested in its security, their mutual jealousy preventing
the molestation of the weaker neighbor. On the other
hand, its political institutions may be such as to compel
140 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the others to unite in attacking it in order to secure them-
selves. The republics of Switzerland could remain un-
molested in the midst of powerful monarchies ; but revolu-
tionary France brought upon herself the armies of all
Europe.
Climate has also some influence upon military charac-
ter, but this influence is far less than that of education and
discipline. Northern nations are said to be naturally more
phlegmatic and sluggish than those of warmer climates ;
and yet the armies of Gustavus Adolphus, Charles XII.,
and Suwarrow, have shown themselves sufficiently active
and impetuous, while the Greeks, Romans, and Spaniards,
in the times of their glory, were patient, disciplined, and
indefatigable, notwithstanding the reputed fickleness of
ardent temperaments.
For any nation to postpone the making of military prep-
arations till such time as they are actually required in
defence, is to waste the public money, and endanger the
public safety. The closing of an avenue of approach, the
security of a single road or river, or even the strategic
movement of a small body of troops, often effects, in the
beginning, what afterwards cannot be accomphshed by
large fortifications, and the most formidable armies. Had
a small army in 1812, with a well-fortified depot on Lake
Champlain, penetrated into Canada, and cut oS all rein-
forcements and supphes by way of Quebec, that country
would inevitably have fallen into our possession. In the
winter of 1806-7, Napoleon crossed the Vistula, and ad-
vanced even to the walls of Konigsberg, with the Aus-
trians in his rear, and the whole power of Russia before
him. If Austria had pushed forward one hundred thou-
sand men from Bohemia, on the Oder, she would, in all
probability, says the best of mihtary judges, Jomini, have
struck a fatal blow to the operations of Napoleon, and his
army must have been exceedingly fortunate even to regain
MILITARY POLITY. 141
the Rhine. But Austria preferred remaining neutral till
she could increase her army to four hundred thousand men.
She then took the oiFensive, and was beaten ; whereas,
with one hundred thousand men brought into action at the
favorable moment, she might, most probably, have decided
the fate of Europe.
" Defensive war," says Napoleon, " does not preclude
attack, any more than offensive war is exclusive of de-
fence," for frequently the best way to counteract the ene-
my's operations, and prevent his conquests, is, at the very
outset of the war, to invade and cripple" him. But this
can never be attempted with raw troops, ill supplied with
the munitions of war, and unsupported by fortifications.
Such invasions must necessarily fail. Experience in the
wars of the French revolution has demonstrated this ; and
even our own short history is not without its proof. In
1813, the conquest of Canada was determined on some
time before the declaration of war ; an undisciplined army,
without preparation or apparent plan, was actually put in
motion, eighteen days previous to this declaration, for the
Canadian peninsula. With a disciplined army of the same
numbers, with an efficient and skilful leader, directed
against the vital point of the British possessions at a time
when the whole military force of the provinces did not
exceed three thousand men, how diiferent had been the
result !
While, therefore, the permanent defences of a nation
must he subordinate to its resources, position, and charac-
ter, they can in no case be dispensed with. No matter
how extensive or important the temporary means that
may be developed as necessity requires, there must be
some force kept in a constant state of efficiency, in order
to impart life and stability to the system. The one can
never properly replace the other ; for while the former
constitutes the basis, the latter must form the main body
142 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
of the military edifice, which, by its strength and durabili-
ty, will offer shelter and protection to the nation ; or, if
the architecture and materials be defective, crush and de-
stroy it in its fall.
The permanent means of military defence employed by
modem nations, are —
1st. An army; 2d. Anaivy; 3d. Fortifications.
The first two of these could hardly be called permanent,
if we were to regard their personnel ; but looking upon
them as institutions or organizations, they present all the
characteristics of durability. They are sometimes sub-
jected to very great and radical changes ; by the hot-house
nursing of designing ambition or rash legislation, they
may become overgrown and dangerous, or the storms of
popular delusion may overthrow and apparently sweep
them away. But they will immediately spring up again
in some form or other, so deeply are they rooted in the
organization of political institutions.
Its army and navy should always be kept within the
limits of a nation's wants ; but pity for the country which
reduces them in number or support so as to degrade their
character or endanger their organization. " A govern-
ment," says one of the best historians of the age, " which
neglects its army, under whatever pretext, is a govern-
ment culpable in the eyes of posterity, for it is preparing
humiliations for its flag and its country, instead of laying
the foundation for its glory."
One of our own distinguished cabinet ministers remarks,
that the history of our relations with the Indian tribes from
the beginning to the present hour, is one continued proof
of the necessity of maintaining an efficient military force
in time of peace, and that the treatment we received for a
long series of years from European powers, was a most
humiliating illustration of the folly of attempting to dis*
pense with these means of defence.
MILITARY POLITY. 143
" Twice," says he, " we were compelled to maintain,
by open war, our quarrel with the principal aggressors.
After many years of forbearance and negotiation, our
claims in other cases were at length amicably settled ;
but in one of the most noted of these cases, it was not
without much delay and imminent hazard of war that the
execution of the treaty was finally enforced. No one ac-
quainted with these portions of our history, can hesitate
to ascribe much of the wantonness and duration of the
wrongs we endured, to a Imowledge on the part of our
assailants of the scantiness and inefficiency of our military
and naval force.
" If," said Mr. Calhoun, " disregarding the sound dic-
tates of reason and experience, we, in peace, neglect our
military establishment, we must, with a powerful and skil-
ful enemy, be exposed to the most distressing calamities."
These remarks were made in opposition to the reduc-
tion of our military establishment, in 1821, below the
standard of thirteen thousand. Nevertheless, the force
was reduced to about six or seven thousand ; and we were
soon made to feel the consequences. It is stated, in a re-
port of high authority, that if there had been two re^-
ments available near St. Louis, in 1832, the war with
Black Hawk would have been 'easily avoided ; and that it
cannot be doubted that the scenes of devastation and sav-
age warfare which overspread the Floridas for nearly
seven years would also have been avoided, and some
thirty nuUions have been saved 'the country, if two regi-
ments had been available at the beginning of that con-
flict.*
* We may now add to these remarks, that if our government had
occupied the country between the Nueces and the Rio Grande with a
well-organized army of twelve thousand men, war with Mexico might
have . been avoided ; but to push forward upon Matamoras a small
force of only two thousand, in the very face of a large Mexican aimy
144 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
We must, in this country, if we heed either the dictates
of reason or experience, maintain in time of peace a skele-
ton military and naval force, capable of being greatly ex-
panded, in the event of danger, by the addition of new
troops.
Much energy and enterprise will always be imparted to
an army or navy by the addition of new forces. The
strength thus acquired is sometimes in even a far greater
ratio than the increase of numbers. But it must be re-
membered that these new elements are, of themselves, far
inferior to the old ones in discipline, steady courage, and
perseverance. No general can rely on the accuracy of
their movements in the operations of a campaign, and
they are exceedingly apt to fail him at the critical moment
on the field of battle. The same holds true with respect
to sailors inexperienced in the discipline and duties of a
man-of-war. There is this difference, however : an army
usually obtains its recruits from men totally unacquainted
with military life, while a navy, in case of sudden in-
crease, is mainly supplied from the merchant marine with
professional sailors, who, though unacquainted with the
use of artillery, &c., on ship-board, are familiar with all
the other duties of sea- life, and not unused to discipline.
Moreover, raw seamen and marines, from being under the
immediate eye of their officers in time of action, and with-
out the possibility of escape, fight much better than troops
of the same character on land. If years are requisite to
make a good sailor, surely an equal length of time is
necessary to perfect the soldier ; and no less skill, prac-
tice, and professional study are required for the proper
direction of armies than for the management of fleets.
was holding out to them the strongest inducements to attack us. The
temporary economy of a few tliousands in reducing our military estab-
lishment to a mere handful of men, again results in a necessary ex-
penditure of many millions of dollars and a large sacrifice of human life.
MILITARY POLITT. 145
But some have said ttat even these skeletons of mili-
tary and naval forces are entirely superfluous, and that a
brave and patriotic people will make as good a defence
against invasion as the most disciplined and experienced.
Such views are frequently urged in the halls of congress,
and some have even attempted to confirm them by histori-
cal examples.
There are instances, it is true, where disorganized and
frantic masses, animated by patriotic enthusiasm, have
gained the most brilliant victories. Here, however, ex-
traordinary circumstances supplied the place of order, and
produced an equilibrium between forces that otherwise
would have been very unequal ; but in almost every in-
stance of this kind, the loss of the undisciplined army has
been unnecessarily great, human life being substituted for
skill and order. But victory, even with such a drawback,
cannot often attend the banners of newly raised and disor-
derly forces. If the captam and crew of a steamship knew
nothing of navigation, and had never been at sea, and the
engineer was totally unacquainted with his profession,
could we expect the ship to cross the Atlantic in safety,
and reach her destined port ? Would we trust our lives
and the honor of our country to their care 1 Would we
not say to them, " First make yourselves acquainted with
the principles of your profession, the use of the compass,
and the means of determining whether you direct your
course upon a ledge of rocks or into a safe harbor 1" War
is not, as some seem to suppose, a mere game of chance.
Its principles constitute one of the most intricate of mod-
em sciences ; and the general who understands the art of
rightly applying its rules, and possesses the means of car-
rying out its precepts, may be morally certain of success.
History furnishes abundant proofs of the impolicy of re-
lying upon undisciplined forces in the open field. Almost
every page of Napier's classic History of the Peninsular
13
146 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
War contains striking examples of the useless waste of
human life and property by the Spanish militia ; while,
with one quarter as many regulars, at a small fractional
part of the actual expense, the French might have been
expelled at the outset, or have been driven, at any time
afterwards, from the Peninsula.
At the beginning of the French Kevolution the regular
army was abolished, and the citizen-soldiery, who were
established on the 14th of July, 1789, relied on exclusively
for the national defence. " But these three miUions of
national guards," says Jomini, "though good supporters of
the decrees of the assembly, were nevertheless useless for
reinforcing the army beyond the frontiers, and utterly in-
capable of defending their own firesides.'' Yet no one can
question their individual bravery and patriotism ; for, when
reorganized, disciplined, and properly d.irected, they put
to flight the best troops in Europe. At the first outbreak
of this revolution, the privileged classes of other countries,
upholding crumbling institutions and rotten dynasties,
rushed forth against the maddened hordes of French de-
mocracy. The popular power, springing upward by its
own elasticity when the weight of political oppression was
removed, soon became too wild and reckless to establish
itself on any sure basis, or even to provide for its own pro-
tection. If the attacks of the enervated enemies of France
were weak, so also were her own efforts feeble to resist
these attacks. The republican armies repelled the ill-
planned and ill-conducted invasion by the Dulie of Bruns-
wick ; but it was by the substitution of human life for prep-
aration, system, and skill ; enthusiasm supplied the place
of discipline ; robbery produced military stores ; and the
dead bodies of her citizens formed epaulements against the
enemy. Yet this was but the strength of weakness ; the
aimless struggle of a broken and disjointed government ;
and the new revolutionary power was fast sinking- away
MILITARY POLITY. 147
before the combined opposition of Europe,when tie great
genius of Napoleon, with a strong arm and iron rule, seiz-
ing upon the scattered fragments, and binding them to-
gether inte one consolidated mass, made France victorious,
and seated himself on the throne of empire.
No people in the world ever exhibited a more general
and enthusiastic patriotism than the Americans during the
war of our own Revolution. And yet our army received,
even at that time, but little support from irregular and
militia forces in the open field. Washington's opinions
on this subject furnish so striking a contrast to the con-
gressional speeches of modern political demagogues, who,
with boastful swaggers, would fain persuade us that we
require no organization or discipline to meet the veteran
troops of Europe in the open field, and who would hurry
us, without preparation, into war with the strongest mili-
tary powers of the world — so striking is the contrast be-
tween the assertions of these men and the letters and re-
ports of Washington, that it may be well for the cool and
dispassionate lover of truth to occasionally refresh his
memory by reference to the writings of Washington.
The following brief extracts are from his letters to the
President of Congress, December, 1776 :
" The saving in the article of clothing, provisions, and
a thousand other things, by having nothing to do with the
militia, imless in cases of extraordinary exigency, and
such as could not be expected in the common course of
events, would amply support a large army, which, well
officered, would be daily improving, instead of continuing
a destructive, expensive, and disorderly mob. In my
opinion, if any dependence is placed on the militia another
year. Congress will be deceived. When danger is a little
removed from them they will not turn out at all. When
it comes home to them, the well-afFected, instead of flying
to arms to defend themselves, are busily employed in re-
148 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
moving their families and effects ; wMIe the disaffected
are concerting measures to make their*submission, and
spread terror and dismay all around, to induce others to
follow their example. Daily epcperience and abundant
proofs warrant this information. Short enlistments, and a
mistaken dependence upon our militia, have been the ori-
gin of all our misfortunes, and the great accumulation of
our debt. The militia come in, you cannot tell how ; go,
you cannot tell when ; and act, you cannot tell where ;
consmne your provisions, exhaust your stores, and leave
you at last, at a critical moment."
These remarks of Washington will not be found too se-
vere if we remember the conduct of our militia in the open
field at Princeton, Savannah River, Camden, Guilford
Court-House, &c., in the war of the Revolution ; the
great cost of the war of 1812 as compared with its milita-
ry results ; the refusal of the New England militia to
march beyond the lines of their own states, and of the
New- York militia to cross the Niagara and secure a vic-
tory already won ; or the disgraceful flight of the Southern
militia from the field of Bladensburg.
But there is another side to this picture. If our militia
have frequently failed to maintain their ground when drawn
up in the open field, we can point with pride to their brave and
successful defence of Charleston, Mobile, New Orleans,
Fort M'Henry, Stonington, Niagara, Plattsburg, in proof
of what may be accomplished by militia in connection with
fortifications.
These examples from our history must fully demonstrate
the great value of a militia when properly employeias a de-
fence against invasion, and ought to silence the sneers of
those who would abolish this arm of defence as utterly use-
ess. In the open field militia cannot in general be manceu-
vred to advantage ; whereas, in the defence of fortified places
their superior intelligence and activity not unfrequently ren-
MEANS OF NATIONAL DEFENCE. 149
der them even more valuable than regulars. And in reading
the severe strictures of Washington, Greene, Morgan, and
others, upon our militia, it must be remembered that they
were at that time entirely destitute of important works of
defence ; and the experience of all other nations, as well
as our own, has abundantly shovsTi that a newly-raised
force cannot cope, in the open field, with one subordinate
and disciplined. Here science must determine the contest.
Habits of strict obedience, and of simultaneous and united
action, are indispensable to carry out what the higher
principles of the military profession require. New and
undisciplined forces are often confounded at the evolutions,
and strategic and tactical combinations of a regular army,
and lose all confidence in their leaders and in themselves.
But, when placed behind a breastwork, they even over-
rate their security. They can then coolly look upon the
approaching columns, and, unmoved by glittering armor
and bristling bayonets, will exert all their skill in the use
of their weapons. The superior accuracy of aim which
the American has obtained by practice from his early
youth, has enabled our militia to gain, under the protection
of military works, victories as brilliant as the most veteran
troops. The moral courage neqessary to await an attack
behind a parapet, is at least equal to that exerted in the
open field, where movements generally determine the vic-
tory. To watch the approach of an enemy, to see him
move up and display his massive columns, his long array
of military equipments, his fascines and scaling-ladders,
his instruments of attack, and the professional skill with
which he wields them, to hear the thimder of his batteries,
spreading death all around, and to repel, hand to hand,
those tremendous assaults, which stand out in all their
horrible relief upon the canvass of modern warfare, re-
quires a heart at least as brave as the professional war
rior exhibits in the pitched battle.
150 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Bflt we must not forget that to call this force into the
open field, — to take the mechanic from his shop, the mer-
chant from his counter, the farmer from his plough, — will
necessarily be attended with an immense sacrifice of
human life. The lives lost on the battle-field are not the
only ones ; militia, being urfaccustomed to exposure, and
unable to supply their own wants with certainty and regu-
larity, contract diseases which occasion in every cam-
paign a most frightful mortality.
There is also a vast difference in the cost of support-
ing regulars and militia forces. The cost of a regular
army of twenty thousand men for a campaign of six
months, in this country, has been estimated, from data in
the War-office, at a hundred and fifty dollars per man ;
while the cost of a militia force, under the same circum-
stances, making allowance for the difference in the ex-
penses from sickness, waste of camp-furniture, equip-
ments, &c., will be two hundred and fifty dollars per
man. But in short campaigns, and in irregular warfare,
like the expedition against Black Hawk and his Indians
in the Northwest, and during the hostilities in Florida,,
" the expenses of the militia," says Mr. Secretaiy Spen-
cer, in a report to congress in 1842, " invariably exceed
those of regulars by at least three hundred per centP It is
further stated that "ffty-five thousand militia were called
into service during the Black Hawk and Florida wars,
and that thirty millions of dollars have been expended in
these conflicts .'" When it is remembered that during these
border wars our whole regular army did not exceed
twelve or thirteen thousand men, it will not be difiicult to
perceive why our military establishment was so enor-
mously expensive. Large sums were paid to sedentary
militia who never rendered the slightest service. Again,
during our late war with Great Britain, of less than three
years' duration, two hundred and eighty thousand muskets
MKANS OF NATIONAL DEFENCE. 151
were lost, — the average cost of which is stated at twelve
dollars, — ^making an aggregate loss, in muskets alone, of
three millions and three hundred and sixty thousand dollars,
during a service of about two years and a half; — ^result-
ing mainly from that neglect and waste of public property
which almost invariably attends the movements of newly-
raised and inexperienced forces. Facts like these should
awaken us to the necessity of reorganizing and disci-
plining our militia. General Knox, when Secretary of
War, General Harrison while in the senate, and Mr.
Poinsett in 1841, each furnished plans for eflfecting this
purpose, but the whole subject has been passed by with
neglect.
Permanent fortifications differ in many of their features
from either of the two preceding elements of national
defence. They are passive in their nature, yet possess
all the conservative properties of an army or navy, and
through these two contribute largely to the active opera-
tions of a campaign. When once constructed they re-
quire but very little expenditure for their support. In time
of peace they withdraw no valuable citizens from the
useful occupations of life. Of themselves they can never
exert an influence corrupting to public morals, or danger-
ous to public liberty ; but ■^s the means of preserving
peace, and as obstacles to an invader, their influence and
power are immense. While contributing to the economi-
cal support of a peace establishment, by furnishing drill-
grounds, parades, quarters, &c. ; and to its efiiciency still
more, by affording facilities both to the regulars and mi-
litia for that species of artillery practice so necessary in
the defence of water frontiers ; they also serve as safe
dIpSts of arms and the immense quantity of materials and
military munitions so indispensable in modem warfare.
These munitions usually require much time, skill, and
expense in their construction, and it is of vast import-
152 MILITAEY ART AND SCIENCE.
ance that they should be preserved with the utmost
care.
Maritime arsenals and depots of naval and military
stores on the sea-coast are more particularly exposed to
capture and destruction. Here an enemy can approach
by stealth, striking some sudden and fatal blow before
any effectual resistance can be organized. But in addi-
tion to the security afforded by harbor fortifications to
public property of the highest military value, they also
serve to protect the merchant shipping, and the vast
amount of private wealth which a commercial people al-
ways collect at these points. They furnish safe retreats,
and the means of repair for public vessels injured in bat-
tle, or by storms, and to merchantmen a refuge from the
dangers of sea, or the threats of hostile fleets. Moreover,
they greatly facilitate our naval attacks upon the enemy's
shipping ; and if he attempt a descent, their well-directed
fire will repel his squadrons from our harbors, and force
his troops to land at some distant and imfavorable position.
The three means of permanent defence which have
been mentioned, are, of course, intended to accomplish
the same general object ; but each has its distinct and
proper sphere of action, and neither, can be regarded as
antagonistical to the others. , Any undue increase of one,
at the expense of the other two, must necessarily be fol-
lowed by a corresponding diminution of national strength.
We must not infer, however, that all must be maintained
upon the same footing. The position of the country and
the character of the people must determine this.
England, from her insular position and the extent of
her commerce, must maintain a large navy ; a large army
is also necessary for the defence of her own coasts and
the protection of her colonial possessions. Her men-of-
war secure a safe passage for her merchant-vessels, and
transport her troops in safety through all seas, and thus
MEANS OF NATIONAL DEFENCE. 153
contribute much to the acquisition and security of colonial
territory. The military forces of the British empire
amoimt to about one himdred and fifty thousand men, and
the naval forces to about seven hundred vessels of war,*
carrying in all some fifteen thousand guns and forty thou-
sand men. France has less commerce, and but few colo-
nial possessions. She has a great extent of seacoast, but
her fortifications secure it from maritime descents ; her
only accessible points are on the land frontiers. Her
army and navy, therefore, constitute her principal means
of defence. Her army numbers some three hundred and
fifty thousand men, and her navy about three himdred and
fifty vessels,* carrying about nine thousand guns and thirty
thousand men. Russia, Austria, Prussia, Sweden, and
other continental powers, have but little commerce to be
protected, while their extensive frontiers are greatly ex-
posed to land attacks : their fortifications and armies,
therefore, constitute their principal means of defence.
But for the protection of their own seas from the inroads
of their powerful maritime neighbor, Russia and Austria
support naval establishments of a limited extent. Russia
has, in all, some one hundred and eighty vessels of war,
and Austria not quite half that number.*
The United States possess no colonies ; but they have
a seacoast of more than three thousand miles, with numer-
ous bays, estuaries, and navigable rivers, which expose
our most populous cities to maritime attacks. The north-
em land frontier is two thousand miles in extent, and in
the west our territory borders upon the British and Mexi-
can possessions for many thousand miles more. Within
these limits there are numerous tribes of Indians, who re-
quire the watchful care of armed forces to keep them at
peace among themselves as well as with us. Our author-
* These numbers include all vessels of war, whether in commission,
building, or in ordinary.
154 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
ized military establishment amounts to 7,590 men, and
our naval establishment consists of seventy-seven vessels
of all classes, carrying 2,345 guns, and 8,724 men.*
This is certainly a very small military and naval force for
the defence of so extended and populous a country, espe-
cially one whose political institutions and rapidly-increas-
ing power expose it to the distrust and jealousy of most
other nations.
The fortifications for the defence of our sea-coast and
land frontiers will be discussed hereafter.f
* Since these pages were put in the bauds of the printer, the above
numbers have been nearly doubled, this increase having been made
with special reference to the present war with Mexico.
t Jomiui's work on the Military Art contmns many valuable re-
marks on this subject of Military Polity : also the writings of Clause-
witz, Dupin, Lloyd, Chambray, Trauchaut de Laveme, and Rud-
torfer. Several of these questions are also discussed in Rocquancourt,
Carion-Nisas, De Vernon, and other writers on militeiry history. The
several European Annuaires Militaires, or Army Registers, and the
French and German military periodicals, contain much valuable mat-
ter connected with military statistics.
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 155
CHAPTER VII.
SEA-COAST DEFENCES.
The principal attacks which we have had to sustain,
either as colonies or states, from civilized foes, have come
from Canada. As colonies we were continually encoun-
tering difficulties and dangers from the French posses-
sions. In the war of the Revolution, it being one of na-
tional emancipation, the military operations were more
general throughout the several states ; but in the war of
1812 the attacks were confined to the northern frontier
and a few exposed points along the coast. In these two
contests with Great Britain, Boston, New York, Philadel-
phia, Baltimore, Washington, Charleston, Savannah, Mo-
bile, and New Orleans, being within reach of the British
naval power, and offering the dazzling attraction of rich
booty, have each been subjected to powerful assaults.
Similar attacks will undoubtedly be made in any future
war with England. An attempt at permanent lodgment
would be based either on Canada or a servile insurrection
in the southern states. The former project, in a military
point of view, offers the greatest advantages, but most
probably the latter would also be resorted to for effecting
a diversion, if nothing more. But for inflicting upon us a
sudden and severe injury by the destruction of large
amounts of public and private property, our seaport towns
offer inducements not likely to be disregarded. This
mode of warfare, barbarous though it be, will certainly at-
tend a conflict with any great maritime power. How
156 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
can we best prepare in time of peace to repel these
attacks ?
Immediately after the war of 1812 a joint commission
of our most distinguished military and naval officers was
formed, to devise a system of defensive works, to be erect-
ed in time of peace for the security of the most important
and the most exposed points on our sea-coast. It may be
well here to point out, in very general terms, the positions
and character of these works, mentioning only such as
have been completed, or are now in course of construction,
and such as are intended to be built as soon as Congress
shall grant the requisite' funds. There are other works
projected for some future period, but as they do not belong
to the class required for immediate use, they wiU not be
referred to.
MAINK.
Beginning at the northeastern extremity of our coast,
we have, for Eastport and Wiscasset, projected works
estimated to carry about fifty guns. Nothing has yet
been done to these works.
, Next Portland, with works carrying about forty or fifty
guns, and Fort Penobscot and batteries, carrying about
one hundred and fifty guns. These are only partly built.
NEW HAMPSHIRE.
Defences of Portsmouth and the vicinity, about two
hundred guns. These works are also only partly built.
MASSACHUSETTS.
Projected works east of Boston, csxrfeag about sixty
guns. These are not yet commenced.
Works for defence of Boston Harbor carry about five
hundred guns. These are nearly three-quarters completed.
Those of NewBedford harbor carryfifty guns : not yet begun.
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 157
RHODE ISLAND.
Newport harbor, — works carry about five hundred guns,
nearly completed.
CONNECTICUT.
New London harbor. New Haven, and the Connecticut
river. The first of these nearly completed ; the two latter
not yet begun.
NEW YORK.
The works projected for the defence of New York har-
bor are estimated to carry about one thousand guns. These
works are not yet one-half constructed.
PENNSYLVANIA.
The works projected for the defence of the Delaware
Bay and Philadelphia will carry about one hundred and
fifty guns. They are not one-quarter built.
MARYLAND AND VIRGINIA.
Baltimore and Annapolis — these works will carry some
two hundred and fifty guns. The works for the Chesa-
peake Bay will carry about six hundred guns ; and those
for the Potomac river about eighty guns. These are more
than one-half completed.
NORTH CAROLINA.
The works at Beaufort and Smithville carry about one
hundred and fifty guns. They are essentially completed.
SOUTH CAROLINA.
The works for the defence of Charleston carry some
two hundred guns. They are one-half constructed.
158 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
GEORGIA.
The defences of Savannah carry about two hundred guns,
and are nearly three-quarters finished.
FLORIDA.
The works projected for the defence of St. Augustine,
Key West, Tortugas, and Pensacola will carry some eight
or nine hundred guns. Those at St. Augustine and Pen-
sacola are essentially completed, but those at Key West
and Tortugas are barely begun.
ALABAMA.
The works for the defence of Mobile will carry about one
hundred and sixty guns. These are nearly constructed.
LOUISIANA.
The works for the defence of New Orleans will carry
some two hundred and fifty or three hundred guns ; they
are nearly completed.
The works north of the Chesapeake cost about three
thousand dollars per gun ; those south of that point about
six thousand dollars per gun. This difference in cost is
due in part to the character of the soil on which the forti-
fications are built, and in part to the high prices paid in
the south for materials and workmanship.
Having pointed out the character and condition of our
system of sea-coast defences, let us briefly examine how
far these works may be relied on as a means of security
against a maritime descent.
To come to a proper conclusion on this subject, let us
first examine the three or four great maritime descents at-
tempted by the English during the wars of the French Kev>
olution ; a period at which the great naval superiority of;
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 159
England over other nations, gave her the title of mistress
of the seas. Let us notice what have been the results of
the several attempts made by this power at maritime inva-
sions, and the means by which such attacks have been
repelled.
In 1795, a maritime expedition was fitted out against
Quiberon, at an expense of eight millions of dollars.
This port of the French coast had then a naval defence
of near thirty sail, carrying about sixteen hundred guns.
Lord Bridport attacked it with fourteen sail of the line,
five frigates, and some smaller vessels, about fifteen hun-
dred gims in all, captured a portion of the fleet, and forced
the remainder to take shelter under the guns of the forti-
fications of L'Orient. The French naval defence being
destroyed, the British now entered Quiberon without op-
position. This bay is said by Brenton, in his British
Naval History, to be "the finest on the coast of France,
or perhaps in the world, for landing an army." Besides
thesb natural advantages in favor of the English, the in-
habitants of the surrounding country were in open insur-
rection, ready to receive the invaders with open arms. A
body of ten thousand troops were landed, and clothing,
arms, &c., furnished to as many more royalist troops ; but
the combined forces failed in their attack upon St. Barbe,
and General Hoche, from his intrenchments, with seven
thousand men, held in check a body of eighteen thousand,
penned up, without defences, in the narrow peninsula.
Reinforced by a new debarkation, the allies again at-
tempted to advance, but were soon defeated, and ultimate-
ly.almost entirely destroyed.
In 1799, the English and Russians made a descejit up-
on Holland wi^h fourteen ships of the line and ten frig-
ates, carrying about eleven hundred guns and a great num-
ber of transports, with an army of thirty-six thousand men.
The Dutch naval defences consisted of eight ships of the
160 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
line, three fifty-four gun ships, eight forty-eight gun ships
and eight smaller frigates, carrying in all about twelve hun-
dred guns ; but this force contributed little or nothing to
the 'defence, and was soon forced to hoist the hostile flag.
The defensive army was at first only twelve thousand, but
the Republicans afterwards increased it to twenty-two
thousand, and finally to twenty-eight thousand men. But
notwithstanding this immense naval and military superior-
ity, and the co-operation of, the Orange party in assisting
the landing of their troops, the allies failed to get posses-
sion of a single strong place ; and after a loss of six thou-
sand men, were compelled to capitulate. " Such," says
Alison, " was the disastrous issue of the greatest expedi-
tion which had yet sailed from the British harbors during
the war."
In 1801, Nelson, with three ships of the line, two frig-
ates, and thirty-five smaller vessels, made a desperate at-
tack upon the harbor of Boulogne, but was repulsed with
severe loss. ■*
Passing over some unimportant attacks, we come to the
descent upon the Scheldt, or as it is commonly called, the
Walcheren expedition, in 1809. This expedition, though
a failure, has often been referred to as proving the expe-
diency of maritime descents. The following is a brief
narrative of this expedition : —
Napoleon had projected vast fortifications, dock-yards,
and naval arsenals at Flushing and Antwerp for the pro-
tection of a maritime force in the Scheldt. But no sooner
was the execution of this project begun, than the English
fitted out an expedition to seize upon the defences of the
Scheldt, and capture or destroy the naval force. Flush-
ing, at the mouth of the river, was but ill-secured, and
Antwerp, some sixty or seventy miles further up the river,
was entirely defenceless ; the rampart was unarmed with
cannon, dilapidated, and tottering, and its garrison consisted
SEACOAST BEFENCES. 161
of only about two hundred invalids and recruits. Napo-
leon's regular army was employed on the Danube and in
the Peninsula. The British attacking force consisted of
thirty-seven ships of the line, twenty-three frigates, thirty-
three sloops of war, twenty-eight gun, mortar, and bomb
vessels, thirty-six smaller vessels, eighty-two gun-boats, in-
numerable transports, with over forty thousand troops, and
an immense artillery train ; making in all, says the English
historian, " an hundred thousand combatants." A landing
was made upon the island of Walcheren, and siege laid to
Flushing, which place was not reduced till eighteen days
after the landing ; the attack upon the water was made by
seven or eight ships of the line, and a large flotilla of bomb
vessels, but produced no effect. The channel at the mouth
of the river was too broad to be defended by the works of
Flushing, and the main portion of the fleet passeid out of
reach of the guns, and ascended the Scheldt part way up
to Antwerp. But in the mean time, the fortifications of
that place had been repaired, and, after a fruitless opera-
tion of a whole month in the river, the English were
gradually forced to retreat to Walcheren, and finally to
evacuate their entire conquest.
The cost of the expedition was immense, both in treas-
ure and in life. It was certainly very poorly managed.
But we cannot help noticing the superior value of fortifi-
cations as 'a defence against such descents. They did
much to retard the operations of the enemy till a defensive
army could be raised. The works of Flushing were never
intended to close up the Scheldt, and of course could not
intercept the passage of shipping ; but they were not re-
duced by the English naval force, as has sometimes been
alleged. Col. Mitchel, of the English service, says that
the fleet " kept up so tremendous a fire upon the batteries,
that the French ofiicers who had been present at Auster-
litz and Jena, declared that the cannonade in these battles
162 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
had been a mere j&i d^enfans in comparison. Yet what
was the effect produced on the defences of the place by
this fire, so formidable, to judge by the sound alone ?
The writer can answer the question with some accuracy,
for he went along the entire sea-line the very day after
the capitulation, and found no pait^of the parapet injured
so as to be of the slightest consequence, and only one sol-
itary gun dismounted, evidently by the bursting of a shell,
and which could not, of course, have been thrown from the
line of battle ships, but must have been thrown from the
land batteries."*
But it may be said that although great naval descents
on a hostile coast are almost always unsuccessful, never-
theless a direct naval attack upon a single fortified posi-
tion will be attended with more favorable results ; and
that our seaport towns, however fortified, will be exposed
to bombardment and destruction by the enemy's fleets.
In other.words, that in a direct contest between ships and
forts the former will have at least an equal chance of
success.
Let us suppose a fair trial of this relative strength.
The fort is to be properly constructed and in good repair ;
its guns in a position to be used with effect ; its garrison
skilful and efficient; its commander capable and brave.
The ship is of the very best character, and in perfect
order ; the crew disciplined and courageous ; its com-
mander skilful and adroit ; the wind, and tide, and sea —
all as could be desired.f The numbers of the garrison
and crew are to be no more than requisite, with no unne-
cessary exposure of human life to swell the lists of the
slain. The issue of this contest, unless attended with
* The batteries constructed in the siege of this place were armed
with fifty-two heavy guns and mortals.
t These conditions for a battery are easily satisfied, but for the ship,
are partly dependent on the elements, and seldom to be wholly attaiiied'
SEA-nOAST DEFENCES. 163
extraordinary and easily distinguishable circumstances,
would be a fair test of their relative strength.
What result should we anticipate from the nature of the
contending forces 1 The ship, under the circumstances
we have supposed, can choose her point of attack, select-
ing the one she may deem the most vulnerable ; but she
herself is everywhere vulnerable ; her men and guns are
much concentrated, and consequently much exposed.
But in the fort the guns and men are more distributed, a
fort with an interior area of sieveral acres not having a
garrison as large as the crew of a seventy-four-gun ship.
All parts of the vessel are liable to injury ; while the fort
offers but a small mark, — the opening of the embrasures,
a small part of the carriage, and now and then a head or
arm raised above the parapet, — the ratio of exposed sur-
faces being not less than twenty to one. In the vessel the
guns are fired from an oscillating deck, and the balls go
at random ; in the fort the guns are fired from an immove-
able platform, and the balls reach their object with uner-
ring aim. There is always more or less motion in the
water, so that the ship's guns, though accurately pointed
at one moment, at the next will be thrown entirely away
from the object, even when the motion is too slight to be
otherwise noticed ; whereas in the battery the guns will
be fired just as they are pointed ; and the motion of the
vessel will merely vary to the extent of a few inches the
spot in which the shot is received. In the fort the men
and guns are behind impenetrable walls of stone and
earth ; in the vessel they are behind frail bulwarks,
whose splinters are equally destructive with the shot.
The fort is incombustible ; while the ship may readily
be set on fire by incendiary projectiles. The ship has
many points exposed that may be called vital points. By
losing her rudder, or portions of her rigging, or of her
spars, she may become unmanageable, and unable to use
164 MILITARY AKT AND SCIENCE.
her strength ; she may receive shots under water, and be
liable to sink ; she may receive hot shot, and be set on
fire : these damages are in addition to those of having her
guns dismounted and her people killed by shots that pierce
her sides and scatter splinters from her timbers ; while
the risks of the battery are confined to those mentioned
above — ^namely, the risk that the gun, the carriage, or the
men may be struck.
The opinions of military writers, and the facts of his-
tory, fully accord with these deductions of theory. Some
few individuals mistaking, or misstating, the facts of a few
recent trials, assert that modem improvements in the naval
service have so far outstripped the progress in the art of
land defence, that a floating force is now abundantly able
to cope, upon equal terras, with a land battery. Ignorant
and superficial persons, hearing merely that certain forts
had recently yielded to a naval force, and taking no trou-
ble to learn the real facts of the case, have paraded theln
before the public as proofs positive of a new era in mili-
tary science. This conclusion, however groundless and
absurd, has received credit merely from its novelty. Let
us examine the several trials of strength which have taken
place between ships and forts within the last fifty years,
and see what have been the results.
In 1792 a considerable French squadron attacked Ca-
gliari, whose fortifications were at that time so dilapidated
and weak, as scarcely to deserve the name of defences.
Nevertheless, the French fleet, after a bombairdment of
three days, was most signally defeated and obliged to
retire.
In 1794 two British ships, "the Fortitude of seventy-
four, and the Juno frigate of thirty-two guns," attacked a
small town in the bay of Martello, Corsica, which was
armed with one gun in barbette, and a garrison of thirty
men. After a bombardment of two and a half hours, these
«EA-COAST DEFENCES. 165
ships were forced to haul off with considerable damage
and loss of life. The little tower had received no injury,
and its garrison were unharmed. Here were one hundred
and six guns afloat against one on shore ; and yet the latter
was successful.
In 1797 Nelson attacked the little ineflicient batteries
of Santa Crux, in Teneriffe, with eight vessels carrying
four hundred guns. But notwithstanding his great supe-
riority in numbers, skill, and bravery, he was repelled
with the loss of two hundred and fifty men, while the gar-
rison received little or no damage. A single ball from
the land battery, striking the side of one of his vessels,
instantly sunk her with near a hundred seamen and ma-
rines !
In 1798, a French flotilla of fifty-two brigs and gunboats,
manned with near seven thousand men, attacked a little
English redoubt on the island of Marcou, which was arm-
ed with two thirty-two-pounders, two six-pounders, four
four-pounders, and two carronades, and garrisoned with
two hundred and fifty men. Notwithstanding this great
disparity of numbers, the little redoubt sunk seven of the
enemy's brigs and gunboats, captured another, and forced
the remainder to retreat with great loss ; while the garri-
son had but one man killed and three wounded.
In 1801, the French, with three frigates and six thou-
sand men, attacked the poorly-constructed works of Porto
Ferrairo, whose defensive force was a motley garrison of
fifteen hundred Corsicans, Tuscans, and English. Here
the attacking force was four times as great as that of the
garrison ; nevertheless they were unsuccessful after several
bombardments and a siege of five months.
In July oC the same year, 1801, Admiral Saumarez,
with an English fleet of six ships of the line and two
smaller vessels, carrying in all five hundred and two guns,
attacke 1 the Spanish and French defences of Algesiras.
166 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Supposing the floating forces of the contending parties to
be equal, gun for gun, (which is certainly a very fair es-
timate for the attacking force, considering the circum-
stances of the case,) we have a French land-battery of
only twelve guns opposed by an English floating force of
one hundred and ninety-six guns. Notwithstanding this
inequality of nearly seventeen to one, the little battery
compelled the superior naval force to retreat with great
loss.
Shortly after this, the French and Spanish fleets at-
tacked the same English squadron with a force of nearly
three to one, but met with a most signal defeat ; whereas
with a land-battery of only one to seventeen, the same
party had been victorious. What proof can be more de-
cisive of the superiority of guns on shore over those
afloat !
In 1803 the English garrison of Diamond Rock, near
Port Royal Bay, with only one hundred men and some fif-
teen guns, repelled a French squadron of two seventy-
four-gun ships, a frigate, and a brig, assisted by a land
attack of two hundred troops. There was not a single
man killed or wounded in the redoubt, while the French
lost fifty men ! The place was afterwards reduced by
famine.
In 1806 a French battery on Cape Licosa, of only two
guns and a garrison of twenty-five men, resisted the at-
tacks of a British eighty-gun ship and two frigates. The
carriage of one of the land-guns failed on the second
shot, so that, in fact, only one of them was available dur-
ing the action. Here was a single piece of ordnance and
a garrison of twenty-jive men, opposed to a naval force of
over one hundred and fifty guns and about thirteen hundred
men. And what eff"ects were produced by this strange
combat ? The attacking force lost thirty-seven men killed
and wounded, the eighty-gun ship was much disabled.
SKA-COAST DEFENCES. 167
while the fort and garrison escaped entirely unharmed !
What could not be effected by force was afterwards ob-
tained by negotiation.
In 1808 a French land-battery of only three guns, near
Fort Trinidad, drove off an English seventy-four-gun
ship, and a bomb-vessel.
In 1813 Leghorn, whose defences were of a very me-
diocre character, and whose garrison at that time was ex-
ceedingly weak, was attacked by an English squadron of
six shipSj carrying over three hundred guns, and a land
force of one thousand troops. The whole attempt was a
perfect failure.
"In 1814, when the English advanced against Ant-
werp," says Colonel Mitchell, an English historian, " Fort
Frederick, a small work of only two guns, was establish-
ed in a bend of the Polder Dyke, at some distance below
Lillo. The armament was a long eighteen-pounder and
a five and a half inch howitzer. From this post the
French determined to dislodge the English, and an eighty-
gun ship dropped down with the tide and anchored near
the Flanders shore, about six hundred yards from the
British battery. By her position she was secured from
the fire of the eighteen-poimder, and exposed to that of
the howitzer only. As soon as every thing was made
tight her broadside was opened ; and if noise and smoke
were alone sufEcient to ensure success in war, as so
many of the modems seem to think, the result of this
strange contest would not have been long doubtful, for the
thunder of the French artillery actually made the earth
to shake again ; but though the earth shook, the single
British howitzer was neither dismounted nor silenced ;
and though the artillerymen could not, perfectly exposed
as they were, stand to their gun while the iron hail was
striking thick and fast around, yet no sooner did the en-
emy's fire slacken for a moment than they sprang to their
168 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
post, ready to return at least one shot for eighty. This
extraordinary combat lasted from seven o'clock in the
morning till near twelve at noon, when the French ship,
having had forty-one men killed and wounded, her com-
mander being in the list of the latter, and having besides
sustained serious damage in her hull and rigging, return-
ed to Antwerp without effecting any thing whatever. The
howitzer was not dismounted, the fort was not injured, —
there being in fact nothing to injure, — and the British had
only one man killed and two wounded."
It- is unnecessary to further specify examples from the
wars of the French Revolution ; the whole history of
these wars is one continued proof of the superiority of
fortifications as a maritime frontier defence. The sea-
coast "of France is almost within stone's throw* of the
principal British naval depots ; here were large towns and
harbors, filled with the rich commerce of the world, offer-
ing the dazzling attraction of rich booty. The French
navy was at this time utterly incompetent to their defence ;
while England supported a maritime force at an annual
expense of near ninety millions of dollars. Her largest
fleets were continually cruising within sight of these sea-
ports, and not unfrequently attempting to cut out their
shipping. " At this period," says one of her naval histori-
ans, " the naval force of Britain, so multiplied and so ex-
pert from long practice, had acquired an intimate know-
ledge of their (the French) harbors, their bays and creeks ;
her oflicers knew the depth of water, and the resistance
likely to be met with in every situation." On the other
hand, these harbors and towns were frequently stripped of
their garrisons by the necessities of distant wars, being
left with no other defence than their fortifications and
militia. And yet, notwithstanding all this, they escaped
* Only eighteen and a half miles across the Channel at the narrow-
est pleice.
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 169
onhanned. during the entire contest. They were frequent-
ly attacked, and in some instances the most desperate ef-
forts were made to effect a permanent lodgment ; but in
no case was the success at all commensurate with the ex-
pense of life and treasure sacrificed, and no permanent
hold was made on either the maritime frontiers of France
or her allies. This certainly was owing to no inferiority
of skill and bravery on the part of the British navy, as the
battles of Aboukir and Trafalgar, and the almost total an-
nihilation of the French marine, have but too plainly pro-
ven. Why then did these places escape ? We know of
no other reason, than that they were fortified ; and that the
French knew how to defend their fortifications. The
British maritime expeditions to Quiberon, Holland, Bou-
logne, the Scheldt, Constantinople, Buenos Ayres, &c.,
sufficiently prove the ill-success, and the waste of life and
treasure with which they must always be attended. But
when her naval power was applied to the destruction of
the enemy's marine, and in transporting her land forces to
solid bases of operations on the soil of her allies, in Por-
tugal and Belgium, the fall of Napoleon crowned the glory
of their achievements.
Let us now examine the several British naval attacks
on our own forts, in the wars of the Revolution and of 1812.
In 1776 Sir Peter Parker, with a British fleet of nine
vesseFs, carrying about two hundred and seventy* guns,
attacked Fort Moultrie, in Charleston harbor, which was
then armed with only twenty-six guns, and garrisoned by
only three hundred and seventy-five regulars and a few
militia. In this contest the British were entirely defeated,
and lost, in killed and wounded, two hundred and five men,
while their whole two hundred and seventy guns killed
and wounded only thirty-two men in the fort. Of this
* These vessels rated two hundred and iifty-four guns, but the num-
ber actually carried is stated to have been two hundred and seventy.
15
170 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
trial of strength, -which was certainly a fair one, Cooper,
in his Naval History, says : — " It goes fully to prove the
important military position that ships cannot withstand
forts, when the latter are properly armed, constructed, and
garrisoned. General Moultrie says only thirty rounds
from the battery were fired, and was of opinion that the
want of powder alone prevented the Americans from de-
stroying the men-of-war."
In 1814 a British fleet of four vessels, carrying ninety-
two guns, attacked Fort Boyer, a small redoubt, located
on a point of land commanding the passage from the Gulf
into the bay of Mobile. This redoubt was garrisoned by
only one hundred and twenty combatants, officers in-
cluded ; and its armament was but twenty small pieces of
cannon, some of which were almost entirely useless, and
most of them poorly mounted " in batteries hastily thrown
up, and leaving the gunners uncovered from the knee up-
ward," while the enemy's land force, acting in concert
with the ships, consisted of twenty artillerists with a bat-
tery of two guns, and seven hundred and thirty marines,
Indians, and negroes.- His ships carried five hundred and
ninety men in all. This immense disparity of numbers
and strength did not allow to the British military and na-
val commanders the slightest apprehension " that four
British ships, carrying ninety-two guns, and a land force
somewhat exceeding seven hundred combatants, could
fail in reducing a small work mounting only twenty short
carronades, and defended by a little more than a hundred
men, unprovided alike with furnaces for heating shot, or
casements to cover themselves from rockets and shells."
Nevertheless, the enemy was completely repulsed ; one of
his largest ships was entirely destroyed, and 85 men were
killed and wounded on board the other ; while our loss
ivas only eight or nine. Here a naval force oi five to one
was repelled by the land-battery.
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 171
Again, in 1814, a barbette battery of one four-pounder
and two eighteen-pounder guns at Stonington, repelled a
British fleet of one hundred and thirty-four guns. During
the engagement the Americans exhausted their ammuni-
tion, and spiked their eighteen-pounders, and only one of
them was afterwards used. Two of the enemy's ships,
carrying one hundred and twelve guus, were engaged du-
ring the whole time of attack, and during much of this
time bombarded the town from a position beyond reach of
the land-battery. They were entirely too far off for the
four-pounder gun to be of any use. Supposing the two
eighteen-pounders to have been employed during the whole
action, and also all the guns of the fleet, one eighteen-
pounder on land must have been more than equivalent to
sixty-seven guns afloat, for the ships' were so much injured
as to render it necessary for them to withdraw. The
British loss was twenty killed, and more than fifty wound-
ed. Ours was only two killed and six wounded.*
The fleet sent to the attack of Baltimore, in 1814, con-
sisted of forty sail, the largest of which were ships of the
line, carrying an army of over six thousand combatantSi,
The troops were landed at North Point, while sixteen of
the bomb-vessels and frigates approached within reach of
Fort McHenry, and commenced a bombardment which
lasted twenty-five hours. During this attack, the enemy
threw " fifteen hundred shells, four hundred of which ex-
ploded within the walls of the fort^^^t without making
any impression on either the strength of the work or the
garrison," and the British were compelled to retire with
much loss.
In 1815, a squadron of British ships, stationed off the
mouths of the Mississippi, for the purpose of a blockade,
ascended the river as high as Fort St. Philip, which is a
* Perkins says two killed and six wounded. Holnies says six
wounded, but makes no mention of any killed.
172 _ MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
small work capable of an armament of only twenty guns
in all. A heavy fire of shot and shells was continued with
but few and short pauses for nine days and nights, but
making no impression either on the fort or garrison, they
retreated to their former position at the mouth of the river.
There is but a single instance in the war of 1812, where
the enemy's vessels succeeded in reducing a fort ; and
this has sometimes been alluded to, by persons ignorant of
the real facts of the case, as a proof against the ability of
our fortifications to resist naval attacks. Even if it were
a case of decided failure, would this single exception be
sufficient to overthrow the weight of evidence on the other
side ? We allude to the reduction of the so-called Fort
Washington by the British fleet that ascended the Poto-
mac in 1814, to assist in the disgraceful and barbarous
operation of binning the capitol and destroying the archives
of the nation. Fort Washington was a very small and
inefficient work, incorrectly planned by an incompetent
French engineer ; only a small part of the fort was then
built, and it has not yet been completed. The portion
constructed was never, until very recently, properly pre-
pared for receiving its armament, and at the time of attack
could not possibly have held out a long time. But no de-
fence whatever was made. Capt. Gordon, with a squad-
ron of eight sail, carrying one hundred and seventy-three
guns, under orders " to ascend the river as high as Fort
Washington, and try upon it the experiment of a bombard-
ment," approached that fort, and, upon firing a single shell,
which did no injury to either the fort or the garrison, the
latter deserted the works, and rapidly retreated. The
commanding officer was immediately dismissed for his
cowardice. An English naval officer, who was one of the
expedition, in speaking of the retreat of the garrison, says ;
" We were at loss to account for such an extraordinary
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 173
step. The position was good and the capture would have
cost us at least fifty men, and more, had it been properly
defended ; besides, an unfavorable wind and many other
chances were in their favor," &c. The fleet ascended
the river to Alexandria, but learning soon afterwards that
batteries were preparing at White House and Indian Head
to cut off its retreat, it retired, in much haste, but not
without injury.
Some have also pretended to find in modem European
history a few examples contradictory of the relative pow-
er which we have here assigned to ships and forts.
Overlooking the numerous and well-authenticated exam-
ples, where forts of small dimensions and of small arma-
ment have repelled large fleets, they would draw their
conclusions from the four or five instances where fleets
have gained (as was at first supposed) a somewhat doubt-
ful victory over forts. But a careful and critical examin-
ation of the facts in these cases, will show that even these
are no exceptions to the general rule of the superiority of
guns ashore over guns afloat.
The only instances vvhere it has ever been pretended
by writers of any note, that ships have gained advan-
tage, are those of the attack on Copenhagen in 1801 ; the
passage of the Dardanelles, in 1807 ; the attack on Al-
giers, in 1816 ; the attack on San Juan d'UUoa, in 1838 ;
and the attack on St. Jean d'Acre, in 1840.
Let us examine these examples a little in detail : —
Copenhagen. — The British fleet sent to attack Copen-
hagen, in 1801, consisted of fifty-two sail, eighteen of
them being line-of-battle ships, four frigates, &c. They
sailed from Yarmouth roads on the 12th of March, passed
the Sound on the 30th, and attacked and defeated the
Danish line on the 2d of April.
The Sound between Cronenberg and the Swedish coast
is about two and a half miles wide, (vide Fig. 34.) The
1.74 MIUTAEr ART AND SCIENCE.
batteries of Cronenberg and Elsinore were lined with, one
hundred pieces of cannon and mortars ; but the Swedish
battery had been much neglected, and then mounted only
six guns. Nevertheless, the British admiral, to avoid the
damage his squadron would have to sustain in the passage
of this wide channel, defended by a force scarcely supe-
rior to a single one of his ships, preferred to attempt the
difficult passage of the Belt ; but after a few of his light
vessels, acting as scouts, had run on rocks, he returned to
the Sound.
He then tried to negotiate a peaceful passage, threaten-
ing, however, a declaration of war if his vessels should
be fired upon. It must be remembered that at this time
England was at peace with both Denmark and Sweden,
and that no just cause of war existed. Hence, the ad-
miral inferred that the commanders of these batteries
would be loath to involve their countries in a war with so
formidable a power as England, by commencing hostili-
ties, when only a free passage was asked. The Danish
commander replied, that he should not permit a fleet to
pass his post, whose object and destination were unknown
to him. He fired upon them, as he was bound to do by
long-existing commercial regulations, and not as an act of
hostility against the English. The Swedes, on the con-
trary, remained neutral, and allowed the British vessels to
lie near by for several days without firing upon them.
Seeing this friendly disposition of the Swedes, the fleet
neared their coast, and passed out of the reach of the
Danish batteries, which opened a fire of balls and shells ;
but all of them fell more than two hundred yards short
of the fleet, which escaped without the loss of a single
man.
The Swedes excused their treachery by the plea tHat
it would have been impossible to construct batteries at
that season, and that, even had it been possible, Denmark
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 175
would not have consented to their doing so, for fear that
Sweden would renew her old claim to one half of the rich
duties levied by Denmark on all ships passing the strait.
There may have been some grounds for the last excuse ;
but the true reason for their conduct was the fear of get-
ting involved in a war w'ith England. Napoleon says
that, even at that season, a few days would have been
sufficient for placing a hundred guns in battery, and that
Sweden had much more time than was requisite. And
with a hundred guns on each side of the channel, served
with skill and energy, the fleet must necessarily have sus-
tained so much damage as to render it unfit to attack
Copenhagen.
On this passage, we remark : —
1st. The whole number of guns and mortars in the forts
6f the Sound amoimted to only one hundred and six, while
the-fleet carried over seventeen hundred guns ; and yet,
with this immense superiority of more than sixteen to one,
the British admiral preferred the dangerous passage of the
Belt to encountering the fire of these land-batteries.
2d. By negotiations, and threatening the vengeance of
England, he persuaded the small Swedish battery to re-
main silent and allow the fleet to pass near that shore, out
of reach of Cronenberg and Elsinore.
3d. It is the opinion of Napoleon and the best English
writers, that if the Swedish battery had been put in order,
and acted in concert with the Danish works, they might
have so damaged the fleet as to render it incapable of any
serious attempt on Copenhagen.
We now proceed to consider the circumstances attend-
ing the attack and defence of Copenhagen itself. The
only side of the town exposed to the attack of heavy ship-
ping is the northern, where there lies a shoal extending
out a considerable distance, leaving only a very narrow
approach to the heart of the city, (Fig. 35 ) On the most
176 MILITARY ART AND BCIEWCE.
advanced part of this shoal are the Crown-batteries, car
ryiag in all eighty-eight guns.* The entrance into the
Baltic between Copenhagen and Salthorn, is divided into
two channels by a bank, called the Middle Ground, which
is situated directly opposite Copenhagen. To defend the
entrance on the left of the Crown-batteries, they placed
near the mouth of the channel four ships of the line, one
frigate, and two sloops, carrying in all three hundred and
fifty-eight guns. To secure the j)ort and city from bom-
bardment from the King's Channel, (that between the
Middle Ground and town,) a line of floating defences were
moored near the edge of the shoal, and manned princi-
pally by volunteers. This line consisted of old hulls of
vessels, block-ships, prames, rafts, &c., carrying in all six
hundred and twenty-eight guns — a force strong enough to
prevent the approach of bomb-vessels and gunboats, (the
purpose for which it was intended,) but utterly incapable
of contending with first-rate ships of war ; but these the
T)anes thought would be deterred from approaching by the
difliculties of navigation. These difficulties were cer-
tainly very great ; and Nelson said, beforehand, that " the
wind which might carry him in would most probably not
bring out a crippled ship." Had the Danes supposed it
possible for Nelson to apprpach with his large vessels,
the line of floating defences would have been formed
nearer Copenhagen, the right supported by batteries raised
on the isle of Amack. " In that case," says Napoleon,
" it is probable that Nelson would have failed in Jiis
attack ; for it would have been impossible for him to pass
between the line and shore thus lined vsdth caimon." As
it was, the line was too extended for strength, and its right
too far advanced to receive assistance from the battery of
* Some writers Bay only sixty-eight or seventy ; but the English
writers generally say eighty-eight. A few, (apparently to increase
the brilliancy of the victory,) make this number still greater.
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 177
Amack. A part of the fleet remaineii as a reserve, under
Admiral Parker, while the others, under Nelson, advanced
to the King's Channel. This attackiiig force consisted
of eight ships of the line and thirty-six smaller vessels,
carrying in all eleven himdred guns, (without including
those in the six gun-brigs, whose armament is not given.)
One of the seventy-four-gun ships could not be brought
into action, and two others grounded ; but. Lord Nelson
says, " although not in the situation assigned them, yet
they were so placed as to be of great service." This
force was concentrated upon a part of the Danish liije of
floating defences, the whole of which was not only infe-
rior to it by three hundred and eighty-two guns, but so
situated as to be beyond the reach of succor, and without
a chance of escapd? The result was what might have
been expected. Every vessel of the right and centre of
this outer Danish line was taken or destroyed, except one
or two small ones, which cut and run under protection of
the fortifications. The left of the line, being supported
by the Crown-battery, remained unbroken. A division
of frigates, in hopes of providing an adequate substitute
for the ships intended to attack the batteries, ventured to
engage them, but " it suffered considerable loss, and, in
spite of all its efforts, W9,s obliged to relinquish this enter-
prise, and sheer off."
The Danish vessels lying in the entrance of the chan-
nel which leads to the city, were not attacked, and took
no material part in the contest. They are to be reckoned
in the defence on the same grounds that the British ships
of the reserve should be included in the attacking force.
Nor was any use made of the guns on shore, for the ene-
my did not advance far enough to be within their range.
The Crown-battery was hehind the Danish line, and
mainly masked by it. A part only of its guns could be
used in support of the left of this line, and in repelling thQ
178 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
direct attacks of the frigates, which it did most effectually.
But we now come to a new feature in this battle. As
the Danish line of floating defences fell into the hands of
the English, the range of the CrownTbattery enlarged, and
its power was felt. Nelson saw the danger to which his
fleet was exposed, and, being at last convinced of the
prudence of the admiral's signal for retreat, " made up his
mind to weigh anchor and retire from the engagement."
To retreat, however, from his present position, was ex-
ceedingly difficult and dangerous. He therefore deter-
mined to endeavor to effect an armistice, and dispatched
the following letter to the prince-regent :
" Lord Nelson has directions to spare Denmark when
no longer resisting ; but if the firing is continued on the
part of Denmark, Lord Nelson must be obliged to set on
fire all the floa,ting batteries he has taken, without the
power to save the brave Danes who have defended them."
This produced an armistice, and hostilities had hardly
ceased, when three of the English ships, including that
in which Nelson himself was, struck upon the bankt
" They were in the jaws of destruction, and would never
have escaped if the batteries had continued their fire.
They therefore owed their safety to this armistice." A
convention was soon signed, by which every thing was
left in statu quo, and the fleet of Admiral Parker allowed
to proceed into the Baltic. Edward Baines; the able
English historian of the wars of the French Revolution,
in speaking of Nelson's request for an armistice, says :
" This letter, which exhibited a happy union of policy and
courage, was written at a moment when Lord Nelson per-
ceived that, in consequence of the unfavorable state of the
wind, the admiral was not likely to get up to aid the enter-
prise ; that the principal batteries of the enemy, and the
ships at the mouth of the harbor, were yet untmiched ; that
two of his own division had grounded, and others wero
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 179
likely to share the same fate." Campbell says these bat-
teries and ships " were still ■anconquered. Two of his [Nel-
son's] own vessels were grounded and exposed to a heavy
fire ; others, if the battle continued, might be exposed to
a similar fate, while he found it would be scarcely prac-
ticable to bring off the prizes under the fire of the bat-
teries."
With respect to the fortifications of the town, a chroni-
cler of the times says they were of no service while the
action lasted. " They began to fire when the enemy took
possession of the abandoned ships, but it was at the ^ame
time the parley appeared." The Danish commander,
speaking of the general contest between the two lines,
says : " The Grown-battery did not come at all into action."
An English writer says distinctly : " The works (fortifi-
cations) of Copenhagen were absolutely untouched at the
close of the action." Colonel Mitchel, the English his-
torian, says : " Lord Nelson never fired a shot at the town
or fortifications of Copenhagen ; he destroyed a line of
block-ships, prames, and floating batteries that defended
the sea approach to the town ; and the Crown Prince,
seeing his capital exposed, was willing to finish by armi-
stice a war, the object of which was neither very popular
nor well understood. What the result of the action be-
tween Copenhagen and the British fleet might ultimately
have been, is therefore altogether uncertain. The Bom-
bardment OF Copenhagen by Nelson, as it is generally
styled, is therefore, like most other oracular phrases of the
day, a mere combination of words, without the slightest
meaning."
The British lost in killed and wounded nine hundred
and forty-three men ; and the loss of the Danes, accord-
ing to their own account, which is confirmed by the French,
was but very little higher. The English, however, say it
amounted to sixteen or eighteen hundred ; but let the loss
180 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
be what it may, it was almost exclusively confined to the
floating defences, and can in no way determine the rela-
tive accuracy of aim of the guns ashore and guns afloat.
The facts and testimony we have adduced, prove incon-
testably —
1st. That of the fleet of fifty-two sail and seventeen
hundred guns sent by the English to the attack upon Co-
penhagen, two ships carrying one hundred and forty-eight
guns were groimded or wrecked ; seven ships of the line,
and thirty-six smaller vessels, carrying over one thousand
guns, were actually brought into the action ; while the re-
mainder were held as a reserve to act upon the first fa-
vorable opportunity.
2d. That the Danish line of floating defences, con-
sisting mostly of hulls, sloops, rafts, &c., carried only six
hundred and twenty-eight guns of all descriptions ; that
the fixed batteries supporting this line did not carry over
eighty or ninety guns at most ; and that both these land
and floating batteries were mostly maimed and the guns
served by volunteers.
3d. That the fixed batteries in the system of defence
were either so completely masked, or so far distant, as to
be useless during the contest between the fleet and float-
ing force.
4th. That the few guns of these batteries which were
rendered available by the position of the floating de-
fences, repelled, with little or no loss to themselves, and
some injury to the enemy, a vastly superior force of fri-
gates which attacked them.
5th. That the line of floating defences was conquered
and mostly destroyed, while the fixed batteries were unin-
jured.
6th. That the fortifications of the city and of Amaqk
island were not attacked, and had no part in the contest.
7th. That, as soon as the Crown-batteries were im-
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 181
masked and began to act, Nelson prepared to retreat, but,
on account of the difficulty of doing so, he opened a par-
ley, threatening, with a cruelty unworthy of the most bar-
barous ages, that, unless the batteries ceased their jire upon
his ships, he would burn all the floating defences with the
Danish prisoners in his possession ; and that this armistice
was concluded just in time to save his own ships from
destruction.
8th. That, consequently, the battle of Copenhagen can-
not be regarded as a contest between ships and forts, or a
triiunph of ships over forts : that, so far as the guns on
shore were engaged, they showed a vast superiority over
those afloat — a superiority known and confessed by the
English themselves.
Constantinople. — The channel of the Dardanelles is
about twelve leagues long, three miles wide at its en-
trance, and about three-quarters of a mile at its narrowest
point. Its principal defences are the outer and inner cas-
tles of Europe and Asia, and the castles of Sestos and
Abydos. Constantinople stands about one hundred miles
from its entrance into the Sea of Marmora, and at nearly
the opposite extremity of this sea. The defences of the
channel had been allowed to go to decay ; but few guns
were mounted, and the forts were but partially garrisoned.
In Constantinople not a gun was mounted, and no prepar-
ations for defence were made ; indeed, previous to the
approach of the fleet, the Turks had not determined
whether to side with the English or the French, and even
then the French ambassador had the greatest difficulty in
persuading them to resist the demands of Duckforth.
The British fleet consisted of six sail of the line, two
frigates, two sloops, and several bomb-vessels, carrying
eight hundred and eighteen guns, (besides those in the
bomb-ships.) Admiral Duckforth sailed through the Dar-
danelles on the 19th of February, 1807, with little or no
1 82 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
opposition. This being a Tnrkisli festival day, the sol
diers of the scanty garrison were enjoying the festivities
of the occasion, and none were left to serve the few guns
of the forts which had been prepared for defence. But
while the admiral was waiting on the Sea of Marmora for
the result of negotiations, or for a favorable wind to make
the attack upon Constantinople, the fortifications of this
city were put in order, and the Turks actively employed,
under French engineers and artillery officers, in repair-
ing the defences of the Straits. Campbell, in his Naval
History, says : — " Admiral Duckforth now fully perceived
the critical situation in which he was placed. He might,
indeed, succeed, should the weather become favorable, in
bombarding Constantinople ; but unless the bombardment
should prove completely successful in forciTig the Turks to
pacific terms, the injury he might do to the city would not
compensate for the damage which his jleet must necessarily
sustain. With this damaged and crippled fleet, he must re-
pass the Dardanelles, now rendered infinitely stronger than
they were when he came through them."
Under these circumstances the admiral determined to
retreat ; and on the 3d of April escaped through the Dar-
danelles, steering midway of the channel, with a favora-
ble and strong current. " This escape, however," says
Baines, " was only from destruction, but by no means
from serious loss and injury. * * * * In what in-
stance in the whole course of our naval warfare, have
ships received equal damage in so short a time as in this
extraordinary enterprise 1" In detaUing the extent of this
damage, we will take the ships in the order they descend-
ed. The first had her wheel carried away, and her hull
much damaged, but escaped with the loss of only three
men. A stone shot penetrated the second, between the
poop and quarter deck, badly injured the mizzen-mast, car-
ried away the wheel, and did other serious damage, killing
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 183
and wounding twenty men. Two shot struck the third, car-
rying away her shrouds and injuring her masts ; loss in
killed and wounded, thirty. The fourth had her mainmast
destroyed, with a loss of sixteen. The fifth had a large shot,
six feet eight inches in circiunference, enter her lower
deck ; loss fifty-five. The sixth, not injured. The seventh, a
good deal damaged, with a loss of seventeen. The eighth
had no loss. The ninth was so much injured that, " had
there been a necessity for hauling the wind on the oppo-
site tack, she must have gone down :" her loss was eight.
The tenth lost twelve. The eleventh was much injured,
with a loss of eight — making a total loss in repassing the
Dardanelles, of one hundred and sixty-seven ; and in the
whole expedition two hundred and eighty-one, exclusive
of two hundred and fifty men who perished in the burning
of the Ajax.
Such was the effect produced on the British fleet, sail-
ing with a favorable wind and strong current past the half-
armed and half-manned forts of the Dardanelles. Duck-
forth himself says, that "had he remained before Constan-
tinople much longer — ^till the forts had been completely put
in order — no return would have been open to him, and the
unavoidable sacrifice of the squadron must have been the
consequence.'' Scarcely had the fleet cleared the Straits,
before it (the fleet) was reinforced with eight sail of the
line ; but, even with this vast increase of strength, the
English did not venture to renew the contest. They had
effected a most fortunate escape. General Jomini says
that if the defence had been conducted by a more enter-
prising and experienced people, the expedition would
have cost the English their whole squadron.
Great as was the damage done to the fleet, the forts them-
selves were uninjured. The English say their own fire did
no execution, the shot in all probability not even striking
heir objects—" the rapid change of position, occasioned
184 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
by a fair wind and current, preventing the certainty of
aim.'' The state of the batteries when the fleet first pass-
ed, is thus described in James's Naval History : " Some
of them were dilapidated, and others but partially mount-
ed and poorly manned." And Alison says : " They had
been allowed to fall into disrepair. The castles of Europe
and Asia, indeed, stood in frovraing majesty, to assert the
dominion of the Crescent at the narrowest part of the pas-
sage, but their ramparts were antiquated, their guns in
part dismounted, and such as remained, though of enor-
mous calibre, little calculated to answer the rapidity and
precision of an English broadside."
Much has been said because the fortifications of the Dar-
danelles did not hermetically seal that channel, (an object
they were never expected to accomplish, even had they
been well armed and well served ;) but it is forgotten, or
entirely overlooked, that twelve Turkish line-of-hattle-
ships, two of them three-deckers, with nine frigates, were with
their sails bent and in apparent readiness, filled with troops,
and lying within the line of fortifications ; and yet this naval
force effected little or nothing against the invaders. It is
scarcely ever mentioned, being regarded of little conse-
quence as a means of defence ; and yet the number of its
guns and the expense of its construction and support, could
hardly have fallen short of the incomplete and half-armed
forts, some of which were as ancient as the reign of Amurath !
Algiers. — The following narrative of the attack on Al-
giers, in 1816, is drawn from the reports of the English
and Dutch admirals, and other official and authentic Eng-
lish papers.
. The attack was made by the combined fleets, consist-
ing of five sail of the line, eighteen or twenty frigates and
smaller vessels, besides five bomb-vessels and several
rocket-boats, carrying in all about one thousand guns.
The armament of some of the smaller vessels is not given.
SEACOAST DEFENCES. 185
but the guns of those whose armaments are known, amount
to over nine hundred. The harbor and defences of Al-
giers had been previously surveyed by Captain Warde,
royal navy, under Lord Exmouth's direction ; and the
number of the combined fleet was arranged according to
the information given in this survey — just so many ships,
and no more, being taken, as could be employed to ad-
vantage against the city, without being needlessly ex-
posed. Moreover, the men and officers had been selected
and exercised with reference to this particular attack.
From the survey of Captain Warde, and the accompa-
nying map, it appears that the armament of all the fortifi-
cations of Algiers and the vicinity, counting the water
fronts and the parts that could flank the shore, was only
two hundred and eighty-four guns of various sizes and
descriptions, including mortars. But not near all of these
could act upon the fleet as it lay. Other English accounts
state the number of guns actually opposed to the fleet at
from two hundred and twenty to two hundred and thirty.
Some of these were in small and distant batteries, whereas
nearly all the fleet was concentrated on the mole-head
works. (Fig. 36.) Supposing only one broadside of the
ships to have been engaged, the ratio of the forces, as ex-
pressed by the number of guns, must have been about as
5 to 2. This is a favorable supposition for the ships ; for
we know that several of them, from their position and a
change of anchorage, brought both broadsides to bear;
moreover, at no one time could all the guns of the water
fronts of the batteries bear on the attacking ships. The
Algerine shipping in the harbor was considerable, includ-
ing several vessels of war, but no use was made of them
in defence, and nearly all were burnt. The attacking
ships commanded some of the batteries, and almost imme-
diately dismounted their guns. The walls of the case-
mated works were so thin as to be very soon battered
186 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
down. Most of the Algerine guns were badly mounted,
and many of them were useless after the first fire. They
had no furnaces for heating shot, and, as " they loaded
their guns with loose powder, put- in with a ladle," they
could not possibly have used hot shot, even had they con-
structed furnaces. The ships approached the forts, and
many of thent anchored in their intended position, without
a shot being fired from the batteries. The action com-
menced at a quarter before three, and did not entirely
cease till half-past eleven. The ships then took advan-
tage of the land breeze, and, by warping and towing off,
were able to get under sail and come to anchor beyond
reach of the land-batteries. Negotiations were again
opened, and the Dey surrendered the Christian slaves and
yielded to the terms of the treaty.
During the contest, the fleet " fired nearly one himdred
and eighteen tons of powder, and fifty thousand / shot,
(weighing more than five hundred tons of iron,) besides
nine hundred and sixty thirteen and ten-inch shells,
(thrown by the bomb-vessels,) and the shells and rockets
from the flotilla.'' The vessels were considerably crip-
pled, and their loss in killed and wounded amounted to
eight -hundred and eighty-three. The land batteries were
much injured, and a large part of their guns dismounted.
Their loss is not known ; the English confess they could
obtain no account of it, but suppose it to have been very
great. This seems more than probable ; for, besides those
actually employed in the defence, large numbers of people
crowded into the forts to witness the contest. So great
was this curiosity, that, wh^n the action commenced, the
parapets were covered "with the multitude gazing at the
manoeuvres of the ships. To avoid so rmnecessary and
indiscriminate a slaughter. Lord Exmouth (showing a
humanity that does him great credit) motioned with his
hand to the ignorant wretches to retire to some place of
SEA-COAST DEFENCES 187
safety. This loss of life in the batteries, the burning of
the buildings within the town and about the mole, the en-
tire destruction of their fleet and merchant vessels an-
chored within the mole and in the harbor, had a depress-
ing effect upon the inhabitants, and probably did more than
the injuries received by the batteries in securing an honor-
able conclusion to the treaty. We know very well that
these batteries, though much injured, were not silenced,
when Lord Exmouth'^ook advantage of the land breeze
and sailed beyond their reach. The ships retired — 1st,
because they had become much injured, and their ammuni-
nition nearly exhausted ; 2d, in order to escape from a
position so hazardous in case of a storm ; and 3d, to get
beyond the reach of the Algerine batteries. Lord Ex-
mouth himself gives these as his reasons for the retreat,
and says, " the land wind saved me many a gallant fellow."
And Vice-admiral Von de Capellan, in his report of the
battle, gives the same opinion : " in this retreat" says he,
" which, from wantbf wind and the damage suffered in the
rigging, was very slow, the ships had still to suffer much
from the new-opened and redoubled fire of the enemy's bat-
teries ; at last, the land breeze springing up," &c. An
English officer, who took part in this affair, says : " It
was well for us that the land wind came off, or we should
never have got out ; and God knows what woizld have
been our fate, had we remained all night."
The motives of the retreat cannot, therefore, be doubt-
ed. Had the Arabs set themselves zealously at work,
during the night, to prepare for. a new contest, by re-
mounting their guns, and placing others behind the ruins
of those batteries which had fallen, — in other words, had
the works now been placed in hands as skilful and expe-
rienced as the English,. the contest would have been far
from ended. But (to use the words of the Board of De-
fence) Lord Exmouth relied on the effects produced on
188 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the people by his dreadful cannonade ; and the result
proves that he was right. His anxiety to clear the ves-
sels from the contest shows that there was a power still
unconquered, which he thought it better to leave to be
restrained by the suffering population of the city, than to
keep in a state of exasperation and activity by his pres-
ence. What was this power but an unsubdued energy in
the batteries ?
The true solution of the question is, then, not so much
the amount of injury done on the one side or the other —
particularly as there was on one side a city to suffer as
well as the batteries-^— as the relative efficiency of the
parties when the battle closed. All political agitation and
popular clamor aside, what would have been the result
had the fight been continued, or even had Lord Exmouth
renewed it next morning ? These are questions that can
be answered only on conjecture ; but the manner the bat-
tle ended certainly leaves room for many doubts whether,
had the subsequent demands of Lord Exmouth been re-
jected, he had it in his power to enforce them by his
ships ; whether, indeed, if he had renewed the fight, he
would not have been signally defeated. On the whole,
we do not think that this battle, although it stands pre-
eminent as an example of naval success over batteries,
presents an argument to shake the confidence which for-
tifications, well situated, well planned, and well fought,
deserve, as the defences of a seaboard.
"We cannot help regarding these conclusions as just,
when we reflect upon all the circumstances of the case.
The high character, skill, and bravery of the attacking
force ; their immense superiority in number of guns, with
no surplus human life to be exposed ; the antiquated and
ill-managed works of defence, the entire want of skill of
the Algerine artillerists, and the neglect of the ordinary
means of preparation ; the severe execution which these
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 189
ill-served guns did upon the enemy's ships, — an execution
far more dreadful than that effected by the French or
Dutch fleets in their best-contested naval battles with the
ships of the same foe, — from these facts, we must think that
those who are so ready to draw from this case conclusions
unfavorable to the use of land-batteries as a means of de-
fence against shipping, know but little of the nature of
the contest.
An English historian of some note, in speaking of this
attack, says : — " It is but little to the purpose, unless to
prove what may be accomplished by fleets against towns
exactly so circimistanced, placed, and governed. Algiers
is situated on an amphitheatre of hills, sloping down to-
wards the sea, and presenting therefore the fairest mark
to the fire of hostile ships. But where is the capital ex-
actly so situated that we are ever likely to attack 1 And
as to the destruction of a few second-rate towns, even
when practicable, it is a mean, unworthy species of war-
fare, by which nothing was ever gained. The severe loss
sustained before Algiers must also be taken into account,
because it was inflicted by mere Algerine artillery, and
was much inferior to what may be expected from a con-
test maintained against batteries manned with soldiers in-
structed by ofiicers of skill and science, not only in work-
ing the guns, but in the endless duty of detail necessary
for keeping the whole of an artillery material in a proper
state of formidable efiiciency."
San Juan d^Ulloa. — The following facts, relative to the
attack on San Juan d'Ulloa by the French, in 1838, are
drawn principally from the report of a French engineer
officer who was one of the expedition.
The French fleet consisted of four ships, carrying one
hundred and eighty-eight guns, two armed steamboats,
and two bomb-ketches with four large mortars. The
whole number of guns, of whatever description, found in
190 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the fort was one hundred and eighty-seven ; a large por-
tion of these, however, were for land defence. (Fig. 37.)
When the French vessels were towed into the position
selected for the attack, " it was lucky for us,'' says the
French officer in his report, " that the Mexicans did not dis-
turb this operation, which lasted nearly two hours, and that
they permitted us to commence the fire ." " We were exposed
to the fire of one twenty-four-pounder, five sixteen-pounders,
seven twelve-pounders, one eight-pounder, and five eigh-
teen-pounder carronades — in all nineteen pieces only." If
these be converted into equivalent twenty-four-pounders, in
proportion to the weight of the balls, the whole nineteen
guns will be less than twelve twenty-four pounders. This
estimate is much too great, for it allows three eight-
pounders to be equal to one twenty-four-pounder, and
each of- the eighteen-pounder carronades to be three
quarters the power of a long twenty-four-pounder ; where-
as, at the distance at which the parties were engaged, these
small pieces were nearly harmless. Two of the powder
magazines, from not being bomb-proof, were blown up
during the engagement, by which three of the nineteen
guns on the water front of the castle were dismounted ;
thus reducing the land force to an equivalent of ten twenty-
four-pounders. The other sixteen guns were still efiect-
ive when abandoned by the Mexicans. The cannonade
and bombardment continued about six hours, eight thou-
sand two hundred and fifty shot and shells being fired at
the fort by the French. The principal injury received by
the work was from the explosion of the powder maga-
zine. But very few guns were dismounted by the fire of
the French ships, and only three of these on the water
front. The details of the condition of the ships and fort
are given in the report of the French officer,* but it is
unnecessary to repeat them here.
* Vide also House Doc. No. 306, twenty-sixth Congress, first session
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 191
In general tenns, it appears from the above-mentioned
report, that the number of guns actually brought into action by
the floating force, (counting only one broadside of the ship,)
amounted to ninety-four guns, besides four heavy sea-mor-
tars ; that the whole number so employed in the fort was
only nineteen, including the smallest calibres ; that these guns
were generally so small and inefficient, that their balls
would not enter the sides of the ordinary attacking frigates ;
the principal injury sustained by the castle was produced
by the explosion of powder magazines injudiciously placed
and improperly secured ; that the castle, though built of
poor materials, was but slightly injured by the French fire ;
that the Mexicans proved themselves ignorant of the ordi-
nary means of defence, and abandoned their works when
only a few of their guns had been dismounted ; that not-
withstanding all the circumstances in favor of the French,
their killed and wounded, in proportion to the guns acting
against them, was upwards of four times as great as the
loss of the English at the battle of Trafalgar !
St. Jean d'Acre. — The narratives of the day contained
most exaggerated accounts of the English attack on St.
Jean d'Acre ; now, however, the principal facts connected
with this attack are fully authenticated. For the amount
of the fleet we quote from the British official papers, and
for that of the fort, from the pamphlet of Lieutenant-col-
onel Matuszewiez. These statements are mainly con-
firmed by the narratives, more recently published, of sev-
eral English and French eye-witnesses.
The fortifications were built of poor materials, antiqua-
ted in their plans, and much decayed. Their entire arma-
ment amounted to only two hundred guns, some of which
were merely field-pieces. The water fronts were armed
with one hundred cannon and sixteen mortars, those of the
smaller calibre included. (Fig. 38.) When approached by
the British fleet, the works were undergoing repairs, and,
192 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
says Commodore Napier, "were fast getting into a state
of preparation against attack."
The British fleet consisted of eight ships of the line,
carrying six hundred and forty-six guns ; six frigates, car-
rying two hundred and thirty-six guns ; four steamers,
carrying eighteen guns ; and two or three other vessels,
whose force is not given. " Only a few guns," says Na-
pier, " defended the approach from the northward," and
most of the ships came in from that direction. The west-
em front was armed with about forty cannon ; but opposed
to this were six ships and two steamers, carrying about
five hundred guns. Their fire was tremendous during the
engagement, but no breach was made in the walls. The
south front was armed in part by heavy artillery and
in part by field-pieces. This front was attacked by six
ships and two steamers, carrying over two hundred gims.
The eastern front was armed only with light artUlery ;
against this was concentrated the remainder of the fleet,
carrying about two hundred and forty guns. The guns of
the works were so poorly mounted, that but few could be
used at all ; and these, on account of the construction of
the fort, could not reach the ships, though anchored close
by the walls. " Only five of their guns," says Napier,
" placed in a flanking battery, were well served, and never
missed ; but they were pointed too high, and damaged our
spars and rigging only." The stone was of so poor a
quality, says the narrative of Colonel Matuszewiez, that
the walls fired upon presented on the exterior a shattered
appearance, but they were nowhere seriously injured. In
the words of Napier, " they were not breached, and a deter-
mined enemy might have remained secure under the breast-
works, or in the numerous casemates, without suffering much
loss." The accidental explosion of a magazine within the
fort, containing six thousand casks of powder, laid in ruins
a space of sixty thousand square yards, opened a large
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 193
oreach. in the walls of the fortifications, partially destroyed
the prisons, and killed and wounded a thousand men of
the garrison. This frightful disaster, says the French ac-
count, hastened the triumph of the fleet. The prisoners
and malefactors, thus released from confinement, rushed
upon the garrison at the same time with the mountaineers,
who had besieged the place on the land side. The use-
lessness of the artillery, the breaches of the fort, the at-
tacks of the English, all combined to force the retreat of
the garrison, " in the midst of scenes of blood and atro-
cious murders."
We will close this account with the following extract
of a speech of the Duke of Wellington, in the House of
Lords, Feb. 4, 1841 : "He had had," he said, "a little
experience in services of this nature ; and he thought it
his duty to warn their lordships, on this occasion, that they
must not always expect that ships, however well command-
ed, or however gallant their seamen might be, were capable
of commonly engaging successfully with stone walls. He
had no recollection, in all his experience, except the recent
instance on the coast of Syria, of any fort being taken by
ships, excepting two or three years ago, when the fort of
San Juan d'UUoa was captured by the French fleet. This
was, he thought, the single instance that he recollected,
though he believed that something of the sort had occur-
red at the siege of Havana, in 1763. The present
achievement he considered one of the greatest of modern
times. This was his opinion, and he gave the highest
credit to those who had performed such a service. It was,
altogether, a most skilful proceeding. He was greatly sur-
prised at the small number of men that was lost on board
the fleet ; and, on inquiring how it happened, he discovered
that it was because the vessels were moored within oner-
third of the ordinary distance. The guns of the fortresswere
intended to strike objects at a greater distance ; and the con
17
194 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
sequence was, that the shot went over the ships that were
anchored at one-third the usual distance. By that means,
they sustained not more than one-tenth of the loss which
they would otherwise have experienced. Not less than
five hundred pieces of ordnance were directed against the
walls, and the precision with which the fire was kept up,
the position of the vessels, and, lastly, the blowing up of
the large magazine — all aided in achieving this great vic-
tory in so short a time. He had thought it right to say
thus much, because he wished to warn the public against
supposing that such deeds as this could be effected every
day. He would repeat that this was a singular instance,
in the achievement of which undoubtedly great skill was
manifested, but which was also connected with peculiar
circumstances, which they could not hope always to oc-
cur. It must not therefore be expected, as a matter of,
course, that all such attempts must necessarily succeed."
Having completed our examination of the ability of land
batteries to cope, gun for gun, with a naval force, let us
consider, for a few moments, the objection which is some-
times made to the use of fortifications for the defence of
the sea-coast, viz. : that mir maritime cities and arsenals can
be better and more economically secured by a home squadron.
We have already alluded to the impossibility of substi-
tuting one means of defence for another. The efficiency
of the bayonet can in no way enable us po dispense with
artillery, nor the value of engineer troops in the passage
of rivers, and the attack and defence of forts, render cav-
alry the less necessary in other operations of a campaign.
To the navy alone must we look for the defence of our
shipping upon the high seas ; but it cannot replace fortifi-
cations in the protection of our harbors, bays, rivers, ar-
senals, and commercial towns.
Let us take a case in point. For the defence of New
York city, it is deemed highly important that the East
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 195
River should be closed to the approach of a hostile fleet at
least fifteen or twenty miles from the city, so that an army
landed there would have to cross the Westchester creek,
the Bronx, Harlem river, and the defiles of Harlem heights
— obstacles of great importance in a judicious defence.
Throg's Neck is the position selected for this purpose ;
cannon placed there not only command the channel, but,
from the windings of the river^ sweep it for a great dis-
tance above and below. No other position, even in the
channel itself, possesses equal advantages. Hence, if we
had only naval means of defence, it would be best, were
such a thing possible, to place the floating defences them-
selves on this point. Leaving entirely out of considera-
tion the question of relative power, position alone would
give the superior efficiency to the fort. But there are
other considerations no less important than that of position.
Fort Schuyler can be garrisoned and defended in part by
the same militia force which will be employed to prevent
the march of the enemy's army on the city. On the other
hand, the crews of the floating defences must be seamen ;
they will consequently be of less value in the subsequent
land operations. Moreover, forts, situated as this is, can
be so planned as to bring to bear upon any part of the
channel a greater number of guns than can be presented
by any hostile squadron against the corresponding portion
of the fort. This result can be obtained with little diffi-
culty in narrow channels, as is done in most of the other
works for the defence of New York, the works for Boston,
Newport, Philadelphia, Baltimore, Charleston, Savannah,
New Orleans, &c., and an approximation to it is not in-
compatible with the defence of the broader estuaries, like
the Chesapeake.
But we will suppose that there are no such points of
land, in the inlets to our harbors, and that we rely for de-
fence upon a naval force exclusively. Let us leave out of
196 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
consideration the security of all our other harbors and our
commerce on the high seas, and also the importance of
having at command the means of attacking the enemy's
coast, in the absence of his fleet. We take the single
case of the attack being made on New York harbor, and
that our whole fleet is assembled there. Now, if this
fleet be equal in number to the enemy, the chances of suc-
cess may be regarded as equal ; if inferior, the chances
are against us — for an attacking force would probably be
of picked men and of the best materials. But here the
consequences of victory are very unequal : the enemy can
lose his squadron only, while we put in peril both our
squadron and the objects it is intended to defend. If we
suppose our own naval force superior to that of the enemy,
the defence of this harbor would in all respects be com-
plete, provided this force never left the harbor. But, then,
all the commerce of the country upon the ocean must be
left to its fate ; and no attempt can be made to react of-
fensively upon the foe, imless we can control the chances
of finding the enemy's fleets within his ports, and the still
more uncertain chance of keeping him there ; the escape
of a single vessel being sufficient to cause the loss of our
harbor."
These remarks are based upon the supposition that we
have but the single harbor of New York ; whereas Port-
land, Portsmouth, Boston, Newport, the Delaware, the
Chesapeake, Charleston, Savannah, Pensacola, Mobile,
New Orleans, and numerous other places, are equally
open to attack, and therefore must be equally defended,
for we know not to which the enemy will direct his as-
saults. If he come to one of these in the absence of our
fleet, his object is attained without resistance ; or, if his
whole force be concentrated upon one but feebly defended,
we involve both fleet and harbor in inevitable ruin. Could
our fleet be so arranged as to meet these enterprises ?
SEA-COAST DEFENCES 197
" As it cannot be denied that the enemy can select the
point of attack out of the whole extent of coast, where is
the prescience that can indicate the spot 1 And if it can-
not be foretold, how is that ubiquity to be imparted that
shall always place our fleet in the path of the advancing
foe 1 Suppose we attempt to cover the coast by cruising
in front of it, shall we s'^eep its whole length — a distance
scarcely less than that which the enemy must traverse in
passing from his coast to ours ? Must the Gulf of Mexico
be swept, as well as the Atlantic ; or shall we give up the
Gulf to the enemy ? Shall we cover the southern cities,
or give them up also 1 We must unquestionably do one
of two things-»-either relinquish a great extent of coast,
confining our cruisers to a small portion only, or include
so much that the chances of intercepting an enemy would
seem to be out of the question."
" On the practicability of covering a small extent of
coast by cruising in front of it — or, in other words, the
possibility of anticipating an enemy's operations, discov-
ering the object of movements of which we get no glimpse
and hear no tidings, and seeing the impress of his foot-
steps on the surface of the ocean — it may be well to con-
sult experience."
The naval power of Spain under Philip II. was almost
unlimited. With the treasures of India and America at
his command, the fitting out of a fleet of one hundred and
fifty or two hundred sail, to invade another country, was
no very gigantic operation. Nevertheless, this naval force
was of but little avail as a coast defence. Its efliciency
for this purpose was well tested in 1596. England and
Holland attacked Cadiz with a combined fleet of one hun-
dred and seventy ships, which entered the Bay of Cadiz
without, on its approach to their coast, being once seen by
the Spanish navy. This same squadron, on its return to
England, passed along a great portion of the Spanish coast
198 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
without ever meeting with the slightest opposition from
the innumerable Spanish floating defences.
In 1744, a French fleet of twenty ships, and a land
force of twenty-two thousand men, sailed from Brest to
the English coast, without meeting with any opposition
from the superior British fleet which had been sent out,
under Sir John Norris, on purpose to intercept them.
The landing of the troops was prevented by a storm, which
drove the fleet back upon the coast of France to seek
shelter.
In 1755, a French fleet of twenty-five sail of the line,
and many smaller vessels, sailed from Brest for America.
Nine of these soon afterwards returned to France, and
the others proceeded to the gulf of St. Lawrence. An
English fleet of seventeen sail of the line and some frig-
ates had been sent out to intercept them ; but the two
fleets passed each other in a thick fog, and all the French
vessels except two reached Quebec in safety.
In 1759, a French fleet, blockaded in the port of Dun-
kirk by a British force under Commodore Bogs, seizing
upon a favorable opportunity, escaped from the enemy,
attacked the coast of Scotland, made a descent upon Car-
rickfergus, and cruised about till February, 1760, without
meeting a single British vessel, although sixty-one ships
of the line were then stationed upon the coasts of Eng-
land and France, and several of these were actually in
pursuit.
In 1796, when the French attempted to throw the army
of Hoche into Ireland, the most strenuous efibrts were
made by the British navy to intercept the French fleet in
its passage. The Channel fleet, of near thirty sail of the
line, under Lord Bridport, was stationed at Spithead ;
Sir Roger Curtis, with a smaller force, was cruising to
the westward; Vice-admiral Colpoys was stationed oflf
Brest, with thirteen sail of the line ; and Sir Edward
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 199
Pellew (afterwards Lord Exmouth) watched the harbor,
with a small squadron of frigates. Notwithstanding this
triple floating bulwark, as it was called — one fleet on the
- enemy's coast, a second in the Downs, and a third close on
their own shores — ^the French fleet of forly-four vessels,
carrying a land force of twenty-five thousand men, reached
Bantry Bay in safety ! This fleet was eight days on the
passage, and three more in landing the troops ; and most
of the vessels might have returned to Brest in safety, had
it not been for disasters by storms, for only one of their
whole number was intercepted by the vast naval force
which England had assembled for that express object.
" The result of this expedition," says Alison, " was preg-
nant with important instructions to the rulers of both coun-
tries. To the French, as demonstrating the extraordinary
. risks which attend a maritime expedition, in comparison
with a land campaign ; the small number of forces which
can be embarked on board even a great fleet ; and the
unforeseen disasters which frequently, on that element,
defeat the best concerted enterprises. To the English,
as showing that the empire of the seas does not always afford
security against invasion; that, in the face of superior
maritime forces, her possessions were for sixteen days at
the mercy of the enemy ; and that neither the skill of her
sailors nor the valor of her armies, but the fury of the
elements, saved them from danger in the most vulnerable
part of their dominions. While these considerations are
fitted to abate the confidence in invasion, they are calcu-
lated, at the same time, to weaken an overweening confi-
dence in naval superiority, and to demonstrate that the
only base upon which certain reliance can be placed, even by
an insular power, is a well-disciplined army and the patri-
otism of its own subjects^
Subsequent events still further demonstrated the truth
of these remarks. In the following year, a French squad-
200 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
ron of two frigates and two sloops, passed the British
fleets with perfect impunity, destroyed the shipping in the
port of Ilfracombe, and safely landed their troops on the
coast of Wales. Again, in 1798, the immense British
naval force failed to prevent the landing of General Hum-
bert's army in the bay of Killala ; and, in the latter part
of the same year, a French squadron of nine vessels and
three thousand men escaped Sir J. B. Warren's squadron,
and safely reached the coast of Ireland. As a further
illustration, we quote from the report of the Board of Na-
tional Defence in 1839.
The Toulon fleet, in 1798, consisting of about twenty
sail of the line and twenty smaller vessels of war, and
numerous transports, making in all, three hundred sail
and forty thousand troops, slipped out of port and sailed
to Malta. " It was followed by Nelson, who, thinking
correctly that they were bound for Egypt, shaped his
course direct for Alexandria. The French, steering to-
wards Candia, took the more circuitous passage ; so that
Nelson arrived at Alexandria before them, and, not finding
them there, returned, by way of Caramania and Candia,
to Sicily, missing his adversary in both passages. Sail-
ing again for Alexandria, he found the French fleet at
anchor in Abonkir bay, a.nd, attacking them there, achieved
the memorable victory of the Nile. When we consider
the narrowness of the sea ; the numerous vessels in the
French fleet ; the actual crossing of the two fleets on a
certain night ; and that Nelson, notwithstanding, could
see nothing of the enemy himself, and hear nothing
of them from merchant vessels, we may judge of the
probability of waylaying our adversary on the broad
Atlantic.
" The escape of another Toulon fleet in 1805 ; the long
search for them in the Mediterranean by the same able
officer ; the pursuit in the West Indies ; their evasion of
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 201
aim among the islands ; tlie return to Europe ; his vain
efforts suhsequently, along the coast of Portugal, in the
bay of Biscay, and off the English channel ; and the
meeting at last at Trafalgar, brought about' only because
the combined fleets, trusting to the superiority that the
accession of several reinforcements had given, were wil-
ling to try the issue of a battle — these are instances, of the
many that might be cited, to show how small is the proba-
bility of encountering upon the ocean an enemy who de-
sires to avoid a meeting, and how little the most unti-
ring zeal, the most restless activity, the most exalted pro-
fessional skill and judgment, can do to lessen the adverse
chances. For more than a year Nelson most closely
watched his enemy, who seems to have got out of port as
soon as he was prepared to do so, and without attracting
the notice of any of the blockading squadron. When out,
Nelson, perfectly in the dark as to the course Villeneuve
had taken, sought for him in vain on the coast of Egypt.
Scattered by tempests, the French fleet again took refuge
in Toulon ; whence it again put to sea, when refitted and
ready, joining the Spanish fleet at Cadiz.
" On the courage, skill, vigilance, and judgment, acceded
on all hands to belong in a pre-eminent degree to the na-
val profession in this country, this system of defence re-
lies to accomplish, against a string of chances, objects of
importance so great that not a doubt or misgiving as to the
result is admissible. It demands of the navy to do per-
fectly, and without fail, that which, to do at all, seems
impossible. The navy is required to know the secret
purposes of the enemy, in spite of distance, and the broken
intercourse of a state of war, even before these purposes
are known to the leader who is to execute them ; nay,
more, before the purpose itself is formed. On an element
where man is but the sport of storms, the navy is required
to lie in wait for the foe at the exact spot and moment, in
202 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
spite of weather and seasons ; to see him in spite of fogS
and darkness.
" Finally, after all the devices and reliances of the sys-
tem are satisfactorily accomplished, and all the difficulties
subdued, it submits to the issue of a single battle, on equal
terms, the fate of the war, having no hope or reserve beyond.
" The proper duty of our navy is, not coast or river de-
fence ; it has a more glorious sphere — ^that of the offensive.
In our last war, instead of lying in harbor, and contenting
themselves with keeping a few more of the enemy's ves-
sels in watch over them than their own number— instead
of leaving the enemy's commerce in undisturbed enjoy-
ment of the sea, and our commerce without countenance
or aid, they scattered themselves over the wide surface of
the ocean, penetrated to the most remote seas, everywhere
actings with the most brilliant success against the enemy's
navigation; And we believe, moreover, that in the amount
of the enemy's property thus destroyed, of American prop-
erty protected or recovered, and in the number of hostile
ships kept in pursuit of our scattered vessels, ships evaded
if superior, and beaten if equal — they rendered benefits a
thousand-fold greater, to say nothing of the glory they ac-
quired for the nation, and the character they imparted to it,
than any that would have resulted from a state of passive-
ness within the harbors. Confident that this is the true
policy as regards the employment of the navy proper, we
doubt not that it will in the future be acted on, as it has
been in the past; and that the results, as regards both
honor and advantage, will be expanded commensurately
with its own enlargement. In order, however, that the
navy may always assume and maintain that active and en-
ergetic deportment, in offensive operations, which is at the
same time so consistent with its functions, and so conso-
nant with its spirit, we have shown that it must not be oc-
cupied with mere coast defence.''
SEA-COAST DEFENCES. 803
A few remarks on the relative cost of ships and forts,
and the economy of their support, and we will close this
discussion. We do not regard this question, however, as
a matter of any great importance, for it can seldom be de-
cisive in the choice of these two means of defence. No
matter what their relative cost may be, the one cannot often
be substituted for the other. There are some few cases,
however, where this might be taken into consideration,
and would be decisive. Let us endeavor to illustrate our
meaning. For the defence of New York city, the Nar-
rows and East River must be secured by forts ; ships can-
not, in this case, be substituted. But let us suppose that
the outer harbor of New York furnishes no favorable place
for the debarkation of troops, or that the place of debarka-
tion is so far distant that the troops cannot reach the city
before the defensive forces can be prepared to repel-them.
This outer harbor would be of great importance to the en-
emy as a shelter from storms, and as a place of debarka-
tion or of rendezvous preparatory to a forcible passage of
the Narrows ; while to us its possession would not be ab-
solutely essential, though very important. Strong fortifi-
cations on Sandy Hook, and one of the shoals, might prob-
ably be so constructed as to furnish a pretty sure barrier
to the entrance of this outer harbor ; on the other hand, a
naval force stationed within the inner harbor, and acting
under the protection of forts at the Narrows, might also
furnish a good, though perhaps less certain protection for
this outer roadstead. Here, then, we might well consider
the question of relative cost and economy of support of the
proposed fortifications, and of a home squadron large
enough to effect the same object, and to be kept continu-
ally at home for that special purpose. If we were to allow
it to go to sea for the protection of our commerce, its char-
acter and efiiciency as a harbor defence would be lost.
We can therefore regard it only as a local force — fixed
204 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
■witMn the limits of the defence of this particular place—
and our estimates must be made accordingly.
The average durability of ships of war in the British
navy, has been variously stated at seven and eight years
in time of war, and from ten to twelve and fourteen years
in time of peace. Mr. Perring, in his " Brief Inquiry,"
published in 1812, estimates the average durability at
about eight years. His calculations seem based upon
authentic information. A distinguished English writer
has more recently arrived at the same result, from esti-
mates based upon the returns of the Board of Admiralty
during the period of the wars of the French Revolution.
The data in our own possession are less complete ; the
appropriations for building and repairing having been so
expended as to render it impossible to draw any accurate
line of distinction. But, in the returns now before us,
there are generally separate and distinct amounts of the
timbers used for these two purposes ; and consequently,
so far as this (the main item of expense) is concerned,
we may form pretty accurate comparisons.
According to Edge, (pp. 20, 21,) the average cost of
timber, for hulls, masts, and yards, in building an English
74 gun ship, is jC61,382. Let us now compare this cost of
timber for building, with that of the same item for repairs,
for the following fifteen ships, between 1800 and 1820.
The list would have been still further enlarged, but the
returns for other ships during some portion of the above
period are imperfect ;
SEA-COAST DEFENCES.
205
Name of Ship.
Vengeance
ndeionso,
Scipio
Tremendous
Elephant,
t)encer,
omulUB,
Albion
Donegal,
Implacable
IlluBtiious
Northumberland, . . .
Kent,
Sultan,
Sterling Castle
No.'of
When
Guns.
built.
74
_
74
-
74
-
74
_
74
—
74
1800
74
~
74
1803
74
—
74
—
74
1803
74
-
74
—
74
1807
74
Bep&iied from
Cost.
1800 to 1807
1807 to 1808
1807 to 1809
1807 to 1810
1808 to 1811
1809 to 1813
1810 to 1812
1810 to 1813
1812 to 1815
1813 to 1815
1813 to 1810
1814 to 1815
1814 to 1818
1816 to 1818
1816 to 1818
;C84,730
85,195
60,785
135,'397
67,007
134,186
73,141
102,295
101,367
59,863
74,184
59,795
88,357
61,918
65,280
This table, although incomplete, gives for the above
fifteen ships, during a period of less than twenty years,
the cost of timber alone used in their repair, an average
of about $400,000 each. More timber than this was
used, in all probability, upon the same vessels, and paid
for out of the funds appropriated " for such as may be or-
dered in course of the year to be repaired." But the
amount specifically appropriated for timber for these fif-
teen ships, would, in every twelve or fifteen years, equal
the entire Jirst cost of the same items. If we add to this
amount, the cost of labor required in the application of
timber to the operations of repair, and take into consider-
ation the expense of other materials and labor, and the
decayed condition of many of the ships at the end of this
period, we should not be surprised to find the whole sum
expended under these heads to equal the first cost, even
within the minimum estimate of seven years. The whole
cost of timber used for hulls, masts, and yards, in build-
ing between 1800 and 1820, was jei8,727,551 ; in repairs
and "ordinary wear and tear," £17,449,780; making an
annual average of $4,560,158 for building timber, and
$4,273,371 for that used in repairs. A large portion of
206
MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the vessels built were intended to replace others which
had been lost, or were so decayed as to be broken up.
But it may be well to add here, the actual supplies
voted for the sea-service, and for wear and tear, and the
extraordinary expenses in building and repairing of ships
from 1800 to 1815.
For the weal
Ext. Expenses
Year.
and tear of
for building,
Ships.
repairing, Sec.
1800
^64,350,000
£772,140
1801
5,850,000
933,900
1802
3,684,000
773,500
1803
3,120,000
901,140
1804
3,900,000
948,520
1805
4,680,000
1,553,690
1806
4,680,000
1,980,830
1807
5,070,000
2,134,903
1808
5,070,000
2,351,188
1809
3,295,500
2,296,030
1810
3,295,500
1,841,107
1811
3,675,750
2,046,200
1812
3,675,750
1,696,621
1813
3,549,000
2,822,031
1814
3,268,000
2,086,274
1815
2,386,500
2,116,710
For entire sea-
service.
;£13,619,079
16,577,037
11,833,571
10,211,378
12,350,606
15,035,630
18,864,341
17,400,337
18,087,544
19,578,467
18,975,120
19,822,000
19,305,759
20,096,709
19,312,070
19,032,700
It appears from this table that the appropriations for the
service, during the first fifteen years of the present cen-
tury, amounted to a little less than ninety millions of dol-
lars per annum ; and for the wear and tear of ships, and
"the extraordinary expenses in building and repairing
ships, &c.," the annual appropriations amounted to near
thirty millions.
Our own naval returns are also so imperfect that it is
impossible to form any very accurate estimate of the rel-
ative cost of construction and repairs of our men-of-war.
The following table, compiled from a report of the Secre-
tary of the Navy, in 1841, (Senate Doc. No. 223, 26th
Congress,) will afibrd data for an approximate calcula-
tion : —
SEA-COAST DEFENCES.
207
Total Cost of
Cost of Ee- .
Name of Ship.
No. of
Guns.
building,
eiclusive of
When
com-
pairs, exclu-
sive of ord-
Repaired
hntnrpnn
armament,
pleted.
nance,
UObTV ecu
stores, &c. &c.
&c. &c.
Delaware, ....
74
$543,368 DO
1820
$354,132 56
1827 and 1838
N. Carolina, . .
74
431,852 00
1825
317,628 92
1824 and 1836
Constitution,..
44
302,718 84
1797
266,878 34
1833 and 1839
United States,.
44
299,336 50
1797
571,972 77
1821 and 1841
Brandywine,..
44
*299,218 12
1825
»377,665 95
1826 and 1838
Potomac
44
*231,013 02
1822
*82,597 03
1829 and 1835
Concord,
Falmouth, ....
20
115,325 80
1828
72,796 22
1832 and 1840
20
94,093 27
1827
130,015 43
1828 and 1837
John Adams, .
20
110,670 69
1829
119,641 93
1834 and 1837
Boston
20
91,973 19
1825
189,264 37
1826 and 1840
St. Louis
20
102,461 95
1828
135,458 75
1834 and 1839
Vineennes, ...
20
111,512 79
1826
178,094 81
1830 and 1838
Vandalia
20
90,977 88
1828
59,181 34
1832 and 1334
Lexington,
20?
114,622 35
1826
83,386 52
1827 and 1837
Warren.
Fairfield,
20!
89,410 01
1826
152,596 03
1830 and 1838
20
100,490 35
1826
65,918 26
1831 and 1837
Natches,t
20!
106,232.19
1827
129,969 80
1829 and 1836
Boxer
10
30,697 88
1831
28,780 48
1834 and 1840
Enterprise
ID
27,938 63
1831
20,716 59
1834 and 1840
Grampus,
10
23,627 42
1821
96,086 36
1825 and 1840
Dolphm,
10
38,522 62
1836
15,013 35
1839 and 1840
Shark,
10
23,627 42
1821
93,395 84
1824 and 1839
It appears from the above table, that the cost of con-
structmg ships of the line is about $6,600 per gun ; of
frigates, $6,500 per gun ; of smaller vessels of war, a
little less than $5,000 per gim : making an average cost
of vessels of war to be more than six thousand dollars per
gun. And the expense of repairs for these vessels is
more than seven per cent, per annum on their first cost.
We have as yet had but little experience in the use of
war-steamers. The Fulton, four guns, built in 1838-39,
cost three hundred and thirty-three thousand seven hun-
dred and seventy dollars and seventy-seven cents ; the
Mississippi and Missouri, ten guns each, built in 1841,
cost about six hundred thousand dollars a piece ; making
an average cost for war-steamers of over sixty thousand
dollars per gun. The cost of repairs of steam ships will
be much greater than those for vessels of war ; but we
* Returns incomplete.
t Broken up in 1840
208 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
have not yet had sufficient experience to determine the
exact amount. It has been estimated, however, by com-
petent judges, that when kept, the expense of repairs
will at least equal twelve per cent, of the first cost. The
expense of keeping them in commission is enormously
great. " Their engines," says the Secretary of the Navy,
in his annual report in 1 842, " consume so much fuel as
to add enormously to their expenses ; and the necessity
that they should return to port, after short intervals of
time, for fresh supplies, renders it impossible to send
them on any distant service. They cannot be relied on
as cruisers, and are altogether too expensive for service
in time of peace. I have therefore determined to take
them out of commission, and substitute for them other and
less expensive vessels."
The average cost of permanent fortifications is but
little more than three thousand dollars per gun. And it
must be obvious, from the nature of the materials of
which they are constructed, that the expense of their
support must be inconsiderable. It is true that for some
years past a large item of aimual expenditure for fortifi-
cations has been under the head of " repairs ;'' but much
of this siun is for alterations and enlargements of tempo-
rary and inefficient works, erected anterior to the war of
1812. Some of it, however, has been for actual repairs
of decayed or injured portions of the forts ; these injuries
resulting from the nature of the climate, the foundations,
the use of poor materials and poor workmanship, and
from neglect and abandonment. But if we include the
risk of abandonment at times, it is estimated, upon data
drawn from past experience, that one-third of one per cent,
per annum, of the first cost, will keep in perfect repair
any of our forts that have been constructed since the last
war.
But it is unnecessary to further discuss this question
SEA-COAST DEF,ENCES. 209
We repeat what has already been said, no matter what
may be the relative cost of ships and forts, the one, as a
general thing, cannot be substituted for the other. Each
has its own sphere of action, and each will contribute, in
its own way, to the national defence ; and any undue in-
crease of one, at the expense of the other, will be at-
tended by a corresponding diminution of national power.*
* For further information concerning our system of sea-coast de-
fences, the reader is referred to House Doc. 306, twenty-sixth Con-
gress, second session ; Senate Doc. 85, twenty-eighth Congress, sec-
ond session ; and to the annual reports of the Chief Engineer.
210 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER VIII.
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES.
In discussing engineering as a branch of the military
art, we spoke of the use of fortifications on land frontiers,
and their influence on the strategic operations of a cam-
paign. A brief notice was also given of the different sys-
tems that have been proposed for arranging these defen-
sive works. Let us now apply this discussion to our
northern frontier.
The principle laid down by Napoleon and Jomini,
" that fortifications should always be constructed on im-
portant strategic points," is undoubtedly the correct one :
but how to determine these points is a question that will
often perplex the patience and try the skill of the engi-
neer ; yet determine them he must, or his fortifications
will be worse than useless ; for a fort improperly located,
like a cannon with its fire reversed on its own artillerists,
will be sure to effect the destruction of the very forces it
was designed to protect.
The selection of positions for fortifications on our
northern frontier must have reference to three distinct
classes of objects, viz. : the security, first, of the large
frontier towns, where much public and private property is
exposed to sudden dashing expeditions of the" foe, made
either on land or by water ; second, of lake harbors, im-
portant as places of refuge and security to our own ships,
or to the enemy's fleets while engaged in landing troops
or furnishing supplies to an invading army ; third, of all
strategic points on the probable lines of offensive or de-
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 211
fensive operations. These objects are distinct in their
nature, and would seem to require separate and distinct
means for their accomplishment ; nevertheless, it will
generally be found that positions selected with reference
to one of these objects' equally fulfil the others, so inti-
mately are they all connected. To determine the strategic
points of a probable line of military operations is there-
fore the main thing to be attended to in locating fortifica-
tions. That such points of maximum importance are ac-
tually marked out by the peaceful or hostile intercourse of
nations cannot be doubted.
The relative importance of cities and towns is less va-
ried by the fluctuations of commerce on a land frontier
than on the sea-coast. The ever-changing system of " in-
ternal improvements,'' by furnishing new highways and
thoroughfares for the transportation of the products of
manufacturers and agriculture, either continually varies
the relative standing of the seaports already opened, or
opens new ones for the exportation of these products, and
the importation of foreign articles received in exchange.
But these " internal improvements" are seldom, carried so
far as to connect together two separate and distinct coun-
tries, and consequently the principal places on the di-
viding line usually retain their relative importance, no
matter how often they may have declined during times of
hostility, or again flourished with the increased commer-
cial intercourse which results from peace. The principal
European places of trafiic near the frontiers have remained
the same for ages, and in all probability ages hence the
great frontier marts will be nearly the same as at present.
This stability of rank among border towns is not confined
to commercial influence ; the same holds true with re-
spect to that established by intercourse of a hostile char-
acter. Military history teaches us that lines of hostile
opera ions, and the fields upon which the principal battles
212 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
between any two countries have been fought, are nearly
the same, no matter how remote the periods of comparison.
These points and lines, so important in commerce as well
as in war, result from the natural features of the ground,
and we ought therefore to expect that they would be as
little liable to sudden changes as the character of the
earth itself.
From these remarks it will readily be perceived that
there are three distinct methods of determining the strate-
gic points between this country and Canada : 1st, by an
examination of the topography of the two countries ; 2d,
by tracing out the main channels of commercial inter-
course ; 3d, by reviewing the lines of their military oper-
ations. The last method is the least liable to error, and
perhaps is the most easily understood, inasmuch as it is
sometimes difficult to point out the precise degree of con-
nection between prospective military lines and the chan-
nels of commerce, or to show why these two have a fixed
relation to the physical features of the country. In the
present instance, moreover, this method furnishes ample
data for the formation of our decision, inasmuch as the
campaigns between this country and Canada have been
neither few in number nor unimportant in their character
and results.
In tracing out the main features of the early wars upon
our northern frontier, it must be borne in mind that nearly
the same portion of country which is now possessed by
the English, was then occupied by the French, and that
the English possessions in North America included the
present Middle and Northern States. At the period of
the American revolution the French and English had com-
pletely changed ground, the armies of the former opera-
ting in the " States," while the English were in possession
of Canada.
The first expedition to be noticed against that portion of
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 213
the country, was conducted by Samuel Argall, who sailed
from Virginia in 1613, with a fleet of eleven vessels, at-
tacked the French on the Penobscot, and afterwards the
St. Croix.
In 1654, Sedgwick, at the head of a small New Eng-
land army, attacked the French on the Penobscot, and
overrun all Arcadia.
In 1666, during the contest between Charles II. and
Louis XIV., it was proposed to march the New England
troops across the country by the Kennebec or Penobscot,
and attack Quebec ; but the terrors and difficulties of cross-
ing " over rocky mountains and howling deserts" were such
as to deter them from undertaking the campaign.
In 1689, Count Frontenac, governor of Canada, made a
descent into New York to assist the French fleet in redu-
cing that province. His line of march was by the river
Sorrel and Lake Champlain. An attack upon Montreal
by the Iroquois soon forced hira to return ; but in the fol-
lowing January a party of French and Indians left Mon-
treal in the depth of a Canadian winter, and after wading,
for two and twenty days, with provisions on their backs,
through snows and swamps and across a wide wilderness,
reached the unguarded village of Schenectady. Here a
midnight war-whoop was raised, and the inhabitants either
massacred or driven half-clad through the snow to seek
protection in the neighboring towns.
In 1690, a congress of the colonies, called to provide
means for the general defence, assembled at New York,
and resolved to carry war into Canada : an army was to
attack Montreal by way of Lake Champlain, and a fleet to
attempt Quebec by the St. Lawrence. The former ad-
vanced as far as the lake, when the quarrels of the com-
manding officers' defeated the objects of the expedition.
The Massachusetts fleet of thirty-four vessels, (the largest
carrying foity-four guns each,) and two thousand men,
214 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE
failed to reduce Quebec, though the defences of that place
were then of the slightest character, and armed with only
twenty-three guns.
In 1704, and again in 1707, Port Royal was attacked by
costly expeditions fitted out by the eastern colonies ; and
again, in 1709, a land force of fifteen hundred men ad-
vanced against Montreal by Lake Champlain ; but nothing
of importance was efiected by either expedition.
In 1711, Lord Bolingbroke planned the conquest of Can-
ada. The land forces, numbering five thousand men in all,
were separated into two distinct armies, the one sent
against Detroit, and the other against Montreal by Lake
Champlain ; while a fleet of fifteen ships of war, forty
transports, and six store-ships, carrying a land force of
six thousand five hundred men, was to attack Quebec.
The maritime expedition failed to reach its destination,
and after losing a part of the fleet and more than a thou-
sand men in the St. Lawrence, this part of the project
was abandoned. Nor was any thing important accom-
plished by either division of the land forces.
The same plan of campaiign was followed in 1712. An
army of four thousand men marched against Montreal by
Lake Champlain, but on hearing of the failure of the naval
expedition and of the concentration of the French forces
on the river Sorel, they retired towards Albany.
The next expedition of any importance was the naval
one of 1745 against Louisburg. For the attack of this
place the colonies raised about four thousand men, and one
hundred small vessels and transports, carrying between
one hundred and sixty and two hundred guns. They
were afterwards joined by ten other vessels carrying near
five hundred guns. This attacking force now, according
to some of the English writers, consisted of six thousand
provincials, and eight hundred seamen, and a combined
naval force of near seven hundred guns. The troops
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 215
landed, and laid siege to the town. The garrison of the
fortifications of Louisburg consisted of six hundred regu-
lars and one thousand Breton militia, or, according to
some writers, of only twelve hundred men in all. The
armament of these works was one hundred and one cannon,
seventy-six swivels, and six mortars. Auxiliary to the
main works were an island-battery of thirty twenty-two-
pounders, and a battery on the main land armed with
thirty large cannon. Frequent attempts were made to
storm the place, but the most persevering efforts were of
no avail, many of the New Englanders being killed and
wounded, and their boats destroyed, while the garrison
remained unharmed. At length, after a siege of forty-
nine days, want of provisions and the general dissatisfac-
tion of the inhabitants, caused the garrison to surrender.
When the New Englanders saw the strength of the works,
and the slight impression which their efforts had produced,
they were not only elated but greatly astonished at their
success. It should be noticed, that in the above attack
the number of gmis in the fleet was almost three times as
great as that of all the forts combined ; and yet the naval
part of the attack was unsuccessful. The besieging army
was more than four times as great as all the garrisons
combined ; and yet the place held out forty-nine days, and
at last was surrendered through the want of provisions
and the disaffection of the citizens. This place was soon
afterwards restored to the French.
We see that, thus far in these wars, the English were
vastly superior in strength and numbers, yet the result of
the several campaigns was decidedly in favor of the
French, who not only retained their possessions in the
North, but extended their jurisdiction to the mouth of the
Mississippi, and laid claim to the whole country west of
the Alleghany mountains. This success must be attribu-
ted, not to any superiority of the Canadians in bravery,
216 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
but to the higher imlitary character of their governors,
uTid more especially to their fortifications, which were con-
structed in situations most judiciously selected, to influ-
ence the Indians and facilitate incursions into the Eng-
lish colonies. The French pursued interior and central
lines, while the English followed exterior and divergent
lines. The disparity of numbers was always very great.
At the beginning of the eighteenth century, the whole
population of the colonies amounted to upwards of one
million of souls, while diat of both Canada and Louisiana
did not exceed fifty-two thousand. But the French pos-
sessions, though situated at the extremities of a continent
and separated by an almost boundless wilderness, were
nevertheless connected by a line of military posts, strong
enough to resist the small arms that could then be brought
against them. This fort-building propensity of the French
became a matter of serious alarm to the colonies, and in
1710 the legislature of New York especially protested
against it in an address to the crown. While the military
art was stationary in England, France had produced her
four great engineers — Errard, Pagan, Vauban, and Cor-
montaigne ; and nowhere has the influence of their sys-
tem of military defence been more strikingly exhibited
than in the security it afforded to the Canadian colony,
when assailed by such vastly superior British forces.
Still further accessions were now made to these English
forces by large reinforcements from the mother country,
while the Canadians received little or no assistance from
France ; nevertheless they prolonged the war till 1760,
forcing the English to adopt at last the slow and expen-
sive process of reducing all their fortifications. This
will be shown in the following outline of the several cam-
paigns.
Very early in 1755, a considerable body of men was
sent from Great Britain to reinforce their troops in this
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 217
country. These troops were again separated into four
distinct armies. The first, consisting of near two thou-
sand men, marched to the attack of Fort Du Quesne, but
was met and totally defeated by one-half that number of
French and Indians. The second division, of fifteen hun-
dred, proceeded to attack Fort Niagara by way of Oswego,
but returned without success. The third, of three thou-
sand seven hundred men, met and defeated Dieskau's
army of twelve hundred 'regulars and six hundred Cana-
dians and Indians, in the open field, but did not attempt
to drive him from his works at Ticonderoga and Crown
Point. The fourth, consisting of three thousand three
hundred men and forty-one vessels, laid waste a portion of
Nova Scotia ; thus ending the campaign without a single
important result. It was commenced imder favorable aus-
pices, with ample preparations, and a vast superiority of
force ; but this superiority was again more than counterbal-
anced by the faulty plans of the English, and by the fortifi-
cations which the French had erected, in such positions as to
giiie them a decided advantage in their military operations.
Washington early recommended the same system of de-
fence"for the English on the Ohio ; and, after Braddock's
defeat, advised " the erection of small fortresses at con-
venient places to deposite provisions in, by which means
the country will be eased of an immense expense in the
carriage, and it will also be a means of securing a retreat
if we should be put to the rout again."
But this advice of Washington was unheeded, and the
campaign of 1756 was based upon the same erroneous
principles as the preceding one. T\e first division, of three
thousand men, was to operate against Fort Du Quesne ; the
second, of six thousand men, against Niagara ; the third, of
ten thousand men, against Crown Point; and a, fourth, of
two thousand men, was to ascend the Kennebec river, de-
stroy the settlements on the Chaudiere, and, by alarming
19
218 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the country about Quebec, produce a diversion in favor of
the third division, which was regarded as the main army,
and was directed along the principal line of operations.
The entire French forces at this time consisted of only
three. thousand regulars and a body of Canadian militia.
Nevertheless, the English, with forces neaily six times as
nimierous, closed the campaign without gaining a single
advantage.
We here see that the French, with very inferior forces,
still continued successful in every campaign, imiformly
gaining advantage over their enemy, and gaining ground
upon his colonies. By the possession of Forts William
Henry, Ticonderoga, and Crown Point, they completely
commanded Lake George and Lake Champlain, which af-
forded the shortest and easiest line of communication be-
tween the British colonies and Canada. By means of
their forts at Montreal, Frontenac, Detroit, &c., they had
entire dominion of the lakes connecting the St. Lawrence
with the Mississippi, and Canada with Lomsiana ; more-
over, by means of Fort Du Quesne and a line of auxiliary
works, their ascendency over the Indians on the Ohio was
well secured. But experience had at length taught the
English wherein lay the great strength of their opponents,
and a powerliil effort was now to be made to displace the
French from their fortresses, or at least to counterbalance
these works by a vast and overwhelming superiority of
troops.
In 1757, a British fleet of fifteen ships of the line,
eighteen frigates, and many smaller vessels, and a land
force of twelve thousand effective men, were sent to at-
tempt the reduction of the fortifications of Louisburg ; but
they failed to effect their object.
In 1758 the forces sent against this place consisted of
twenty ships of the line and eighteen frigates, ^th an ar-
my of fourteen thousand men. The harbor was defended
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 219
by only five ships of the line, one fifty-gun sMp, and five
frigates, three of which were sunk across the mouth of the
basin. The fortifications of the town had been much neg-
lected, and in general had fallen into ruins. The garri-*
son consisted of only two thousand five hundred regulars,
and six hundred militia. Notwithstanding that the number
of guns of the British fleet exceeded both the armaments
of the French ships and of aU the forts, these British ships
did not risk an attack, but merely acted as transports and
as a blockading squadron. Even the French naval defence,
and the outer works commanding the harbor, were reduced
by the temporary land-batteries which Wolfe erected ; and
the main work, although besieged by an inequality of forces
of nearly _^«e to one, held out for two months, and even
then surrendered through the fears and petitions of the
non-combatant inhabitants, and not because it had received
any material injury from the besiegers. The defence,
however, had been continued long enough to prevent, for
that campaign, any further operations against Canada. The
whole number of the English land forces in this campaign
was computed at fifty thousand men, of which more than
forty thousand were in the field. The first division, of
nine thousand men, was directed against Fort Du Quesne,
whose garrison did not exceed as many hundred. The
second division, of sixteen thousand efi"ective troops, pro-
ceeded against Ticonderoga and Crown Point ; while a
detachment of three thousand' men captured Fort Fronte-
nac, then garrisoned by only one hundred and ten men.
The whole force of the French amounted to only five
thousand ; the English attempted to drive them from their
works by storm, but were repulsed with a loss of near two
thousand men, while their opponents were scarcely in-
jured. The third division acted, as has just been stated,
in concert with the naval force against Louisburg.
In 1759, the western division of the English army, con-
220 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
sisting of a strong body of Indians, and five thousand
troops, wasted the whole season in reducing Fort Niagara,
which was garrisoned by only six hundred men. The
'central column of thirteen thousand men was sufficiently
successful to enable it to winter at Crown Point. The
eastern division of eight thousand men under Wolfe as-
cended the St. Lawrence with a fleet of twenty-two ships
thirteen frigates, and fourteen sloops, and smaller vessels,
carrying one thousand nine hundred and ninety guns, and
five thousand five hundred and ninety seamen. The naval
defence of Quebec consisted of eight frigates, carrying two
hundred and ten guns ; the land forces numbered about
nine thousand, and the fortifications were armed with nine-
ty-four guns and five mortars, only a part of which could
be brought to bear upon the anchorage ground. Several
attempts were made by the combined forces to carry these
works, but they proved equally unsuccessful. Although
the English fleet carried twenty times as many guns as the
forts, their inability to reduce these works was acknowl-
edged. The siege had continued for two months, and still
the fortifications were uninjured. Qeneral Wolfe himself
distinctly stated, that, in any further attempt to carry the
place, the " guns of the shipping could not be of much
use ;" and the chief engineer of the expedition gave it as
his opinion, that " the ships would receive great damage
from the shot and bombs of the upper batteries, without
making the least impression upon them." Under these
circumstances it was finally determined to endeavor to de-
coy Montcalm from his works, and make him risk a battle
in the open field. In an evil hour, the French consented
to forego the advantages of their fortifications, and the
contest was finally decided on the plains of Abraham, with
forces nearly equal in number. Both Wolfe and Mont-
calm fell in this battle, but the former on the field of vic-
tory ; and five days afterwards the inhabitants of Quebec,
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 221
weakened and dispirited by their losses, surrendered the
town, although its fortifications were still unharmed.
The French, in this campaign, had relinquished all idea
of opposing the en^my in the open field, and confined their
efforts to retard the advance of the English till France
could send troops to their relief ; but no such relief came :
and when the campaign of 1760 opened, the little French
army was concentrated at Montreal. As the English di-
visions advanced, one by Oswego, one by Lake Champlain,
and the third by Quebec, they afforded to the French a fine
opportunity for the strategic movement from a centre against
converging lines ; but the garrison was too weak to hope
for success in either direction, and therefore awaited the
enemy within their works. Montreal, being but slightly
fortified, was soon reduced, and with it fell the French
empire erected in this country at infinite labor and ex-
pense.
At the first outbreak of the American Revolution, it was
so obviously important to get possession of the military
works commanding the line of Lake Champlain, that ex-
peditions for this purpose were simultaneously fitted out-
by Massachusetts and Connecticut. The garrisons of
these works were taken by surprise. This conquest, says
Botta, the able and elegant historian of the Revolution,
" was no doubt of high importance, but it would have had
a much greater influence upon the course of the whole
war, if these fortresses, which are the bulwarks of the col-
onies, had been defended in times following, with the
same prudence and valor with which they had been ac-
quired."
In the campaign of 1775, an army of two thousand
seven hundred and eighty-four effective men, with a re.
serve of one thousand at Albany, crossed the lake and
approached the fortress of St. John's about the 1st of
September. The work was garrisoned by only about five
228 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
or six hundred regulars, and some two hundred militia.
This was the only obstacle to prevent the advance of our
army into the very heart of Canada ; to leave it unreduced
in rear would cut off all hope of retreat. Allen had al-
ready made the rash and foolish attempt, and his whole
army had been destroyed, and he himself made prisoner.
The reduction of this place was therefore deemed abso-
lutely necessary, but was not effected till the 3d of Novem-
ber, and after a long and tedious siege. This delay decided
the fate of the campaign ; for, although Montreal fell im-
mediately afterwards, the season was so far advanced that
a large portion of our troops, wearied with their sufferings
from cold and want of clothing, now demanded their dis-
charge. The eastern division, of one thousand men un-
der Arnold, crossing the country by the Kennebeck and
Chaudiere, through difficulties and suffering almost un-
paralleled, arrived opposite Quebec on the 9th of Novem-
ber. The place was at this time almost without defence,
and, had Arnold possessed a suitable ponton equipage, it
might easily have been taken by surprise. But by the
time that the means for effecting a passage could be
prepared, and a junction could be effected between the
two American armies, Quebec was prepared to sustain
their attack. The result of that attack is too well known
to require a repetition here.
Early the next season it was deemed necessary to
withdraw the American army from Canada. This retreat
of undisciplined troopS, in the presence of vastly superior
numbers of the enemy, would have been extremely haz-
ardous had it not been effected on a line of forts which
were held by our own troops. As it was we sustained no
considerable loss.
Carleton pursued on rapidly, to co-operate with General
Howe, who was now lying at New York with over one
hundred ships and about thirty-five thousand troops ; but
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 223
he received a decided check from the guns of Ticonde-
roga, and retired again to Canada.
By the British plan of campaign in 1777, the entire
force of their northern army was to concentrate at Al-
bany. One division of fifteen hundred men, including
Indians, advanced by Oswego, Wood Creek, and the Mo-
hawk ; but Fort Stanwix, with a garrison of only six
hundred men, arrested their progress and forced them to
return. Another, leaving New York, ascended the Hud-
son as far as Esopus ; but its progress was so much re-
tarded by the small forts and water-batteries along that
river, that it would have been too late to assist Burgoyne,
even if it could possibly have reached Albany. The
principal division of the enemy's army, numbering about
nine thousand men, advanced by the Champlain route.
Little or no preparations were made to arrest its progress.
The works of Ticonderoga were so out of repair as to be
indefensible on the flanks. Its garrison consisted of only
fifteen hundred continental troops, and about as many mi-
litia, over whom the general had no control. Their sup-
ply of provisions was exhausted, and only one man in ten
of the militia had bayonets to their guns. Under these
circmnstances it was deemed best to withdraw the garri-
son six days after the investment. Burgoyne now ad-
vanced rapidly, but with so little precaution as to leave
his commimications in rear entirely unprotected. Being
repulsed by the American forces collected at Saratoga,
his line of supplies cut off by our detached forts, his pro-
visions exhausted, his troops dispirited, and his Indian
allies having deserted him, retreat became impossible,
and his whole army was forced to capitulate. This cam-
paign closed the military operations on our northern fron-
tier during the war of the Revolution.
We now come to the war of 1812. In the beginning of
this war the number of British regulars in the Canadas did
224 MILirAEY ART AND SCIENCE.
not exceed three thousand men, who were scattered along
a frontier of more than nine hundred miles in extent. In
the whole of Upper Canada there were but seven hundred
and twenty men, and at Montreal, Three Rivers, and on
the whole line of the Sorel the whole defensive force
amounted to only thirteen hundred and thirty men, and the
garrison of Quebec was so small, that no detachment
could be made without great inconvenience and danger*
The fortifications of Isle aux Noi«, then emphatically the
key of central Canada, was without a garrison during
nearly the whole of the first campaign. Under these cir-
cumstances an American force of fifteen hundred or two
thousand men marching rapidly from Albany, might readi-
ly have broken the enemy's line of defence, and cut off all
Upper Canada from supplies and reinforcements from
England by way of Quebec. Let us see what course was
pursued.
On the 1st of June an army of two tho^sand men wa,s
collected at Dayton, in Ohio, placed under the command
of an imbecile old oificer of the Revolution, and directed
by Detroit against the Canadian Peninsula. The dilatoiy
march, absurd movements, and traitorous surrender of
Hull's army to a British force of three hundred regulars
and four hundred militia, are but too well known. An-
other American army of about ten thousand men was
afterwards raised in the west ; the main division of this
army under Harrison marched by three separate routes to.
invade Canada by way of Maiden ; but they failed to reach
their destination, and wintered behind the river Portage.
The -Eastern army was collected at Albany in the early,
part of the summer and placed under the command of
General Dearborn, another old officer of the Revolution.
Instead of pushing this force rapidly forward upon the
strategic line of Lake Champlain, the general was directed
to divide it into three parts, and to send one division
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 223
against the Niagara frontier, a second against Kingston,
and a third against Montreal. These orders were dis-
patched from Washington the 26th of June, nearly a month
after Hull had begun his march from Dayton. Dearborn's
army, on the first of September, consisted of six thousand
five hundred regulars and seven thousand militia— thirteen
thousand five hundred in all : six thousand three hundfed
for the Niagara frontier, two thousand two hundred at
Sacketts Harbor, and five thousand for Lake Champlain.
Even with this absurd plan of campaign and faulty division
of the forces, we might have succeeded if the general had
acted with energy, so exceedingly weak were the Cana-
dian means of defence ; but instead of taking advantage:
of his superiority in numbers and the favorable circum-'
stances of the time, he entered into an armistice with the
British general, and his whole army of thirteen thousand
five hundred men lay inactive till the 13th of October,
when the absurd project of crossing the Niagara at Lewis,-
ton failed, because the New-York militia had constitu-
tional scruples against crossing a river so long as the ene-
my were on the other side. The Lake Champlain column,
consisting of three thousand regulars and two thousand
militia, a considerable portion of which had been collected
as early as the first of August, had in four months advanced
as far as La Cole river, a distance of about two hundred
miles from Albany. The unimportant action at this place
terminated the campaign, and the army of the North re-
turned to winter-quarters.
All the early part of the campaign of 1813, on the
northern frontier, was spent in a war of detachments, in
which our troops captured Port George and York, and
repelled the predatory excursions of the enemy. In these
operations our troops exhibited much courage and energy,
and the young ofiicers who led them, no little skill and
military talent. But nothing could have been more ab-
226 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
surd than for a general, with superior forces in the vi-
cinity of an enemy, to , act only by detachments at a time
when his opponents were daily increasing in number.
This useless war of outposts and detachments was con-
tinued till July, when General Dearborn was recalled,
and General Wilkinson, another old officer of the Revo-
lution, put in his place. It was now determined to make
-a push for Montreal, with the combined forces of the
Northern army. Wilkinson, with 8,000 men, descended
the St. Lawrence, but did not reach Prescott till the 6th
of November, thus affording to the English plenty of leis-
ure to prepare for his reception. Hampton, another old
officer of the Revolution, ascended Lake Ghamplain with
another column of 4,000 men, but refused to form any co-
operation with Wilkinson, and after the unimportant com-
bat of Chrystler's Field, the whole army again retired to
winter-quarters .
In the mean time the army of the West, under Har-
rison, who was assisted by the military skill and science
of M'Crea and Wood, and the bravery of Croghan and
Johnson, held in check the British and Indians ; and the
battle of the Thames and the victory of Lake Erie form-
ed a brilliant termination to the campaign in that quarter.
Had such victories been gained on the Montreal or east-
em portion of the frontier, they would have led to the
most important results.
The plan of operations for the campaign of 1814 was
of the same diverse and discordant character as before.
But the command of the troops had now fallen into the
hands of young and energetic officers ; and Brown, as-
sisted by such men as Wood, M'Crea, Scott, Ripley,
Miller, soon gained the victories of Fort Erie, Chippe-
wa, and Lundy's Lane ; while M'Comb and M'Donough
drove back the enemy from the line of Lake Champlain.
With these operations terminated the Northern campaign
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 227
of 1814, the last which has been conducted on that fron-
tier.
Let us now turn to the system of works projected for
the defence of this line.
The first works are at the Falls of St. Mary, on the
western extremity of the line.
The second works are at Mackinaw.
The third works are at the foot of Lake Huron.
The fourth works are near Detroit.
The fifth works are near Buffalo.
The sixth works are at the mouth of the Niagara river.
The seventh works are at Oswego.
The eighth works are at Sacketts Harbor.
The ninth works are below Ogdensburg.
The tenth works are at Rouse's Point.
The eleventh works are near the head-waters of the
Keimebec or the Penobscot.
The twelfth works are at Calais, on the St. Croix.
All these works are small, and simple in their charac-
ter, well calculated to assist the operations of armed
forces in the field, but incapable of resisting a protracted
siege. They are entirely different in their character from
those on the coast, the latter being intended principally
for the use of our citizen-soldiery, in the defence of our
seaport towns, while the former are intended merely as
auxiliaries to the operations of more disciplined troops.
This system of defence for our Northern frontier has
been much commented on by men professing some know-
ledge of the military art, and various opinions have been
advanced respecting its merits. Some have thought that
more and larger works should be placed on the western
extremity of this line ; others attach by far the greatest
importance to the central or Montreal portion of the fron-
tier; while others, again, attach a higher value to' the
eastern extremity of the line.
228 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
These last would have us concentrate our main forces
on the head-waters of the Kennebec and the Penobscot,
and then advance upon Quebec, a distance of some 250
miles, along the isolated carriage-road, through the valley
of the Chaudiere. Here is only a single road, but little
travelled, and penetrating a wide and almost iminbabited
wilderness. General Jomini says emphatically, that a
line of operaMons should always offer two or three roads for
the movementof an army in the sphere of its enterprises, —
an insuperable objection to the Kennebec route, except
as a diversion to the main attack. But there are still
stronger objections to this route, than its want of feasi-
bility for the transportation of the main army ; for even
should that army succeed in reaching Quebec in safety,
the expedition would be entirely without military results,
unless that fortress could be immediately reduced, — a
contingency which would be extremely doubtful • under'
the most favorable circumstances ; and even should we be
ever so fortunate in our operations, the siege of such a
place would occupy a considerable length of time. It
would be throwing our forces along the most difficult line
of operations, against the strongest point in the enemy's
line of defence, and making the success of the whole
plan depend upon the contingency of a, reduction, in a
few days, of one of the strongest fortresses in the world.
What principle in military science would justify such a
plan of campaign 1 We are fully aware of the greats ad-
vantages to be derived from the reduction of Quebec ;
and we are also aware of the great difficulties to be en-
countered in any attempt to accomplish that object. It
may, and probably will ere long, be made to surrender to
our arms ; but it would be utter folly to base our military
operations on the contingency of a short and successful
siege. By advancing upon Montreal by the Lake Cham-
plain route, we could cut off the Canadian forces in the
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 229
West from all reinforcements ; and then, as circumstances
miglit direct, could besiege Quebec, or attack the enemy
in the field, or perhaps, manceuvring as the French did at
the siege of Mantua, accomplish both objects at the same
time.
We have seen that it was one of Napoleon's maxims
that an army should choose the shortest and most direct line
of operations, which should either pierce the eriemy's line of
defence, or cut off his communications with h^hase. It is
the opinion of men of the best military talent in our army
that the Lake Champlain line satisfies all these conditions
at the same time ; — that it is the most direct, most feasi-
ble, and most decisive line which can be pursued in case
of operations against Canada ; and that it is indispensable
to success in war that this liue be well fortified in time
of peace. All agree that the St. Lawrence above Quebec
constitutes the key point of the enemy's , defence, and the
otjective point towards which all our operations should be
directed. To reach this point, all our Boards of Engi-
neers have deemed it best to collect our troops at Albany
and advance by Lake Champlain, a distance of only two
hundred miles. Besides the advantages of a good water
communication the whole distance for the transportation,
3f military stores, there are several roads on each side,
all concentrating on this line within our own territory.
It has already been shown by the brief sketch of our nor-
thern wars, that this line has been the field of strife and
blood for ff teen campaigns. Nature has marked it out as
our shortest and easiest line of intercourse with Canada,
both in peace and war. Military diversions will always
be made on the eastern and western extremities of this
frontier, and important secondary or auxiliary operations-
be carried on by the eastern and western routes ; but until
we overthrow the whole system of military science as
established by the Romans, revived by Frederick, and
230 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
practised and improved by Napoleon, the central and inte-
rior line, under all ordinary circumstances, will furnish, the
greatest probabilities of success.
If the line of Lake Champlain is, as we have endeav-
ored to show, the most important line in the north, its
security by fortifications is a matter of the greatest inter-
est. The works recommended by the Board, consist of a
single fort, costing $600,000, at Rouse's Point, on the
extreme frontier, and unfortified depots at Plattsburg and
Albany. But is this sufficient to accomplish the object ?
If the hostile army should pass the extreme frontier bar-
rier, what is to retard his advance, — ^what defensive works
are to protect the d6bouche of the Northern canal, or even
to save the great central dep6t ? We know of no foreign
engineer who has recommended less than three lines of
fortifications for the security of a land frontier ; and Na-
poleon, the Archduke Charles, and General Jomini, agree
in recommending at least this nxmiber of lines. There
may be circumstances that render it unnecessary to resort
to a three-fold defence throughout the whole extent of our
northern frontier ; but upon our main line of communica-
tion with Canada, — a line of maximum importance both to
us and to the enemy, we know of no reason for violating
the positive rules of the art, — ^rules which have been estab-
lished for ages, and sanctioned by the best engineers and
greatest generals of modem times.
Ticonderoga has more than once stayed the waves of
northern invasion ; and we know of no change in the art
of war, or in the condition of the country, that renders
less important than formerly the advantages of an inter-
mediate point of support between Albany and ;the Cana-
dian lines. Indeed it would seem that the connection of
the Hudson with the lake by the northern canal had even
increased the value of such a point.
It would seem, moreover, that the great value of a cen-
OUR NORTHERN FRONTIER DEFENCES. 831
tral dipot near Albany would warrant a resort to the best
means of security which can be afforded by defensive
works. Here we already have one of our largest arsenals
of construction ; here are to be located magazines for the
collection and deposite, in time of peace, of gunpowder ;
here, in time of war, is to be formed the grand military
dipot for our whole northern armies ; and here is the
point of junction of the lines of comrnvmication of our
northern and eastern states, and the great central rallying-
point where troops are to be collected for the defence of
our northern frontier, or for offensive operations against
Canada. Such a place should never be exposed to the
coup-de-main of an enemy. The chance operations of a
defensive army are never sufficient for the security of
so important a position. We do not here pretend to say
what its defences should be. Perhaps strong Utes-de^ont
on the Mohawk and Hudson rivers, and detached works
on the several lines of communication, may accomplish the
desired object ; perhaps more central and compact works
may be found necessary. But we insist on the importance
of securing this position by some efficient means. The
remarks of Napoleon, (which have already been given,)
on the advantages to be derived from fortifying such a
central place, where the military wealth of a nation can
be secured, are strikingly applicable to this case.
But let us look for a moment at what is called the west-
ern plan of defence for our northern frontier.
Certain writers and orators of the western states, in
their plans of military defence, would have the principal
fortifications of the northern frontier established on Lake
Erie, the Detroit river, the St. Clair, and Lake Huron ;
and the money proposed for the other frontier and coast
works, expended in establishing military and naval depots
at Memphis and Pittsburg, and in the construction of a
ship-canal from the lower Illinois to Lake Michigan, — for
832 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the purpose of obtaining the naval control of the northern
lakes.
It is said that British military and steam naval forces
will ascend the St. Lawrence to Lake Ontario ; that to
counteract these operations we must build an opposition
steam-navy at Pittsburg and Memphis, and collect our
troops on the Ohio and Mississippi, ascend the Mississippi
and Illinois, Lake Michigan, Lake Huron, and the Geor-
gian Bay, cross over to the Ottawa by French river and
Lake Nipissing, or Moon river and the Muskago, then de-
scend the Ottawa river to Montreal. But as there mighti
be some difficulty in conveying their war-steamers over
some twelve or fifteen portages between the Georgian Bay,
and the Ottawa, and as the upper waters, of that river arei
not navigable by such craft, it has, by some of the military
writers before alluded to, been deemed preferable to de-
scend Lake Huron, St. Clair river and lake, run the-
gauntlet past the British forts on the Detroit, descend
Lake Erie and the Niagara* into Lake Ontario, so as to
meet the English as they come steaming up the St. Law-
rence ! •
It is agreed upon all sides that the British must first
collect their forces at Quebec, and then pass along the
line of the St. Lawrence aiid Lake Ontario to reach the
Niagara and Detroit frontiers. Our boards of engineers
have deemed it best to coUect troops on the Champlain
line, and, by penetrating between Montreal and Quebec,
separate the enemy's forces and cut off aU the remainder
of Canada from supplies and reinforcements frpm England. ,
But it has been discovered by certain west^hi men that
to cut the trunk of a tree is not the proper method of fell-
ing it : we must climb to the top and pinch the buds, or, at
* How they are to pass the Falls was not determined either bj
Hany Bluff or the Memphis Convention.
OtJE NORTHERN MILITARY DEFENCES. 233
most, cut oflf a few of the smaller limbs. To blow up a
house, we should not place. the mine under the foundation,
but attach it to one of the shingles of the roof ! We have
already shown that troops collected at Albany may reach
the great strategic point on the St. Lawrence by an easy
and direct route of two hundred mil^s ; but forces collected
at Pittsburg and Mempliis must pass over a difficult and
unfrequented route of two thousand miles.
Our merchant marine on the lakes secures to us a na-
val superiority in that quarter at the beginning of a war ;
and our facilities for ship-building are there equal if not
superior to any possessed by the enemy. The only way,
therefore, in which our ascendency on the lakes can be
lost, is by the introduction of steam craft from the Atlan-
tic. The canals and locks constructed for this object will
pass vessels of small dimensions and drawing not over
eight and a half feet water.
How are we to prevent the introduction of these Atlan-
tic steamers into our lakes ? Shall we, at the first opening
of hostilities, march with armed forces upon the enemy's
line of artificial commimication and blow up the locks of
their ship-canals, thus meeting the enemy's marine at the
very threshold of its introduction into the interior seas ;
or shall we build opposition steam-navies at Pittsburg and
Memphis, some two thousand miles distant, and then ex-
pend some forty or fifty millions* in opening an artificial
* The construction of the Illinois ship-canal, for vessels of eight and
a half feet draught, is estimated at fifteen millions ; to give the same
draught to the Mississippi and lower Illinois, would require at least ten
millions more ; a ship canal of the corresponding draught around Nia-
gara Falls, will cost, say, ten millions ; the navy yard at Memphis, with
docks, storehouses, &c., will cost about two millions, and steamers sent
thence to the lakes will cost about fifty thousand doUais per gun. On
.the other hand, the military defences which it is deemed necessary to
erect in time of peace for the securitv of the Champlain frontier, will
234 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
channel to enable them to reach Lake Ontario, after its
borders have been laid waste by the hostile forces ? Very
few disinterested judges would hesitate in forming their
opinion on this question.*
cost only about two thousand dollars per gun ; the whole expenditure
not exceeding, at most, two millions of dollars !
It Is not to be denied that a water communication between the Mis-
sissippi and the northern lakes will have great commercial advantages,
and that, in case of a protracted war, auxiliary troops and military
stores may be drawn from the valley of the Mississippi to assist the
North and East in preventing any great accessions to the British mili-
tary forces in the Canadas. We speak only of the policy of expending
vast sums of money on this military (?) project, to the neglect of mat-
ters of more immediate and pressing want. We have nothing to say
of its character as a commercial project, or of the ultimate military ad-
vantages that might accrue from such a work. We speak only of the
present condition and wants of the country, and not of what that con-
dition and those wants may be generations hence !
* There are no books devoted exclusively to the subjects embraced
in this chapter ; but the reader will find many remarks on the northern
frontier defences in the histories of the war of 1812, in congressional
reports, (vide House Doc. 206, XXVIth Congress, 2d session ; sind
Senate Doc, No. 85, XXVIIIth Congress, 2d session,) and in numerous
pamphlets and essays that have appeared from the press within the
last few years.
STAFF AND ADMINISTKATIVE CORPS. 235
CHAPTER IX.
ARMY ORGANIZATION STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS.
By the law of the 12th of December, 1790, on the or- *
gahization of the public force of France, the Army was
defined, " A standing force drawn from the public force,
and designed to act against external enemies." [Une
force hahituelle extraite de la force publique, et destinee es-
sentiellement d. agir contre les ennemis du dehors.^
In time of peace, the whole organized military force of
the State is intended when we speak of the army ; but in
time of war this force is broken up into two or more frac-
tions, each of which is called an army. These armies are
usually named from the particular duty which may be as-
signed to them — as, army of invasion, army of occupation,
army of observation, army of reserve, <^c. ; or from the
country or direction in which they operate — a,s, army of the
North, of the South, of Mexico, of Canada, of the Rhine, SfC. ;
or from the general who commands it — as, the army of
Soult,^army of Wellington, army of Blucher, SfC.
All modern armies are organized on the same basis.
They are made up of a Staff and Administrative depart-
ments, and four distinct arms — Infantry, Cavalry, Artil^
lery, and Engineers ; each having distinct duties, but all
combining to form one and the same military body. In
the actual operations of a campaign, these forces are form-
ed into corps d!armee, each corps Warmee being composed
of two or more grand-divisions ; each grand-division, of
two or more brigades ; and each brigade, of several com-
panies, squadrons, or batteries.
236 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
In speaking of an army in the field, it is sometimes sup-
posed to be divided into two classes of men — the Staff
and the line. We here include in the first class —
All officers, of whatever arm, above the rank of colonel ;
All officers of the stafi" corps of whatever grade, and
All officers attached to the stafi" as aides, &c. ;
All officers of the administrative departments ;
' All officers of artillery and engineer staffs ;
The corps of geographical or topographical engineers,
and
The guards.
In the second class are included all troops, of what-
ever arm, which belong to the active army, in infantry,
cavalry, artillery, and engineers. All troops on detached
service, such as recruiting, guarding posts and depots, es-
corting convoys, &c., as well as all sedentary corps, gar-
risons of fortified places, &c., are not regarded in this
classification as composing any part of the line of the
army.
Troops of the line is a term applied only to such troops
as form the principal line on the battle-field, viz : — The
heavy infantry and heavy cavalry. These are technically
called infantry of the line, and cavalry of the line. In this
sense of the term, light infantry, light cavalry or dragoons,
artillery, and engineers, are not classed as troops of the
line. But this distinction is now pretty much fallen into
disuse, and the division of an army into Stafi" and Admin-
istrative departments, and four %rms of service — Infan-
try, Cavalry, Artillery, and Engineers — is now regarded
as the most convenient, from being precise and definite in
its meaning.
The general staff of an army includes all general offi-
cers of the army, and such officers of lower grades as are
attached to this general duty, instead of serving with
troops, or on special administrative duty. The general
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 237
ofScers are — 1st, the generalissimo, m commander-in-chief;
2d, generals, or marshals, as they are called in France, or
field-marshals and generals of infantry and cavalry, as
they are called in England and the northern states of Eu-
rope ; 3d, lieutenant-generals ; 4th, generals of division,
or major-generals, as they are called in England ; 5th, gen-
erals of brigade, or brigadier-generals, as they are sometimes
called ; — colonels, majors, captains, lieutenants, ensigns,
and comets or cadets, are also either attached to the staff,
or form a part of the staff corps. The titles of " adjutant-
general," and of " inspector-general," are given to staff
officers selected for these special services, either in the
general staff or in the several corps d'armee. No special
rank is attached to these offices themselves, and the grade
of those who hold them is fixed by some special rule, or
by their general rank in the army.
In the war of the Revolution, Washington held the rank
of General, and in 1798 the rank of Lieutenant-general.
In the war of 1812, the highest grade held by any of our
officers was that of General of Division, or Major-general,
as it was called. The highest grade in our army at the
present time is called Major-general — a title that properly
belongs, not to the general of an army, but to the chief of
staff. Hamilton had this title when chief of Washington's
staff; Berthier and Soult when chief of Napoleon's staff,
the former till the close of the campaign of 1814, and the
latter in the Waterloo campaign. General Jomini first
greatly distinguished himself as chief of Ney's staff, and
afterwards on the staff of the Emperor of Russia. Other
generals have owed much of their success to the chiefs of
their staff: — Pichegru to Regnier, Moreau to Dessoles,
Kutusof to Toll, Barclay to Diebitsch, and Bliicher to
Shamharst and Gneisenau.
The generalissimo or commander-in-chief of an army is
the person designated by the law of the land to take charge
238 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
of the organized military forces of the state. In this coun-
try the President, through his Secretary of War, exercises
this general command. In England, Wellington acts in
the capacity of commander-in-chief of all the British mili-
tary forces. In France, the Minister of War, under the
king, has this general direction. In other European ser-
vices, some prince of the blood, or distinguished general,
exercises the functions of generalissimo.
An active army in the field should be commanded by a
general, or, as is done in some European countries, by
a marshal. These may be regarded as of assimilated rank.
A corps Warmee should be commanded by a Lieutenant-
geheral. This rule is almost universal in Europe. The
number of marshals in France under Napoleon was so
great, that officers of this grade were often assigned to
corps d'armee.
A grand division of an army should be commanded by a
General of Division. In England, the assimilated grade is
that of major-general, and in France at the present time,
the younger lieutenant-generals, or the mdreehaux-de-camp,
command divisions.
A brigade should be commanded by a Brigadier-general.
At the present time in the French service, marechaux-de-
camp act as commanders of brigades.
The several corps d'armee are designated by numbers,
1st, 2d, 3d, &c., and in the same way the several divisions
in each corps d^armee, and the se "eral brigades in each di-
vision.
When the number of troops are placed on a war footing,
each corps d'armee ordinarily contains from twenty to thirty
thousand men.
The command of these several corps d^armee, divi-
sions, and brigades, is taken by the officers of the corre-
sponding grades according to seniority of rank, and with-
out reference to arms, unless otherwise directed by the
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 239
generalissimo, who should always have the power to des-
ignate officers for special commands.
The chief of staff of an army is usually selected from
the grade next below that of the general commanding, and
receives the title, for the time being, which is used to
designate this special rank. In some European armies,
and formerly in our own service, this officer was called
major-general. In France, if the generalissimo commands
in person, a marshal is made chief of staff with the tem-
poray title of major-general ; but if a marshal commands
the army, a lieutenant-general or marechal-de-camp be-
comes chief of staff with the title of aide-major-general.
The chiefs of staff of corps d'armee and of divisions, are se-
lected in precisely the same way.
The position assigned by the commanding general for the
residence of his staff, is denominated the General Head-
Quarter of the army ; that of a corps d'armee staff, the Head-
Quarters of \\st or 2d, &c.] corps d'armee; that of a divi-
sion, the Head-Quarters of [1st or 2d, &c.] division, [1st
or 2d, &c.] corps d'armee.
The petty staffs of regiments, squadrons, &c., consisting
of an adjutant, sergeant-major, &c., are especially organ-
ized by the commandants of the regiments, &c., and have
no connection whatever with the general staff of an army.
Of course, then, they are not embraced in -the present
discussion.
The subordinate officers of the staff of an army, in time
of war, are charged with important and responsible duties
connected with the execution of the orders of their re-
spective chiefs. But in time of peace, they are too apt to
degenerate into fourth-rate clerks of the Adjutant-general's
department, and mere military dandies, employing their
time in discussing the most unimportant and really con-
temptible points of military etiquette, or criticising the
letters and dispatches of superior officers, to see whether
240 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the wording of the report or the folding of the letter exact-
ly corresponds to the particular regulation applicable' to
the case. Such was the character given to the first staff of
Wellington, and a similar class of men composed the staff
of the army of Italy when it was abolished by Napoleon
and a new one formed in its place. There are also some
officers of this stamp in our own service, but they are re-
garded by the army with universal contempt. The staff
of our army requires a new and different organization, and
should be considerably enlarged.
The following is the composition of a regularly organ-
ized general staff in the French service for an army of
forty or fifty thousand men divided into two corps d^armee
and a reserve.
1st. The marshal (or general) commanding-in-chief;
and one colonel or lieutenant-colonel, one major, three
captains and three subalterns, as aides-de-camp.
2d. A lieutenant-general as chief-of-staff, with the title
of major-general, assisted by one colonel or lieutenant-co-
lonel, three majors, five captains, and one subaltern, as
aides-de-camp.
3d. Three lieutenant-generals, commanding the corps
d^armee and reserve. £ach of these will be assisted by
aides in the same way as the major-general, and each will
also have his regularly-organized staff of corps d'arjnie,
with a general of division or general of brigade as chief.
4th. Six or nine generals commanding divisions, each
having his own distinct and separately organized staff. In
the French army, the staff of an officer commanding a di-
vision is composed of one colonel, two majors, three cap-
tains, and six subalterns.
5th. Twelve or more generals of brigade, each having
one captain, and one subaltern for aides.
6th. There is also attached to the staff of the general-
in-chief of the army, the commandants of artillery and en-
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 241
gineers, with several subordinates, inspector-generals, and
the ranking officers of each of the administrative depart-
ments, with their assistants.
The generals select their aides and assistants from the
staff corps, or from either of the four arras of service.
The troops of these arms may be distributed as follows :
52 battalions of Infantry, . . ■ 35,000 men.
42 squadrons of horse, . . . 6,500 "
13 batteries of artillery, (4 mounted and 9 foot,) . 2,500 «
5 companies of sappers, 2 of poutoniers,* and 1 of arti-
ficers, 1,500 "
45,500 "
If we add to these the staff, and the several officers and
employes of the administrative departments, we have an
army of nearly fifty thousand men.
This, it will be remembered, is the organization of an
army in the field ; in the entire military organization of a
state, the number of staff officers will be still higher.
-In 1788, France, with a military organization for about
three hundred and twenty thousand men, had eighteen mar-
shals, two hundred and twenty-five lieutenant-generals,
five hundred and thirty-eight marechaux-de-eamp, and four
hundred and eighty-three brigadiers. A similar organiza-
tion of the general staff was maintained by Napoleon. At
present the general staff of the French army consists of
nine marshals, (twelve in time of war ;) eighty lieutenant-
generals in active service, fifty-two in reserve, and sixty-
two en retraite — one hundred and ninety-four in all ; one
hundred and sixty marechaux-de-camp in active service
eighty-six in reserve, and one hundred and ninety en re-
traite — four hundred and thirty-six in all. The officers of
the staff-corps are : thirty colonels, thirty lieutenant-colo-
* One bridge-equipage is requu:ed for each corps d'armee.
21
242 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
nels, one hundred majors, three hundred captains, and one
hundred lieutenants. Those of other European.armies are
organized on the same basis.
It will be seen from these remarks that the organization
of our own general staff is exceedingly defective, and en-
tirely unsuited to the object for which it is created. We
have two brigadier-generals for the command of two bri-
gades, and one general of division, with the tide of major-
general, who acts in the fourfold capacity of general com-
manding the army, lieutenant-general, general of division,
and chief of staff of the army. But as it is impossible
with this number to maintain a proper organization, the
President (with the advice and consent of the Senate)
has, from time to time, increased this number to three ma-
jor-generals, and nine brigadier-generals, and numerous
officers of staff with lower grades. Nearly all these officers
are detached from their several regiments and corps, thus in-
juring the efficiency of regiments and companies ; and we
have in our service, by this absurd mode of supplying the
defects of our system of organization by brevet rank, the
anomaly of officers being generals, and at the same time not
generals ; of holding certain ranks and grades, and yet not
holding these ranks and grades ! Let Congress do away
this absurd and ridiculous system, and establish a proper
and efficient organization of the general staff, and restore
the grades of general and lieutenant-general. In the war
of 1812, instead of resorting to a proper organization when
an increase of the general staff was required, we merely
multiplied the number of major-generals and generals of bri-
gade by direct appointment, or by conferring brevet rank.
It is now conceded that there never was a more inefficient
general staff than that with which our army was cursed
during the war ; and the claims of brevet rank have ever
since been a source of endless turmoils and dissatisfaction,
driving from the army many of its noblest ornaments.
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 243
In the event of another war, it is to be hoped that Con-
gress will not again resort to the ruinous system of 1812.
Possibly it may by some be objected to the creation of
generals, lieutenant-generals, &c., that it increases the
expense of the army and the number of its officers. This
need not be. The number, pay, &c., may remain the
same, or nearly the same, as at present. But by increas-
ing the grades you avoid in a considerable measure the
difficulties of seniority claims and brevet rank — ^the prin-
cipal curses of our present system. If we merely in-
crease the number of each existing grade, giving a part
of these rank above their name and office, we merely
multiply evils. But we will leave this subject for the
present, and recur to the general discussion of staff du-
ties
The following remarks of Jomini on the importance of
the staff of an army are worthy of attention. " A good
staff," says he, " is, more than all, indispensable to the
constitution of an army ; for it must be regarded as the
nursery where the commanding general can raise his
principal supports — as a body of officers whose intelli-
gence can aid his own. When harmony is wanting be-
tween the genius that commands, and the talents of those
who apply his conceptions, success cannot be sure ; for the
most skilful combinations are destroyed by faults in exe-
cution. Moreover, a good, staff has the advantage of being
more durable than the genius of any single man ; it not
only remedies many evils, but it may safely be affirmed
that it constitutes for the army the best of all safeguards.
The petty interests of coteries, narrow views, and mis-
placed egotism, oppose this last position : nevertheless,
every military man of reflection, and every enlightened
statesman, will regard its truth as beyond all dispute ; for
a well-appointed staff is to an army what a skilful minis-
ter is to a monarchy — it seconds the views of the chief,
244 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
even though it be in condition to direct all things of it-
self; it prevents the commission of faults, even though
the commanding general be w^anting in experience, by
furnishing Jiim good councils. How many mediocre men
of both ancient and modem times, have been rendered
illustrious by achievements which wSre mainly due to
their associates ! " Reynier was the chief cause of the
victories of Pichegru, in 1794; and Dessoles, in like
manner, contributed to the glory of Moreau. Is not Gen-
eral Toll associated with the successes of Kutusof ? Die-
bitsch with those of Barclay and Witgenstein ? Gneise-
nau and Muffling with those of Blucher? Numerous
other instances might be cited in support of these asser-
tions.
" A well-established staiF does not always result from a
good system of education for the young aspirants ; for
a man may be a good mathematician and a fine scholar,
without being a good warrior. The staff should always
possess sufficient consideration and prerogative to be
sought for by the officers of the several arms, and to
draw together, in this way, men who are already known
by their aptitude for war. Engineer and artillery officers
will no longer oppose the staff, if they reflect that it will
open to them a more extensive field for immediate dis-
tinction, and that it will eventually be made up exclu-
sively of the officers of those two corps who may be
placed at the disposal of the commanding general, and
who are the most capable of directing the operations of
war."
" At the beginning of the wars of the Revolution," says
this able historian elsewhere, " in the French army the
general staff, which is essential for directing the opera-
tions of war, had neither instruction nor experience.''
The several adjutant-generals attached to the army of
Italy were so utterly incompetent, that Napoleon became
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 245
•
prejudiced against the existing staff-corps, and virtually
destroyed it, drawing Ms staff-officers from the other
corps of the army. In his earlier wars, a large portion
of staff duties were assigned to the engineers ; but in his
later campaigns the officers of this corps were particu-
larly required for the sieges carried on in Germany and
Spain, and considerable difficulty was encountered in
finding suitable officers for staff duty. Some of the de-
fects of the first French staff-corps were remedied in the
latter part of Napoleon's career, and in 1818 it was re-
organized by Marshal Saint-Cyr, and a special school es-
tablished for its instruction.
Some European nations have established regular staff-
corps, from which the vacancies in the general staff are
filled ; others draw all their staff-officers from the corps
of the army. A combination of the two systems is pre-
ferredsjjy the .best judges. Jomini recommends a regular
staff-corps, with special schools for its instruction ; but
thinks that its officers should be drawn, at least in part,
from the other corps of the army : the officers of engi-
neers and artillery he deems, from their instruction, to be
peculiarly qualified for staff duty. The policy of holding
double rank at the same time in the staff and in the corps
of the army, as is done in our service, is pronounced by
all competent judges as ruinous to an army, destroying
at the same time the character of the staff and injuring
the efficiency of the line.
The following remarks on the character and duties of
general-officers of an army, made at the beginning of the
war of 1812, are from the pen of one of the ablest mili-
tary writers this country has yet produced : —
" Generals have been divided into three classes,—
Theorists, who by study and reflection have made them-
selves acquainted with all the rules or maxims of the art
they profess ; Martinets, who have confined their atten-
246 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
tion merely to the mechanical part of the trade ; and
Practical men, who have no other or better, guide than
their own experience, in either branch of it. This last
description is in all services, excepting our own, the
most numerous, but with us gives place to a fourth class,
viz., men destitute alike of theory and of experience.
" Self-respect is one thing, and presumption another.
Without the former, no man ever became a good officer ;
under the influence of the latter, generals have commit-
ted great faults. The former is the necessary result of
knowledge ; the latter of ignorance. A man acquainted
with his duty can rarely be placed in circumstances new,
surprising, or embarrassing ; a man ignorant of his duty
will always find himself constraint to guess, and not
knowing how to be right by system, will often be wrong
by chance.
" These remarks are neither made nor offered|as ap-
plying exclusively to the science of war. They apply to
all other sciences ; but in these, errors are comparatively
harmless. A naturalist may amuse himself and the pub-
lic with false and fanciful theories of the earth ; and a
metaphysician may reason very badly on the relations
and forms of matter and spirit, without any ill effect but
to make themselves ridiculous. Their blunders but make
us merry ; they neither pick pockets, nor break legs, nor
destroy lives ; while those of a general bring after them
evils the most compounded and mischievous, — ^the slaugh-
ter of an army — ^the devastation of a state — the ruin of an
empire !
" In proportion as ignorance may be calamitous, the
reasons for acquiring instruction are multiplied and
strengthened. Are you an honest man 1 You will spare
neither labor nor sacrifice to gain a competent knowledge
of your duty. Are you a man of honor ? You will be
careful to avoid self-reproach. Does your bosom glow
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 247
with the holy fervor of patriotism ? You will so accom-
plish yourself as to avoid bringing down upon your coun-
try either insult or injury.
" Nor are the more seliish impulses without a similar
tendency. Has hunger made you a soldier 1 Will you
not take care of your bread ! Is vanity your principle of
action ? Will you not guard those mighty blessings, your
epaulets and feathers ! Are you impelled by a love of
glory or a love of power ? And can you forget that these
coy mistresses are only to be won by intelligence and
good conduct ?
"But the means of instruction, say you, where are
they to be found ? Our standing army is but a bad and
ill-organized militia, and our militia not better than a mob.
Nor have the defects in these been supplied by Lyc6es,
Prytanees, and Polytechnic schools. The morbid patri-
otism of some, and the false economy of others, have
nearly obliterated every thing like military knowledge
among us.
" This, reader, is but one motive the more for reinsta-
ting it. Thanks to the noble art of printing! you still
have books whiclj, if studied, will teach the art of war.
" Books ! And what are they but the dreams of pe-
dants? They may make a Mack, but have they ever
made a Xenophon, a Caesar, a Saxe, a Frederick, or a
Bonaparte 1 Who would not laugh to hear the cobbler of
Athens lecturing Hannibal on the art of war ?
" True ; but as you are not Hannibal, listen to the
cobbler. Xenophon, Caesar, Saxe, Frederick, and Napo-
leon, have all thought well of books, and have even com-
posed them. Nor is this extraordinary, since they, are
but the depositories of maxims which genius has sug-
gested, and experience confirmed ; since they both en-
lighten and shorten the road of the traveller, and render
the labor and genius of past ages tributary to our own.
248 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
These teach most emphatically, that the secret of 8ilc-
cessful war is not to be found in mere hgs and arms, but
in the head that shall direct them. If this be either un-
gifted by nature, or uninstructed by study and reflection,
the best plans of manoeuvre and campaign avail nothing.
The two last centuries have presented many revolutions
in military character, all of which have turned on this
principle. It would be useless to enumerate these. We
shall quote only the greatest and the last — The troops of
Frederick ! How illustrious under him ! How contempt-
ible under his successors ! Yet his system was there ;
his double lines of march at full distance ; his oblique
order of battle ; his simple lines of manoeuvre in the
presence of an enemy ; his wise conformation of an etat-
major ; — all, in short, that distinguished his practice from
that of ordinary men, survived him; but the head that
truly comprehended and knew how to apply these, died
with Frederick. What an admonition does this fact pre-
sent for self-instruction, — for unwearied diligence, — for
study and reflection ! Nor should the force of this be
lessened by the consideration that, after all, unless nature
should have done her part of the work,-j-unless to a soul
not to be shaken by any changes of fortune — cool, col-
lected, and strenuous — she adds a head fertile in expedi-
ents, prompt in its decisions, and sound in its judgments,
no man can ever merit the title of a general."
The celebrated Marshal Saxe has made the following
remarks on the necessary qualifications to form a good
general. The most indispensable one, according to his
idea, is valor, without which all the rest will prove nuga-
tory. The next is a sound understanding with some ge-
nius : for he must not only be courageous, but be extreme-
ly fertile in expedients. The third is health and a robust
constitution.
" His mind must be capable of prompt and vigorous re-
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 249
sources ; he must have an aptitude, and a talent at dis-
covering the designs of others, without betraying the
slightest trace of his own intentions ; he must be, seem-
ingly, communicative, in order to encourage others to un-
bosom, but remain tenaciously reserved in matters that
concern his own army ; he must, in a word, possess ac-
tivity with judgment, be able to make a proper choice of
his officers, and never deviate from the strictest line of
military justice. Old soldiers must not be rendered
wretched and unhappy by unwarrantable promotions, nor
must extraordinary talents be kept back to the detriment
of the service on account of mere rules and regulations.
Great abilities will justify exceptions ; but ignorance and
inactivity will not make up for years spent in the profes-
sion.
""' In his deportment he must be affable, and always su-
perior to peevishness or ill-humor ; he must not know, or
at least seem not to know, what a spirit of resentment is ;
and when he is under the necessity of inflicting military
chastisement, he must see the guilty punished without
compromise or foolish humanity ; and if the delinquent be
from among the' number of his most intimate friends, he
must be doubly severe towards the unfortunata man. For
it is better, in instances of correction, that one individual
should be treated with rigor (by orders of the person over
whom he may be supposed to hold some influence) than
that an idea should go forth in the army of public justice
being sacrificed to private sentiments.
" A modern general should always have before him the
example of Manlius ; he must divest himself of personal
sensations, and not only be convinced himself, but con-
vince others, that he is the organ of military justice, and
that what he does is irrevocably prescribed. With these
qualifications, and by this line of conduct, he will secure
the affections of his followers, instil into their minds all
250 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the impulses of deference and respect ; he will be feared,
and consequently obeyed.
" The resources of a general's mind are as various as
the occasions for the exercise of them are multiplied and
checkered: he must be perfectly master of the art of
knowing how to support an army in all circumstances and
situations ; how to apply its strength, or be sparing of its
energy and confidence ; how to post all its different com-
ponent parts, so as not to be forced to give or receive bat-
tle in opposition to settled plans. When once engaged, he
must have presence of mind enough to grasp all the rela-
tive points of disposition and arrangement, to seize favor-
able moments for impression, and to be thoroughly con-
versant in the infinite vicissitudes that occur during the
heat of a battle ; on a ready possession of which its ulti-
mate success depends. These requisites are unquestion-
ably manifold, and grow out of the diversity of situations,
and the chance medley of events that produce their ne-
cessity.
" A general to be in perfect possession of them, must
on the day of battle be divested of every thought, and be
inaccessible to every feeling, but what immediately regards
the business of the day ; he must recoimoitre with the
promptitude of a skilful geographer, whose eye collects
instantaneously all the relative portions of locality, and
feels his gromid as it were by instinct ; and in the dispo-
sition of his troops he must discover a perfect Imowledge
of his profession, and make all his arrangements with ac-
curacy and dispatch. His order of battle must be simple
and unconfused, and the execution of his plan be as quick
as if it merely consisted in uttering some few words of
command ; as, the first line mil attack ! the second will sup-
port it ! or, such a battalion will advance and support the line.
" The general officers who act under such a general
must be ignorant of their business indeed, if, upon the re-
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 251
ceipt of these orders, they should be deficient in the im-
mediate means of answering them, by a prompt and ready
co-operation. So that the general has only to issue out
directions according to the growth of circumstances, and
to rest satisfied that every division will act in conformity
to his intentions ; but if, on the contrary, he should so far
forget his situation as to become a drill-sergeant in the heat
of action, he must find himself in the case of the fly in
the fable, which perched upon a wheel, and foolishly im-
agined that the motion of the carriage was influenced by
its situation. A general, therefore, ought on the day of
battle to be thoroughly master of himself, and to have both
his mind and his eye riveted to the immediate scene of
action. He will by these means be enabled to see every
thing ; his judgment will be unembarrassed, and he will
instantly discover all the vulnerable points of the enemy.
The instant a favorable opening ofiiers, by which the con-
test may be decided, it becomes his duty to head the near-
est body of troops, and, without any regard to personal
safety, to advance against the enemy's line. [By a ready
conception of this sort, joined to a great courage, General
Dessabc determined the issue of the battle of Marengo.]
It is, however, impossible for any man to lay down rules,
or to specify with accuracy all the different ways by which
a victory may be obtained. Every thing depends upon a
variety of situations, casualties of events, and intermedi-
ate occurrences, which no human foresight can positively
ascertain, but which may be converted to good purposes
by a quick eye, a ready conception, and prompt execution.
" Prince Eugene was singularly gifted with these quali-
fications, particularly with that sublime possession of the
mind, which constitutes the essence of a military char-
acter."
" Many commanders-in-chief have been so limited in
their ideas of warfare, that when events have brought the
252 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
contest to issue, amd two rival armies have been drawn
out for action, their whole attention has devolved upon a
straight alignment, an equality of step, or a regular dis-
tance in intervals of columns. They have considered it
sufficient to give answers to questions proposed by their
aides-de-camp, to send orders in various directions, and to
gallop themselves from one quarter to another, without
steadily adhering to the fluctuations of the day, or calmly
watching for an opportunity to strike a decisive blow.
They endeavor, in fact, to do every thing, and thereby do
nothing. They appear like men whose presence of mind
deserts them the instant they are taken out of the beaten
track, or reduced to supply unexpected calls by uncommon
exertions ; and from whence, continues the same sensible
writer, do these contradictions arise ? from an ignorance
of those high qualifications without which the mere routine
of duty, methodical arrangement, and studied discipline
must fall to the ground, and defeat themselves. Many
officers spend their whole lives in putting a few regiments
through a regular set of manoeuvres ; and having done so,
they vainly imagine that all the science of a real military
man consists in that acquirement. When, in process of
time, the command of a large army falls to their lot, they
are manifestly lost in the magnitude of the undertaking,
and, from not knowing how to act as they ought, they
remain satisfied with doing what they have partially
learned."
" Military knowledge, as far as it regards a general or
commander-in-chief, may be divided into two parts, one
comprehending mere discipline and settled systems for
putting a certain number of rules into practice ; and the
other originating a sublimity of conception that method
may assist, but cannot give."
" If a man be bom with faculties that are naturally
adapted to the situation of a general, and if his talents do
STAFF AND ADMINISTRATIVE CORPS. 253
not fit the extraordinary casualties of war, he will never
rise beyond mediocrity."
" It is, in fact, in war as it is in painting, or in music.
Perfection in either art grows out of innate talent, but it
never can be acquired without them. Study and perse-
verance may correct ideas, but no application, no assiduity
will give the life and energy of action ; these are the
works of nature."
" It has been my fate (observes the Marshal) to see sev-
eral very excellent colonels become indifferent generals.
I have known others, who have distinguished themselves
at sieges, and in the different evolutions of an army, lose
their presence of mind and appear ignorant of their pro-
fession, the instant they were taken from that particular
line, and be incapable of commanding a few squadrons of
horse. Should a man of this cast be put at the head of an
army, he will confine himself to mere dispositions and
manoeuvres ; to them he will look for safety ; and if once
thwarted, his defeat will be inevitable, because his mind
is not capable of other resources."
" In order to obviate, in the best possible manner, the
innumerable disasters which must arise from the uncer-
tainty of war, and the greater uncertainty of the means
that are adopted to carry it on, some general rules ought
to be laid down, not only for the government of the troops,
but for the instruction of those who have the command of
them. The principles to be observed are : that when the
line or the columns advance, their distances should be
scrupulously observed ; that whenever a body of troops is
ordered to charge, every proportion of the line should rush
forward with intrepidity and vigor ; that if openings are
made in the first line, it becomes the duty of the second
instantly to fill up the chasms."
" These instructions issue from the dictates of plain na-
ure, and do not require the least elucidation in writing.
254 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
They constitute the A, B, C of soldiers. Nothing can be
more simple, or more intelligible ; so much so, that it
would be ridiculous in a general to sacrifice essential ob-
jects in order to attend to such minutiae. His functions in
the day of battle are confined to those occupations of the
mind, by which he is enabled to watch the countenance
of the enemy, to observe his movements, and to see with
an eagle's or a king of Prussia's eye, all the relative di-
rections that his opponents take. It must be his business
to create alarms and suspicions among the enemy's line in
one quarter, while his real intention is to act against
another ; to puzzle and disconcert him in his plans ; to
take advantage of the manifold openings which his feiiits
have produced, and when the contest is brought to issue,
to be capable of plunging with effect upon the weakest
part, and carrying the sword of death where its blow is
certain of being mortal. But to accomplish these impor-
tant and indispensable points, his judgment must be clear,
his mind collected, his heart firm, and his eyes incapable
of being diverted, even for a moment, by the trifling occur-
rences of the day."
The administrative service of an army is usually divided
into several distinct departments, as —
Pay department.
Subsistence "
Clothing
Medical " > m, ■ • ., ,
TT . , f These m our service are united.
Hospital " )
Barrack " \ These in our service are combined
Fuel " > in one, called the Quartermas-
Transportation " * ter's department.
Recruiting "
Military' Justice, or Court Martial department.
It was intended to enter into the history, organization,
STAFF AND ADMINISTKATIVE CORPS. 255
and use of each of these civico-military departments of an
army ; but our limits are such as to preclude any thing
like so detailed a discussion as would be necessary for a
proper understanding of the subject. We therefore pass
from the staflf directly to the line, or rather the four princi-
pal arms of an army organization.*
* Of works that treat directly of staff organization and duties, those
of Grimoard, Thi^banlt, Boutourlin, Labaume, are esteemed among the
best. The writings of Jomini, Napoleon, Rocquemcourt, Vauchelle,
Odier, Schamhorat, also contain much valuable information on this sub-
ject. The following list of books may be referred to for farther infor-
mation on the subjects alluded to in this chapter :
Aide-Memoire des officiers generaux et superieurs et des capitaines.
Precis de I'art de la guerre. Jomini.
Memoires de Napoleon. Montholon et Gourgaud.
Cours elementaire d'art et d^histoire militaires. Kocquancourt.
Cours elementaire d' administration militaire. Vauchelle.
Droite elementaire d'art militaire, &c. Gay de Vernon.
Annuaire militaire historique, &c. Sicard.
Cours ahrege d' administration militaire. Bemier.
Cours coadministration militaire, &c. Odier.
De V administration de Varmee d^Espagne. Odier.
De I'organization de la force armie en France. Cariou-Nisas.
Elemens de I'art militaire, &c. Cugnot.
Memoires sur la guerre." Feuqui^res.
Cours d'art militaire et d^histoire. Jacquinot de Fresle.
Cours d'art militaire. Fallot.
Theorie de I'officier saperieur. L^orier.
Hietoire de V administration de la guerre. Audouln.
Instructions diverses d I'usage de I'ecole d'application du corps
royal i' eiat-major.
Handbuch fur offixiere, &c. Schanihorst.
Having omitted all discussion of the several departments of the ad-
ministrative service of an army organization, it is not deemed necessary
to give the names of books of reference on the subjects of pay, courts-
martial, medicinal and hospital departments, &c., &C.
256 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE
CHAPTER X.
ARMY ORGANIZATION." INFANTRY AND CAVALRY
Infantry. — Infantry constitutes, in active service, by far
the most numerous portion of an army ; in time of peace
its duties are simple, and, in most countries, of little com-
parative importance ; but in our country the continually re-
curring difficulties on the Indian frontiers, render this arm
peculiarly necessary and important, even in time of gen-
eral peace. From the nature of infantry service — no pe-
culiar technical knowledge (we speak of the privates and
officers of the lower grades) being so absolutely indispen-
sable as in the other arms — the soldier may in a short
time be trained and instructed in his duties. For this
reason the ratio of infantry in a peace establishment is
ordinarily much less than in active service, this arm being
always capable of great expansion when occasion re-
quires.
In the early periods of society, and in countries where
horses abounded, men have usually preferred fighting on
horseback ; but civilization and a more thorough acquaint-
* In discussing our own organization, it may be well to compare it
with the armies of some of the principal nations of Europe. Our limits
will not allow us to go very much into details, nor to make a com-
parison with more than a single European power. We shall select
France, inasmuch as her army organization has served as a model
for the rest of Europe, and is still, in some respects, superior to most
others.
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 257
ance with war has always increased the importance of
infantry.
The Hebrews, and also the Egyptians, employed this
arm almost exclusively. The Asiatics generally em-
ployed both infantry and cavalry, but with the Greeks the
infantry was the favorite arm. Even their kings and
generals usually fought on foot. The Romans conquered
the world mainly with their infantry. This arm was also
considered of the greatest importance by the ancient Ger-
mans and Gauls ; but the migration of the liuns and other
Mongolic tribes mounted on small and -fleet horses, and
the acquaintance formed by the Franks of northern Spain
with the Moors, who were mounted on beautiful horses
from Arabia and the plateau of Asia, introduced a taste
for cavalry in western Europe: This taste was still fur-
ther cultivated under the feudal system, for the knights
preferred fighting on horseback to serving on foot. During
the crusades the infantry fell into disrepute. But the in-
vention of gunpowder changed the whole system of war-
fare, and restored to infantry its former importance.
" The Romans," says Napoleon in his Memoirs, " had
two infantries ; the first, lightly armed, was provided with
a missile weapon ; the second, heavily armed, bore a short
sword. After the invention of powder two species of in-
fantry were still continued : the arquebusiers, who were
lightly armed, and intended to observe and harass the
enemy ; and the pikemen, who supplied the place of the
heavy-armed infantry. During the hundred and fifty years
which have elapsed since Vauban banished lances and
pikes from all the infantry of Europe, substituting for them
the firelock and bayonet, all the infantry has been lightly
armed There has been since that time, properly
speaking, only one kind of infantry : if there was a company
of ehasseurs in every battalion, it was by way of counter-
poise to the company of grenadiers ; the battalion being
258 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
composed of nine companies, one picked company did not
appear sufficient. If the Emperor Napoleon created com-
panies of voltigeurs armed like dragoons, it was to substi-
tute them for those companies of chasseurs. He com-
posed them of men under five feet in height, in order to
bring into use that class of the conscription which measured
from four feet ten inches to five feet ; and having been im-
til that time exempt, made the burden of conscription fall
more heavily on the other classes. This arrangement
served to reward a great number of old soldiers, who, be-
ing under five feet in height, could not enter into the com-
panies of grenadiers, who on account of their bravery, de-
served to enter into a picked company : it was a powerful
incentive to emulation to bring the giants and pigmies into
competition. Had there been men of difiierent colors in
the armies of the emperor, he would have composed com-
panies of blacks and companies of whites : in a coimtry
where there were cyclops or hunchbacks, a good use
might be made of companies of cyclops, and others of
hunchbacks.
" In 1789, the French army was composed of regiments
of the line and battalions of chasseurs ; the chasseurs of
the Cevennes, the Vivarais, the Alps, of Corsica, and the
Pyrenees, who at the Revolution formed half brigades of
light infantry ; but the object was not to have two difier-
ent sorts of infantry, for they were raised alike, instructed
alike, drilled alike ; only the battalions of chasseurs were
recruited by the men of the mountainous districts, or by the
sons of the garde-chasse ; whence they were more fit to
be employed on the frontiers of the Alps and Pyrenees ;
and when they were in the armies of the North, they were
always detached, in preference, for climbing heights or
scouring a forest : when these men were placed in line, in a
battle, they served very well as a battalion of the line,
because they had received the same instructions, and
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 259
were armed and disciplined in the same manner. Every
power occasionally raises, in war-time, irregular corps,
under the title of free or legionary battalions, consisting
of foreign deserters, or formed of individuals of a particu-
lar party or faction ; but that does not constitute two sorts
of infantry. There is and can be but one; If the apes
of antiquity must needs imitate the Romans, it is not light-
armed troops that they ought to introduce, but heavy-armed
soldiers, or battalions armed with swords ; for all the in-
fantry of Europe serve at times as light troops."
Most European nations, for reasons probably similar to
those of Napoleon, keep up this nominal division of in-
fantry of the line and light infantry ; but both are usually
armed and equipped alike, and both receive the same or-
ganization and instruction. The light infantry are usual-
ly made up from the class of men, or district of country,
which furnishes the greatest number of riflemen and sharp-
shooters. In France, the light infantry is best supplied
by the hunters of the Ardennes, the Vosges, and the Jura
districts ; in Austria, by the Croates and Tyrolese ; iu
Prussia, by the " forsters," or woodsmen ; and in Russia,
by the Cossacks. Our own western hunters, with proper
discipline, make the best tirailleurs in the world.
Light infantry is usually employed. to protect the flanks
of the main army, to secure outposts, to recoimoitre the
ground, secure avenues of approach, deceive the enemy
by demonstrations, and secure the repose of the other
troops by patrolling parties. They usually begin, a battle,
and afterwards take their places in the line, either on the
flanks, or in the intervals between the larger bodies. The
battle of Jena furnishes a good example of the use of
French light infantry ; and at the battle of Waterloo, the
Prussian tirailleurs were exceedingly effective in clearing
the ground for the advance of Bliicher's heavy columns.
The attack of Floh-hug by Augereau, of Vierzehn Heile-
260 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
gen by Suchet, of Iserstaedt by Desjardins, are models
well worthy of study.
The infantry of the line acts in masses, and, on the
field of battle, constitutes the principal fighting force. Its
formations and the manner of engaging it have already
been discussed under the head of tactics.
The importance of infantry is due, in considerable part,
to the fact that it can be used everywhere — ^in mountains
or on plains, in woody or open countries, in cities or in
fields, on rivers or at sea, in the redoubt or in the attack
of the breach ; the infantry depends only on itself, where-
as the other arms must depend in a considerable degree
on the efiiciency of their materials and the will and
strength of brute force ; and when the snows of Russia or
the deserts of Egypt deprive their animals of the means of
sustenance, they become perfectly useless.
Foot-soldiers, in olden times, were armed with a spear
and sometimes with a sword, arrows, lance, and sling.
At present they are armed, with a gun and bayonet, and
sometimes with a sword. In some European services a
few of the foot-soldiers are armed with a pike. Some of
the light troops used as sharp-shooters carry the rifle, but
this weapon is useless for the great body of infantry. The
short-sword is more useful as an instrument for cutting
branches, wood, &c., than for actual fighting. The in-
fantry have no defensive covering, or at least very little.
The helmet or cap serves to protect the head, and the
shoulders are somewhat defended by epaulets. It has
often been proposed in modern times to restore the ancient
defensive armor of the foot-soldier; but this would be
worse than useless against firearms, and moreover would
destroy the efficiency of these troops by impeding their
movements. The strength of this arm depends greatly
upon its discipline ; for if calm and firm, a mass of infan-
try in column or in square is almost impenetrable.
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 261
The bayonet was introduced by Vauban in the wars of
Louis XIV., and after the years 1703 and '4, the pike was
totally suppressed in the French army. This measure
was warmly opposed by Marshal Montesquieu, and the
question was discussed by him and Marshal Vauban with
an ability and learning worthy of these great men. The
arguments of Vauban were deemed most conclusive, and
his project was adopted by the king.
This question has been agitated by military writers in
more recent times, Puysegur advocating the musket, and
Folard and Lloyd contending in favor of restoring the pike.
Even in our own service, so late as the war of 1812, a dis-
tinguished general of the army strongly urged the use ol
the pike, and the fifteenth (and perhaps another regiment)
was armed and equipped in part as pikemen ; but expe-
rience soon proved the absurdity of the project.
Napoleon calls the infantry the arm of battles and the
sinews of the army. But if it be acknowledged, that, next
to the talent of the general-in-chief, the infantry is the first
instrument of victory, it must also be confessed that it finds
a powerful support in the cavalry, artillery, and engineers,
and that without these it would often be compromised, and
could gain but a half success.
The French infantry is divided into one hundred regi-
ments of three battalions each, a battalion being composed
of seven companies. There are also several other battal-
ions of chasseurs, zuaves, &c., being organized especially
for service in Africa, and composed in part of native
troops.
In our own army we have eight regiments of infantry,
each regiment forming a single battalion often companies.
The flank companies are intended for light infantry.
In all properly organized armies the infantry constitutes
from three-fourths to four-fifths of the entire active force in
the field, and from two-thirds to three-fourths, say about
262 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
seven-tenths of the entire military establishment. In time
of peace this proportion may be slightly diminished.
Cavalry. — The use of cavalry is probably nearly as old
as war itself. The Egyptians had cavalry before the time
of Moses, and the Israelites often encountered cavalry in
their wars with their neighbors, though they made no use
of this arm themselves until the time of Solomon.
The Greeks borrowed their cavalry from the Asiatics,
and especially from the Persians, who, according to Xen-
ophon, held this arm in great consideration. After the
battle of Platea, it was agreed by assembled Greece that
each power should furnish one horseman to every ten foot-
soldiers. In Sparta the poorest were selected for this arm,
and the cavalry marched to .combat without any previous
training. At Athens the cavalry service was more popular,
and they formed a well-organized corps of twelve hundred
horsemen. At Thebes also this arm had consideration in
the time of Epaminondas. But the cavalry of Thessaly
was the most renowned, and both Philip and Alexander
drew their mounted troops from that country.
The Romans had made but little progress in this arm
when they encountered the Thessalians, who fought in the
army of Pyrrhus. They then increased their cavalry, but
it was not numerous till after their wars with the Cartha-
ginians. Scipio organized and disciplined the Roman
cavalry like that of the Numidians. This arm was sup-
plied from the ranks of the richest citizens, and afterwards
formed an order intermediary between the Senate and the
people, under the name of knights.
At a later period, the cavalry of the Gauls was particu-
larly good. The Franks were without cavalry when they
made their first irruption into Gaul. Under the reign of
Childeric I. we see for the first time the " cavaliers francs"
figure as a part of the national forces. At the battle of
Tours the cavalry and infantry were in the proportion of
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 263
one to five, and under Pepin and Charlemagne their num-
bers were nearly equal. Under Charles the Bald armies
were composed entirely of cavalry, and during the middle
ages the knights disdained the foot service, and fought
only on horseback.
After the introduction of artillery, cavalry was still em-
ployed, though to little advantage. Gustavus Adolphus
was the first to perceive the real importance of this arm in
modem warfare, and he used it with great success. But
it was left for Seidlitz to perfect it under the direction of
Frederick the Great.
Marshal Saxe very justly remarked, that cavalry is the
" arme du moment," for in almost every battle there are
moments when a decisive charge of cavalry will gain the
victory, but if not made at the instant it may be too late.
The efficiency of cavalry depends upon the moral impres-
sion which it makes on the enemy, and is greater in pro-
portion to the size of the mass, and the rapidity of its mo-
tion. This last quality enables a commander to avail him-
self immediately of a decisive moment, when the enemy
exposes a weak point, or when disorder appears in his
ranks. But this requires a bold and active spirit, which
shrinks not from responsibility, and is able to avail itself
with quickness and decision of every opportunity. If it be
remembered that it is essential that this coup cPatil, so rare
and so difficult to acquire, be accompanied by a courage
and vigor of execution which nothing can shake, we shall
not be astonished that history furnishes so few good cav-
alry generals, and that this arm so seldom does such exe-
cution as it did imder Frederick and Napoleon, with Seid-
litz and Murat as commanders.
The soldier gains great velocity by the use of the horse
m war ; but in other respects he is the loser. The great
expense and care required of the cavalier to support his
horse ; the difficulty experienced in surmounting ordinary
264 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
obstacles, and in using his fire-arms to advantage, are all
prejudicial to success.
The unequal size of the horse, and the great diversity
in his strength and breed, have rendered it necessary to
divide this arm into light and heavy cavalry, and a mixed
class called dragoons. The heavy cava.lry is commonly
used in masses where force is mainly requisite ; the lighter
troops are used singly and in small detachments, where
rapidity of movement is most desired.
The heavy cavalry are divided into carabiniers, cuiras-
siers, and sometimes lancers. The two latter are fre-
quently united, the cuirassiers being armed with the lance.
These troops are seldom used for scouts, vanguards, and
convoys ; but are frequently employed to sustain the light
cavalry. Their main duty is " to appear on the field of bat-
tle and make the decisive charges."
The light cavalry is composed of chasseurs, or troopers,
hussars, and lancers. The latter, when composed of large
men and mounted on heavy horses, are attached to the
heavy cavalry.
The dragoons were formerly a mixed body of horse and
foot, but it being found impossible to unite these two dis-
tinct arms in one, and the attempt having destroyed the
usefulness of the body to act in either capacity, the term
was applied to a mixed kind of cavalry between the heavy
and the light horse. In more recent wars they have also
been instructed as infantry and employed as foot-soldiers,
till horses could be foimd in the enemy's country with
which to mount them. But we believe there is no instance
in more modern wars in which they have been employed
at the same time in both capacities.
This term is, very improperly, applied to all our cavalry;
and some of the congressional wiseacres have recently
experimented on one of our so-called regiments of dra-
goons, by dismounting it one year, selling its horses at
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 265
auction, and changing its arms and equipments, and again,
the next year, purchasing new horses, arms, a;id equip-
ments for remounting it ; and all this for economy !
The Roman cavalry at first wore a round shield and
helmet, the rest of their body being nearly uncovered.
Their arms were a sword and long thin javelin, or lance,
with an iron head. They afterwards reduced the shield
U) a much smaller size, and made square, and their lance
was greatly increased in size and length, and armed at
both ends. In other respects they were armed in the
same way as infantry. The use of the lance and the
shield at the same time, of course rendered both nearly
worthless. The Roman cavalry was superior to that of their
enemies, except, perhaps, the light cavalry of the Parthians.
The heavy armor which was sometimes worn by the
ancients, like the gens d'ar?nes of the middle ages, rendered
them greatly inferior to infantry in a close engagement.
Tigranes, king of Armenia, brought an army of one hun-
dred and fifty thousand horse into the field, against the
Roman general Lucullus, who had only about six thousand
horse and fifteen thousand foot. But the Armenian cav-
alry, called cataphratti, were so overburdened with armor,
that when they fell from their horses they could scarcely
move or make any use of their arms. They were routed
by a mere handful of Roman infantry.
The modem cavalry is much lighter, and, by dispensing
with armor, shields, &c., it can move with much greater
rapidity. A modem cavalry horse carries a weight of
from two hundred and fifty to three hundred pounds, viz. :
The rider, ....
His arms and equipments,
His horae equipments, ....
Two days' rations of provisions and grain,
Heavy
cavalry.
160
55
60
25
Light
cavalry.
140 1I}S.
40
45
25
300 250
23
266 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
The horse moves per minute —
At a walk, . . . from 110 yards to 130
At a trot, 220 240
AtagaUop, 330 360
But on a march over the ordinary average of good and
bad roads, cavalry will vfalk about one himdred yards per
minute, and at an easy trot, two hundred.
An ordinary day's march for cavalry is about thirty
miles, but on a forced march this arm can march fifty miles
within the twenty-four hours. A single horseman, or a
small detachment, can easily exceed this distance.
" Light cavalry," says Napoleon, in his Memoirs, "ought
to reconnoitre and watch the motions of the enemy, con-
siderably in advance of the army ; it is not an appendage
to the infantry : it should be sustained and protected espe-
cially by the cavalry of the line. Rivalry and emulation
have always existed between the infantry and cavalry :
light cavalry is indispensable to the vanguard, the rear-
guard, and the wings of the army ; it, therefore, cannot
properly be attached to, and forced to follow the move-
ments of any particular corps of infantry. It would be
more natural to attach it to the cavalry of the line, than
to leave it in dependence upon the infantry, with which it
has no connection ; but it should be independent of both.
" If the light cavalry is to form vanguards, it must be
organized into squadrons, brigades, and divisions, for the
purpose of mantEuvring ; for that is all vanguards and rear-
guards do : they pursue or retreat by platoons, form them-
selves into several lines, or wheel into column, or change
their position with rapidity for the purpose of outfronting
a whole wing. By a combination of such evolutions, a
vanguard, of inferior numbers, avoids brisk actions and
general engagements, and yet delays the enemy long
enough to give time for the main army to come up, for the
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 267
infantry to deploy, for the general-in-chief to make his
dispositions, and for the baggage and parks to file into
their stations. The art of a general of the vanguard, or
of the rear-guard, is, without hazarding a defeat, to hold
the enemy in check, to impede him, to compel him to
spend three or four hours in moving a single league : tac-
tics point out the methods of eifecting these important
objects, and are more necessary for cavalry than for in-
fantry, and in the vanguard, or the rear-guard, than in any
other position. The Hungarian Insurgents, whom we
saw in 1797, 1805, and 1809, were pitiful troops. If the
light troops of Maria Theresa's times became formidable,
it was by their excellent organization, and, above every
thing, by their numbers. To imagine that such troops
could be superior to Wurmser's hussars, or to the dra-
goons of Latour, or to the Archduke John, would be en-
tertaining strange ideas "of things ; but neither the Hun-
garian Insurgents, nor the Cossacks, ever formed the van-
guards of the Austrian and Russian armies ; because to
speak of a vanguard or a rear-guard, is to speak of troops
which manoeuvre. The Russians considered a regiment
of Cossacks who had been trained worth three regiments
untrained. Every thing about these troops is despicable,
except the Cossack himself, who is a man of fine person,
powerful, adroit, subtle, a good horseman, and indefatiga-
ble ; he is bom on horseback, and bred among civil
wars ; he is in the field, what the Bedouin is in the desert,
or the Barbet in the Alps ; he never enters a house, never
lies in a bed ; and he always changes his bivouac at sun-
set, that he may not pass a night in a place where the
enemy may possibly have observed him.
" Two Mamelukes kept three Frenchmen at bay, because
they were better armed, better mounted, and better exer-
cised ; they had two pairs of pistols, a tromblon, a carbine,
a helmet with a visor, a coat of mail, several horses, and
268 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
several men on foot to attend them. But a hundred
French did not fear a 'hundred Mamelukes ; three hun-
dred were more than a match for an equal number ; and
one thousand would beat fifteen hundred : so powerful is
the influence of tactics, order, and evolutions ! Murat,
Leclerc, and Lasalle, cavalry generals, presented them-
selves to the Mamelukes in several lines : when the latter
were upon the point of outfronting the first line, the second
came to its assistance on the right and left ; the Mame-
lukes then stopped, and wheeled, to turn the wings of this
new line : this was the moment seized for charging them ;
they were always broken.
" The duty of a vanguard, or a rear-guard, does not con-
sist in advancing or retiring, but in manoeuvring. It
should be composed of a good light cavalry, supported by a
good reserve of cavalry of the line, by excellent battalions
of foot, and strong batteries of artillery : the troops must
be well trained ; and the generals, officers, and soldiers,
should all be equally well acquainted with their tactics,
each according to his station. An undisciplined troop
would only embarrass the advanced guard."
"It is admitted that for facility in manoeuvring, the
squadron should consist of one hundred men, and that every
three or four squadrons should have a superior officer."
" It is not advisable for all the cavalry of the line to
wear cuirasses : dragoons, mounted upon horses of four
feet nine inches in height, armed with straight sabres, and
without cuirasses, should form a part of the heavy caval-
ry ; they should be furnished with infantry-muskets, with
bayonets : should have the shakot of the infantry, panta-
loons covering the half-boot-buskin, cloaks with sleeves,
and portmanteaus small enough to be carried slung across
the back when the men are on foot. Cavalry of all de-
scriptions should be furnished with fire-arms, and should
know how to manoeuvre on<> foot. Three thousand light
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 869
cavajry, or three thousand cuirassiers, should not suffer
themselves to be stopped by a thousand infantry posted in
a wood, or qn ground impracticable to cavalry ; and three
thousand dragoons ought not to hesitate to attack two
thousand infantry, should the latter, favored by their posi-
tion, attempt to stop them.
" Turenne, Prince Eugene of Savoy, and Vendome,
attached great importance to dragoons, and used them
successfully. The dragoons gained great glory in Italy,
in 1796 and 1797. In Egypt and in Spain, during the
campaigns of 1806 and 1807, a degree of prejudice sprung
up against them. The divisions of dragoons had been
mustered at Compiegne and Amiens, to be embarked with-
out horses for the expedition of England, in order to serve
on foot until they should be mounted in that country.
General Baraguay d'Hilliers, their first inspector, com-
manded them ; he had them equipped with gaiters, and
incorporated with them a considerable number of recruits,
whom he exercised in infantry manoeuvres alone. These
were no longer cavalry regiments : they served in the
campaign of 1806 on foot, until after the battle of Jena,
when they were mounted on horses taken from the Prus-
sian cavalry, three-fourths of which were unserviceable.
These combined circumstances injured the dragoons ; but
in 1813 and 1814 their divisions acquired honor in rival-
ling the cuirassiers. Dragoons are necessary for the sup-
port of light cavalry in the vanguard, the rear-guard, and
the wings of an army ; cuirassiers are little adapted for
van and rear-guards : they should never be employed in
this service but when it is requisite to keep them in prac-
tice and accustom them to war."
Napoleon further recommends that light cay.alry be di-
vided into two kinds, chasseurs or troopers, and light
horse ; and the heavy to be composed of dragoons and
cuirassiers ; the troopers to be mounted on horses of 4 ft
270 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
6 in. ; light cavalry on horses of 4 ft. 7 or 8 in. ; dragoons
on horses of 4 ft. 9 in. ; and cuirassiers on horses of 4 ft.
10 or 11 in.; which employ horses of all kinds for
mounting the troops.
All cavalry must receive the same instruction ; and all
should be capable, in case of need, of performing any of
the duties of mounted troops. The shock is the principal
effect produced by this arm ; therefore, the greater the
velocity the greater must be this effect, provided the
troops can be kept in mass. But it is found, by experi-
ence, that it is impossible to preserve them in line when put
to the height of their speed. The best authorities there-
fore prefer, as we have said elsewhere, the charge at the
trot, or at any rate the gallop should not be taken up till
within a very short distance of the enemy. The charge
of a compact mass at a trot is much greater than that of a
wavering one at a gallop.
On the field of battle the cavalry of the line is consider-
ed as the arm of the shock, to break through any corps
that may be in opposition ; but it is unable of itself to re-
sist a shock, and therefore should on no account wait to
receive the charge of another body of mounted troops. It
was on this account that Frederick directed his cavalrj'
officers, under the severest penalties, never to receive a
charge, but always to meet Ijhe attacking force half way.
This is the only mode of preventing defeat.
A good infantry can always sustain itself against the
charges of cavalry. At the battle of Auerstedt, in 1806,
Davoust ordered the divisions of Gudin to form squares to
resist the Prussian cavalry, which, by means of a fog, had
gained a most advantageous position. Blucher led his
cavalry in repeated and impetuous charges, but all was in
vain ; the French infantry presented a front of iron. At
the combat of Krasnoi, in 1812, the cavalry of Grouchy,
Nansonty, and Bordesoult, attacked and overthrew the
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 271
dragoons of Clarkof, but the Russian infantry under Neve-
roffskoi sustained itself against the repeated charges of
vastly superior numbers of these French horse. At the
battle of Molwitz, the grenadiers sustained the charges of
the enemy's cavalry, although the cavalry of the great
Frederick had already been completely overthrown.
But when the infantry is engaged with the infantry of
the enemy, the charges of cavalry are generally success-
ful, and sometimes decide the fate of the battle, as was
the case at Rosbach, Zomsdorf, Wurtsburg, Marengo,
Eylau, Borodino, &c.
Cavalry may also be very efficacious against infantry
in wot weather, when the rain or snow renders it impos-
sible for the foot soldiers to use their fire-arms to advan-
tage, as was the case with the corps of Augereau, at
Eylau, and with the Austrian left, at the battle of Dresden.
Again, if the infantry be previously weakened, or thrown
into disorder by the fire of batteries. The charge of the
Russian cavalry at Hohenfriedberg, in 1745, is a remark-
able example of this kind.
Cavalry should always be immediately sustained in its
efforts either by infantry or other bodies of horse ; for as
soon as the charge is made, the strength of this arm is
for a time exhausted, and, if immediately attacked, defeat
becomes inevitable. The charge of the cavalry of Ney
on Prince Hoheidohe at the battle of Jena, and of the
French horse on Gossa at Leipsic, are fine examples of
the successful charges of cavalry when properly sus-
tained. Kunnersdorf and Waterloo are examples of the
disastrous consequences of leaving such charges without
support.
The choice of the field of battle is sometimes such as
to render cavalry almost useless. Such was the case at
the battle of Cassano, between the Duke of-Vendome and
the Prince Eugene. The field was so cut up by the
372 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Adda and the canals of Rittorto and Pendina, that Prince
Eugene could make no use of his horse. If, when mas-
ter of the bridge of Rittorto, he had been able to charge
the French with a body of cavalry, there had been no
doubt of his complete success.
After a battle, and in the pursuit of a flying enemy,
cavalry is invaluable. If Napoleon had possessed a suit-
able number of mounted troops, with an able commander,
at the battles of Lutzen and Ligny, the results of these
victories had been decisive ; whereas they were really
without consequence. On the other hand, the Prussian
army in 1806, after the battle of Jena, and Napoleon's
army in 1815 at Waterloo, were completely cut to pieces
by the skilful use of cavalry in the pursuit of a defeated
and dispirited foe.
The want of good cavalry was severely felt in the war
of the American Revolution. Had Washington possessed
a few good squadrons of horse, his surprise and defeat in
the lines of Brooklyn, and the consequent loss of New
York, had never taken place. The efficient employment
of a few good squadrons of cavalry might readily have
prevented the defeat at Bladensburg, and the loss of the
capitol, in 1814.
In a well-organized army, the cavalry should be from
one-fourth to one-sixth of the infantry, according to the
nature of the war.*
"^ To gain a competent knowledge of the duties connected with the
two arms of service mentioned in this chapter, the ofScer should make
himself thoroughly acquainted with Scott's System of Infantry Tac-
tics, for the United States' Infantry, or at least with Major Cooper's
abridged edition of Infantry Tactics, and with the system of Cavalry
Tactics, adopted in our army ; also with the directions for the use of
these two arms in a campaign, and their employment on the battle-
field, given in the writings of Jon^ini, Decker, OkouneiF, Kocquancourt,
and Jacquinot de Fresle
ARMY ORGANIZATION. 273
The following books may be referred to for further inlormation re-
specting the history, organization, use, and instruction of infantry and
cavalry : —
Essai general de tactique. Guibert.
Cansidirations generales aur I'infanterie frangaise, par un g^n^ral
en r^traite. A work of merit.
De I'infanterie, par I'auteur de I'histou-e de I'ezp^dition de Russie
Histoire de la guerre de la peninsule. Foy. This work contains
many interesting and valuable remarks on the French and English
systems of tactics, and particularly on the tactics of Infantry.
Cows d'art et d'histoire militaires. Jacquinot de Fresle.
Art de la guerre. Eogniat.
Instruction destinee aux troupes legeres, &c., redig^e sur ime in-
struction de Frederick II. k ses officiers.
English Infantry Regulations.
Ordonnance (French) pour I'exercice et les manoeuvres de I'in-
fanterie, par le commission de manoeuvres.
Aide-memoires des officiers generaux et superieurs, et des capi-
taines.
Essai sur I'histoire generale de I'art militaire. Carion-Nisas.
Histoire de la milice frangaise. Daniel.
Cours elementaire d'art et d'histoire militaires. Rocquancourt.
Traite elementaire d'art militaire, &c. Gay de Vernon.
Introduction a I'etude de Part de la guerre. La Roche-Amyou.
Tactique des trois armes. Decker.
Examen raisonne des trois amies, &c. OkouneS
The last two eire works of great merit. The writings of OkounefT,
however, are very difliise.
Instruction pour le service de Vinfanterie legere. Guyard.
iTistruction de Vinfanterie, &o. Schauenbourg.
Traite de tactique. Temay et Koch.
Mecanism des manoeuvres de guerre de I'infanterie polonaise.
Vroniecki.
Traite sur I'infanterie legere. Beurmann.
English Cavalry Regulations.
Ordonnance (French) sur I'exercice et les evolutions de la ca-
valerie.
Les troupes dcheval de France, &c. De Bourge.
Avant-postes de cavalerie legere. Brack. The author served with
distinction under Laesale, Colbert, Maison, Pujol, and Excelmans.
Reflexions sur I'emploi de la cavalerie, &c. Caraman.
274 MILITARY AUT AND SCIENCE.
Observations aur I'ordonnance, ^c, de la eavalerie. Dejean.
Tactique de la eavalerie. Itier.
Elements de tactique pour la eavalerie, par Mottin de la Balme.
A work of rare merit.
De I'emploi de la eavalerie a la guerre, Schaueubourg.
Remarques sur la eavalerie. Wamery. This work has long en-
joyed a high reputation among the oavaby officers of the European
services. The Paris edition is enriched with notes by a French gen-
eral officer.
Nachriehten und Betrachtungen uher die Thaten und Sehieksale
der Reiierei, &c. This work discusses the operations of cavalry in
the campaigns of Frederick the Great and of Napoleon, down to the
battle of Lutzen in 1813.
Examen du livret provisoire, &c. Marbot.
Le Spectateur Militaire, contains many essays by cavalry officeiB
on the various questions connected with the organization and use of
this arm.
Die Gefechislehre der beiden verbundenen Waffen-Kavallerie und
reitenden Artillerie. Decker
Manuel de I'officier. Ruble de Lilienstem.
Aide^memmre, a I'usage des officiers de eavalerie.
Journal de I'infanterie et de la eavalerie.
Traiti de tactique pour les officiers d'infanterie et de eavalerie.
Histoire des exploits et des vicissitudes de la eavalerie pruS'
sienne. Coutz
ARTILLERY. 275
CHAPTER XI.
ARMY ORGANIZATION. ARTILLERY.
Artillery. — Previous to the invention of gunpowder in
the thirteenth century, the machines of war were divided
between two classes of military men, the engineers {en-
gignours, as they were called in the middle ages) and the
artillery, {artilliers, as they were formerly called,) the lat-
ter being particularly charged with the management of the
lighter and more portable projectile machines, such as the
balistas and arco-balistas, which were used for throwing
different kinds of arrows — -fl&ches, viretons, carreaux, mar
tras, &c., while the former managed the battering-rams,
cranes, helipoles, &c. And, indeed, for a long time after
the discovery of gunpowder, this distinction was kept up,
and the artillery retained all the more ordinary projectUe
machines, while the engineers constructed and managed
the more ponderous weapons of attack and defence. But
the new artillery was gradually introduced, without, how-
ever, immediately displacing the old, and there were for
a time, if we may be allowed the expression, two artille-
ries, the one employing the old projectile machines, and
the other those of the new invention. The latter were
called canoniers, to distinguish them from the former, who
still retained the name of artilliers.
The first cannon were invented in the early part of the
fourteenth century, or, perhaps, among the Arabs as early
as the middle of the thirteenth century, but they were not
much known in Europe till about 1350. Cannon are said
to have been employed by the Moors as early as 1249, and
by the French in 1338. The English used artillery at
276 MILlTARy ART AND SCIENCE.
the battle of Crecy in 1346. Both cannon and the ancient
projectile machines were employed at the siege of Ai-
guillon in 1339, at Zara in 1345, at Rennes in 1357, and
at Naples in 1380. At this last siege the ancient balista
was employed to throw into the castle of Naples barrels
of infectious matter and mutilated limbs of prisoners of
war. We read of the same thing being done in Spain at
a later period.
Cannon in France were at first called bombards and
couleuverines, but were afterwards named from certain
figures marked on them, such as serpentines, basilisks, scor-
pions, &c. In the infancy of the art they were made
small, weighing only from twenty to fifty pounds, and were
mounted on small moveable carriages. This species of
fire-arms became quite numerous about the beginning of
the fifteenth century. They were followed by heavier
pieces, used in the attack and defence of towns. This
siege artillery continued to be increased in dimensions,
till, towards the latter part of the fifteenth century, they
reached such an enormous size as to be almost useless as
a military machine. Louis XL had an immense piece
constructed at Tours, in 1770, which, it was said, carried
a ball from the Bastille to Charenton, (about six miles !)
Its caliber was that of five hundred pounds. It was in-
tended for experiment, and burst on the second discharge;
The famous culverin of Bolduc was said to carry a ball
from that city to Bommel. The culverin of Nancy, made
in 1598, was more than twenty-three feet in length.
There is now an ancient cannon in the arsenal at Metz
of about this length, which carries a ball of one hundred
and forty pounds. Cannon balls were found at Paris as
late as 1712, weighing near two hundred pounds, and from
twelve to sixteen inches in diameter. At the siege of
Constantinople in 1453, there was a famous metallic bom-
bard which threw stone balls of an incredible size ; at the
ARTILLERY. 277
siege of Bourges in 1412, a cannon was used which, it
was said, threw stone balls " of the size of mill-stones."
The Gantois, under Arteville, made a bombard fifty feet
in length, whose report was heard at a distance of ten
leagues !
The first cannon were made of wood, and covered with
sheet-iron, or embraced by iron rings : longitudinal bars
of iron were afterwards substituted for the wooden form.
Towards the end of the fourteenth century, brass, tin, cop-
per, wrought and cast iron, were successively used for
this purpose. The bores of the pieces were first made in
a conical shape, and it was not until a much later period
that the cylindrical form was introduced.
In the wars between the Spaniards and Moors in the
latter part of the fifteenth century, very great use was made
of artillery in sieges and battles. Ferdinand the Catholic
had at this time, probably, a larger artillery train than any
other European power. The Spanish cannon, generally
very large, were composed of iron bars about two inches
in breadth, held together by bolts and rings of the same
metal. The pieces were firmly attached to their car-
riages, and incapable of either horizontal or vertical move-
ment. The balls thrown by them were usually of marble,
though sometimes of iron. Many of the pieces used at
the siege of Baza, in 1486, are still to be seen in that city,
and also the cannon balls then in use. Some of the latter
are fourteen inches in diameter, and weigh one hundred
and seventy-five pounds. The length of the cannon was
about twelve feet. These dimensions are a proof of a
slight improvement in this branch of military science,
which was, nevertheless, still in its infancy. The awk-
wardness of artillery at this period may be judged of by its
slowness of fire. At the siege of Zeteuel, in 1407, five
" bombards," as the heavy pieces of ordnance were then
called, were able to discharge only forty shot in the course
278 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
of a day ; and it is noticed as a remarkable circumstance,
at the siege of Albahar, that two batteries discharged one
huidred and forty balls in the course of the twenty-four
hours !
In the Italian wars between France and Spain, in the
beginning of the sixteenth century, the difficulty of moving
the heavy cannon then in use was so great that only a very
small number of pieces were brought upon the battle-field.
At the battle of Cerignola, in 1503, the number of cannon
in the French army was only thirteen. Indeed, during
the greater part of this century, four or five pieces were
considered sufficient for an ordinary army in the field, and
many agreed to the doctrine of Machiavelli, that the only
legitimate use of artillery was in the attack and defence
of places. But in the wars of Henry IV. of France, this
arm of service was again increased, and the troops which
this king destined against the house of Austria had an ar-
tillery train of fifty pieces. Great improvements were also
made about this period in the manufacture of powder, and
all kinds of fire-arms. Sully gave greater development
to this arm of service, improving its materials, and in-
creasing its efficiency. Then, as at most other periods, the
French were in advance of most other nations in artillery.
It was near the close of the sixteenth or the beginning
of the seventeenth century, that the heavy and ill-shaped
artillery began to give place to more wieldy and useful
pieces. A certain M. de Linar demonstrated, in the lat-
ter part of the sixteenth century, that caimon twelve feet
in length would give a greater range than those seventeen
feet in length, the calibre being the same ; but some years
elapsed before advantage was taken of this discovery. In
1624, Gustavus Adolphus caused experiments to be made
to verify this point, and, on being convinced of its truth,
caused his batteries to be furnished with shorter and light-
er pieces. This great king introduced, about the same
ARTILLERY. 279
time, a new and lighter kind of artillery, made of sheet
iron and leather. Each piece had its chamber formed of
thin metal and embraced by strong iron rings ; over these
was placed a form of hardened leather, which was again
encircled with rings and held compactly together. These
pieces were moimted on light carriages, so that two men
could easily manoeuvre them. It was said that they would
fire from eight to ten rounds without requiring repairs.
Gustavus made use of them in all his military operations
from 1 638 to the time of his death. They did him excel-
lent service on numerous occasions ; being so very light
they could be easily transported, and, on the field of bat-
tle, their movements could be made to conform to the
movements of his troops.
As cannon and small arms were gradually introduced
into general use, various inventions and improvements
were proposed and introduced from time to time. Can-
non were constructed with two or more barrels ; some
were arranged for being loaded in the breech, and others
at the mouth of the piece ; two pieces were sometimes
connected by horizontal timbers, which revolved about
a vertical axis, so that the recoil of one piece would
bring the other into battery ; and various other arrange-
ments of this description, which have recently been re-
vived and some of them patented as new inventions. The
small arms employed at this period were much the same
as those used at the present day, except the match-
lock, which afterwards gave place to flint-locks. Arms
of this description were sometimes made to be load-
ed at the breach, and guns with two, three, and even as
many as eight barrels, were at one time in fashion. In
the Musee de VArtillerie at Paris may be found many arms
of this kind, which have been reproduced in this country
and England as new inventions. In this Museum are two
ancient pieces, invented near the end of the sixteenth or
280 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the beginning of the seventeenth century, which very
nearly correspond with CoWs patent, with the single ex-
cejition of the lock !*
The materiel of artillery employed in modem warfare
is divided into two general classes : 1st. Siege Artillery,
or such as is employed in the attack and defence of
places. 2d. Field Artillery, or such as is used in battle,
or in the field-operations of an army.
1 . Siege Artillery is composed of mortars, large how-
itzers, Paixhan guns or Columbiads,\ and all cannon of a
large calibre. In our service this class of ordnance in-
cludes the twelve, eighteen, twenty-four, thirty-two, snd
forty-two-pounder guns, the eight, ten, and thirteen-inch
mortars, the sixteen-inch stone mortar, the twenty-four-
pounder coehorn mortar, the twenty-four-pounder carron-
ade, and the eight, ten, and twelve-inch howitzers.
All these, except the smaller mortars, are made of cast
iron. This substance is less tenacious than wrought iron
or bronze, and the caimon made of it are, on this account,
* It is not to be inferred that the modern improvements (aa they
eire 'called) are copied from the more ancient inventions. Two men
of different ages, or even of the same age, sometimes fall upon the
same identical discovery, without either's borrowing from the other.
t These pieces were first invented by Colonel Bomford, of the U. S.
army, and used in the war of 181S. The dimensions of these guns
were first taken to Europe by a young French officer, and thus fell
into the hands of General Paixhan, who immediately introduced them
into the French service. They were by this means first made known
to the rest of Europe, and received the name of the person who in-
troduced them into the European services, rather than that of the
original inventor. AH these facts are so fully susceptible of proof,
that Europeans now acknowledge themselves indebted to us for the
invention ; even General Paixhan gives up all claim to originality in
his gun, and limits himself to certain improvements which he intro-
duced. The original gun, which was invented by Colonel Bomford,
and whose dimensions were carried to General Paixhan in France, is
now lying at the ordnance d^pdt, in New York harboc
ARTILLERY. 281
much heavier than of the other materials ; but for the na-
val service, and the attack and defence of fortifications,
the weight required to secure the necessary strength is
not very objectionable. Wrought iron and bronze are
much more expensive and less durable. Moreover, the
difficulty of forging vsrrought iron in masses of sufficient
size has been such as to prevent its being brought into
general use for artillery. Numerous attempts have been
made, at different periods, to construct large guns of this
material, but none have yet been successful. Improve-
ments which are now making in the manufacture of
wrought iron, may render this the preferable material for
the smaller pieces of artillery ; but the best informed mil-
itary men deem it objectionable for the heavier cannon,
both on account of its cost and the imperfection of its
manufacture. Even should the latter objection be re-
moved, its cost must prevent its general application to the
construction of siege artillery. Charlatans in military sci-
ence, both in this country and in Europe, bring this sub-
ject up every fifteen or twenty years as a new invention,
and flaming notices of the improvement, and predictions
of the revolution it is to effect in the art of war, are cir-
culated in the newspapers to "gull" a credulous public;
and after some fifty or one hundred thousand dollars have
been squandered on some court-favorite, the whole matter
ends in the explosion of the " improvement" and probably
the destruction of the " inventor" and perhaps also of his
spectators. Let us be distinctly understood on this sub-
ject. There may be inventions and improvements in the
manufacture of wrought iron, but there is nothing new in
its application to the construction of cannon, for it has
been used for this purpose as long ago as the first inven-
tion of the art.
2. Field Artillery is composed of the smaller guns and
howitzers. In our service this class of cannon includes
282 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the six and twelve-pounder guns, and the twelve and
twenty-four-pounder howitzers. All these are now made
of bronze. This material is more expensive than cast-
iron, but its superior tenacity renders it more useful
where great weight is objectionable. Improvements in
the manufacture of cast iron may render it safe to employ
this metal in the construction of field-pieces. It is also
possible the wrought iron may be forged in masses large
enough, and the cost be so reduced as to bring it into use
for field-pieces. It is here important to combine strength
with lightness, and additional expense may very properly
be incurred to secure this important object.
The projectiles now in use are solid shot, shells, strap-
shot, case or canister-shot, grape-shot, light and fire-balls,
carcasses, grenades, and rockets.
Solid shot are now almost invariably made of cast iron,*
formed in moulds of sand or iron. This projectile is used
under almost every circumstance, whether in the battle-
field or in the attack and defence of places, and is the
only one that is effectual against the stone walls of forts.
Hot shot are used against shipping and wooden structures
of every description. Red-hot balls were first employed
by the king of Poland, in 1575, but, on account of the dif-
ficulty of heating them with rapidity, and the danger of
loading the piece with them, this kind of projectile was
not in general use till a much later period. It was at first
supposed that the expansion of the metal would be so
great, when heated to a red or white heat, as to prevent
the ball from entering the piece ; it is found, however,
that the windage is still sufficient for loading with facility.
These red-hot balls are principally used to fire wooden
buildings, ships, and other combustible matter. They are
therefore much used as a projectile for coast defence, and
* In Mexico, where iron is scarce, copper is used for shot and
shells ; but it is a poor substitute.
ARTILLERY. 883
all fortifications on the seaboard should be provided with
furnaces and grates, arranged so as to heat them with fa-
cility and rapidity.
There are several kinds of hollow-shot and shells, called
bombs, howitzes, grenades, &c. They are made of cast iron,
and usually in a spherical shape,, the cavity being concen-
tric with the exterior surface. The cavity was formerly
made eccentric with the exterior, under the belief that the
heavier side would always strike first. The rotary motion
of the shell during its flight rendered this precaution of
no use. Fire is commimicated to the combustible matter
within the shell by means of -a fuse, which is so regulated
that the explosion shall take place at the desired moment.
Hollow-shot are used with advantage to destroy ordinajy
buildings, ships, earthwork, and thin walls of masonry ;
they, however, are of little avail in breaking the massive
walls of well-constructed forts. Howitzes and grenades
are particularly effective against cavalry and colunms of
infantry, and are much employed on the battle-field ; they
are also much used in the attack and defence of places.
We find that as early as 1486 the Spaniards made use
of a projectile similar to the modem bomb. " They threw
from their engines large globular masses, composed of
certain inflammable ingredients mixed with gunpowder,
which^ scattering long trains of light," says an eye-wit-
ness, " in their passage through the air, filled the behold-
ers with dismay, and descending on the roofs of edi-
fices, frequently occasioned extensive conflagration." In
the siege of Constantinople by Mahomet II., shells
were used, and also mortars of enormous size. In 1572
Valturus proposed to throw, with a kind of mortar,
" globes of copper filled with powder." In 1588, an arti-
ficer of Venloo burned Wachtendeck by throwing bombs
into the place. A similar attempt had just been made at
Berg-op-Zoom. The use of this projectile became quite
284 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
common in France under Louis XIII. Howitzes were
not much used till tlie seventeenth century. They are of
German origin, and the howitzer first bore the name of
haufmitz.
The strap-shot consists of a round ball attached to a
sabot of the same calibre, by means of two strips of tin
passing over the shot at right angles, and fastened to a
third, which is soldered around the sabot. One end of
the sabot is arranged for attaching it to the cartridge, the
other being hollowed ou' to receive the shot. The sup-
posed advantages of this arrangement are, 1st, a diminu-
tion of the windage ; 2d, the gim may be loaded with
greater rapidity ; and, 3d, the cartridge is transported with
greater safety.
The case or canister-shot is prepared by filling a tin can-
ister with grape-shot or musket-balls, and attaching it to
the cartridge by means of a sabot. There being two sizes
of grape-shot, and one of musket-balls, we have three kinds
of canister-shot calculated to reach at difierent distances.
The three sizes of shot are frequently mixed in the same
canister. This projectile is particularly effective against
lines of infantry and cavalry, when the distance is short.
The grape-shot is composed of small balls arranged
round an upright pin attached to a plate of wood or iron.
The concave cast-iron plate is preferable, as it increases
the range of the shot. The balls are covered with can-
vass, and thoroughly confined by a quilting of strong twine.
This shot is used for the same purposes as the canister.
Light a,ni fire-balls axe formed of an oval case of sacking,
filled with combustible matter, and attached to a culot of
cast-iron. The whole is covered with a net of spun-yarn.
Light-balls are used to light up our own works, and are
not armed ; fire-balls being employed to light up the works
or approaches of an enemy, it is necessary to arm them
with pistol-barrels, in order to prevent any one from extin-
ARTILLERY. 285
guishing them. When made of very combustible mate-
rials, and used for setting fire to wooden structures, they
are denominated incendiary halls.
Carcasses are employed for the same purpose as incen-
diary balls ; they are of two kinds : 1st, the shell-carcass ;
and, 2d, the ribbed-carcass. The first is composed of a
spherical shell, cast with five fuse-holes, one being at the
top, and the other four in a plane perpendicular to this and
at right angles with each other ; the shell is filled with
matter highly combustible. The second is formed of iron
ribs connected by iron straps, and attached at the ends to
culota of the same material, the whole being filled with
combustible composition. This is more expensive than
the shell carcass, and cannot be fired with as great accu-
racy ; it is now seldom used. Carcasses may be armed
in the same manner as fire-balls.
Smoke and suffocating balls are used to drive an enemy
from galleries and mines. They are thrown by hand.
The personnel of the French artillery was for a long
time retained, together with the engineers, under the gen-
eral direction of the " Grand Master of Cross-bows."
In 1420 the master-general of artillery was made inde-
pendent of the grand-master of cross-bows ; but previous
to the reign of Louis XIV., the artillery troops had no or-
ganization as a separate corps. In 1668 six companies
of canoniers were created, and soon after two companies
of bombardiers. In IBQSvthe first regiment of fusiliers
was changed into a royal regiment of artillery, and both
the canoniers and bombardiers were eventually incorpo-
rated with it. The staflT of artillery, towards the close
of this reign, was composed of one grand-master, sixty
lieutenants, sixty commissaries, and eighty officiers-poin-
teurs. In 1721 the artillery was divided into five battal-
ions and stationed at Metz, Strasbourg, Grenoble, Per-
pignan, and La Ffere, where they established schools of
286 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
theory and practice. In 1756 the artillery was organized
into seven regiments, each regiment having its own sepa-
rate school. This organization continued without any
remarkable change till the Revolution.
During the earlier campaigns of the French Revolu-
tion it is impossible to trace out the changes that took
place in army organization, every thing was then so
irregular and confused, the troops of different arms being
frequently united together. In the campaign of 1792
there were some six or seven regiments of foot artillery,
and ten companies of horse. This arm was greatly in-
creased during the subsequent campaigns, and its organ-
ization was completely remodelled by Napoleon on his
elevation to the head of the government. The personnel
of the artillery was then composed of a general staff,
nine regiments of foot and six of horse. In 1815 it was
reduced to eight regiments of foot and four of horse.
The personnel of artillery in modern army organization
is divided into four classes : the staff, guards, artificers,
and troops.
I. The Staff, or Ordnance, as it is called in our service,
is charged with the construction of all the materials of
artillery, and the collection of powder and military stores.
As the lives of persons using these materials, and, in a
considerable degree, the success of war, depend upon the
nature and quality of the stores thus manufactured and
collected, it is obvious that the members of this branch
of the artillery service should possess high and peculiar
qualifications. In the French army the artillery staff is
composed of two hundred and eighty-three officers of dif-
ferent grades : also twenty-four officers of the general
staff are attached to this service. In our army the ord-
nance is composed of twenty-eight officers of different grades .
II. Artillery-guards. — These in our service are divided
into two classes : 1st. Military Store-keepers. 2d. Ord-
AKTILLERY. 287
nance Sergeants. Both are alike charged with the care
and preservation of the artillery property and stores at
the several garrisons, arsenals, and magazines. In our
army we have fifty-eight of these guards, viz : fifteen
commissioned military store-keepers, and forty-three ord-
nance sergeants. We seldom have more than this num-
ber of permanent posts ; each one can therefore be sup-
plied with an artillery guard for the care of the artillery
stores. In the French service there are three hundred
and fifteen of these artillery guards ; they are divided
into three classes.
III. Artificers. — This class of men are employed in
the construction and repairs of military materials. In
most of our arsenals and armories it is thought to be
best to employ unenlisted workmen, by the piece or con-
tract. Nevertheless a limited nximber of enlisted men of
this description are found to be both useful and necessary.
We have three hundred and thirty of these in our army,
viz : two hundred and fifty enlisted " ordnance men," and
eighty " artificers'' attached to the regiments. In the
French army they have for the service of the arsenals
and establishments, one hundred and forty-nine " ouv-
riers," and twelve " artificers ;" there are also three hun-
dred and sixty " ouvriers" and seventeen " armuriers"
attached to the corps of artillery, making in all five hun-
dred and thirty-eight.
IV. Artillery Troops. — Artillery, as an arm of service,
is divided in the same manner as its materiel ; the field-
artillery being intended for field service, and the garrison
or sieg-e-artillery, for the attack and defence of places.
The troops of the artillery corps of a modern army usu-
ally do duty either in the field, or in sieges, or garrison,
as occasion may require. When employed in the service
of a campaign, artillery is usually divided into two class-
es : 1st. Foot Artillery ; and 3d. i?br.se Artillery.
288 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
In the early history of artillery, as has already been
shown, but few pieces were ever brought upon the battle-
field. Charles VIII. crossed the Alps with a pretty large
train ; but a part of these were hand-guns, and but very
few of the larger pieces were ever brought into battle ;
indeed, it was then thought that this arm would be of little
use except in sieges. At the battle of Gravelines the
army of Philip II. had only seventeen pieces of artillery ;
and at the battle of Ivry the French had only four pieces
of cannon, and two culverins : the army of the League
had also only four pieces. At the battle of Moncontour
the opposing armies had but eight pieces each.
Gustavus Adolphus of Sweden not only improved the
character of artillery, but also gave to it great develop-
ment as an arm of service. At the battle of Br6etenfield
he had one hundred pieces of artillery, great and small,
and at the camp of Nuremberg he numbered about three
hundred. This king also made a more skilful use of his
cannon by uniting them more in mass than had been done
by his predecessors ; his system was nevertheless very
imperfect. In the disposition of this arm on the field of
battle, a vast improvement was made by Conde, Turenne,
and Prince Eugene of Savoy. Frederick the Great
also made great use of this arm, and was the first to
introduce horse artillery. This mode of using field-
pieces has peculiar properties which in many circum-
stances render it an invaluable arm. The promptness and
rapidity of its movements enable it to act with other troops
without embarrassing them. The French soon introduced
into their army the improvements made by the king of
Prussia, and in 1763 the celebrated Gribeauval appeared.
He improved the form of the cannon and greatly dimin-
ished the weight of field artillery, giving it an organ-
ization which has been but slightly changed since his
time.
ARTILLERY. 289
The successive improvements in artillery have for a
long time constituted a prominent feature in vi^ar. The
power of this arm to throw projectiles to a great distance,
and to overturn and destroy opposing obstacles, renders it
a necessary arm on the battle-field, and a strong barrier
and safeguard of states. It is an essential element in all
army organization.
In our army we have four regiments of artillery, form-
ing the basis of forty batteries. In the French service
there are fourteen regiments, forming the basis of two
hundred and six field batteries.
The term battery, when applied to artillery as an arm
of service, refers to a permanent organization of a certain
number of cannon, with the men and other accessaries re-
quired to serve them. This is the unit of force in this
arm. The regimental organization is a mere nominal ar-
rangement, for in actual service artillery acts by batteries,
and never by regiments. Its strength is therefore invaria-
bly estimated by the number of its batteries.
A battery is ordinarily composed of six pieces, two of
them being howitzers. The lighter batteries would, in
our service, be formed of six-pounder gims and twelve-
pounder howitzers ; and the heavier of twelve-pounder
guns and twenty-four-pounder howitzers. These heavy
batteries would usually form the reserve. Each piece be-
ing attended by its caisson, this formation would give
twelve carriages to each battery, six for the guns and six
for the caissons. The extra caissons form a part of the
reserve, and move with the train. In some foreign ser-
vices a battery is composed of eight pieces with their
caissons.
This arm admits of three formations — in column, in battle,
and in battery. In column it ordinarily moves by sections
of two pieces, each piece being followed or preceded by
its caisson. Columns of half-batteries are sometimes
25
290 MILITARY ART AND SCIKNCE.
formed, and also columns of single pieces ; but the latter
ought never to be employed except in cases of necessity,
in passing a narrow defile, and at a distance from the
enemy.
In order of battle, the pieces are drawn up in line, their
caissons forming a second line, at the distance of a few
paces.
When in order of battery, the pieces are formed in the
sp.me way as for battle, except that the guns are directed
towards the enemy and prepared for firing.
The movements and manoeuvres of foot artillery corre-
spond with those of infantry, and of mounted artillery with
those of cavalry, a battery being regarded as a battalion or
squadron, of which the pieces form the platoons. Mounted
batteries can seldom move with "greater rapidity than the
trot, except in cases of emergency, and even then the
gallop can be kept up only for a very short time ; but this
is of no great importance, as the batteries never accom-
pany cavalry in the charge.
The French and German writers discuss artillery as
employed in battle, under two distinct heads — 1st, as an
arm of preparation, and 2d, as an arm of succor.
I. As an arm of preparation it serves, 1st, to protect the
deploying of the other troops ; 2d, to disorganize the ene-
my's masses, and to facilitate the action of infantry and
cavalry, by weakening the intended points of attack ; 3d,
to force an enemy to evacuate a position by overthrowing
obstacles with which he has covered himself; 4th, to
keep up the action till the other troops can be prepared to
strike the decisive blow.
The force of this arm depends upon the rapidity and
accuracy of its fire ; rash valor is therefore far less desi-
rable in artillery than skill, patience, and cool courage.
Artillery always acts at a distance, and in mass ; single
pieces are seldom employed, except to cover reconnoitring
ARTILLERY. 291
parties, or to sustain the light infantry in a skirmish.
Mounted batteries sometimes approach within two or
three hundred yards of the enemy's infantry ; but this is
only done with a strong support of other troops, and to
prepare the way for a charge of cavalry. The batteries
do not accompany the charge, but they should always
follow up and complete the success ; mounted batteries
are particularly useful in pursuit. If Murat, in 1812, had
accompanied his attacks upon NeveroiFskoi's retreating
columns of sixty thousand infantry by two or three bat-
teries of mounted artillery, the whole column must have
been captured or destroyed.
Artillery, on the field of battle, is very liable to allow
its fire to be drawn, and its projectiles wasted, while the
enemy is at too great a distance to be reached. It is a
very common thing in a battle, to employ two or three
pieces of heavy calibre at the beginning of the fight, in
order to provoke the opposing batteries to open their fire
before the proper time. The wsfste of material is not the
only loss attending this error ; the troops are fatigued and
disheartened, while the courage and confidence of their
opponents are always revived by a weak and inaccurate
fire. To avoid such an error the commanding officer of a
battery of artillery should be perfectly familiar with the
effective ranges of his pieces, and accustomed to form a
correct estimate of distances. For this purpose the eye
should be frequently practised in time of peace in esti-
mating the ranges for difierent calibres.
The effective range of a 12-pounder field-piece
is about 1000 yds.
« " " 6 " " 800 "
« " " 24 " howitzer, 600 «
« " " 12 " " 500 "
" " " grape and case shot is
from 300 to 500 «
292 MILITAKY ART AND SCIENCE.
Even at these distances the aim is usually so inaccurate,
that a large portion of the projectiles are lost. In the at-
tack on Spires, a whole column of artillery expended its
fire while at a distance of 900 yards from the enemy, who,
oif course, received little or no injury. In firing from for-
tifications, the aim is far more accurate, and the artillery
may therefore be employed to advantage as soon as the
enemy comes within the longest range.
II. As an arm of succor, the artillery serves, 1st, to give
impulsive force to the attacking columns ; 2d, to assist in
arresting, or at least in retarding, the offensive movements
of an enemy ; 3d, to protect the avenues of approach, and
to defend obstacles that cover a position ; and, 4th, to
cover a retrograde movement.
Mounted artillery is, like cavalry, much the most effec-
tive in attack ; but batteries of foot are better calculated
for defence. The cannoniers are so armed as to be capa-
ble of defending their pieces to the last extremity ; they
therefore cannot be easily captured by opposing columns
of infantry. " As to pretending to rush upon the guns,"
says Napoleon, " and carry them by the bayonet, or to
pick off the gunners by musketry, these are chimerical
ideas. Such things do sometimes happen ; but have we
not examples of still more extraordinary captures by a
coup de main 1 As a general rule, there is no infantry, how-
ever intrepid it may be, that can, without artillery, march
with impunity the distance of five or six hundred toises,
against two well-placed batteries (16 pieces) of cannon,
served by good gunners ; before they could pass over two-
thirds of the way, the men would be killed, wounded, or
dispersed. * * * * A good infantry forms, no doubt, the
sinews of an army ; but if it were required to fight for a
long time against a very superior artillery, its good quality
would be exhausted, and its efiiciency destroyed. In the
first campaigns of the wars of the Revolution, what France
ARTILLERY. 293
had in the greatest perfection was artillery ; we know not
a single instance in which twenty pieces of cannon, judi-
ciously placed, and in battery, were ever carried by the bay-
onet. In the affair at Valmy, at the battles of Jemmapes,
Nordlingen, and Fleurus, the French had an artillery su-
perior to that of the enemy, although they had often only
two guns to one thousand men ; but that was because their
armies were very numerous. It may happen that a gen-
eral, more skilful in manoeuvring, more expert than his ad-
versary, and commanding a better infantry, may obtain
successes during a part of a campaign, although his ar-
tillery may be far inferior to that of his opponent ; but on
the critical day of a general engagement, his inferiority in
point of metal will be severely felt."
History furnishes us numerous examples of the use of
artillery in protecting avenues of approach : — such as the
defile of Kbesen at the battle of Auerstedt ; the avenues
between the redoubts of Pultowa, &c., &c.
When an army is forced to retreat, it covers its rear by
that portion of its cavalry and mounted artillery which has
suffered least during the battle. By placing the squadrons
of horse and the light batteries in echelon, the retiring
column may be well protected. The artillery, by using
the prolonge, may also continue its retreat while in bat-
tery and firing. It was in this way that at the battle of
Albufera, in 1811, the French artillery on the left wing
held in check the right and centre of the Anglo-Spaniards
till the army effected its retreat ; the artillery then retired
in echelons, by batteries and fractions of batteries, under
the protection of the cavalry.
We have already discussed, under the general head of
tactics, the position and use of artillery on the battle-field
a few additional remarks must suffice.
As a general rule, batteries should be placed in positions
from which they can employ their fire to advantage, and
294 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
also be free to move in any direction that the progress of
the battle may require. Advantage should always be
taken of natural or artificial obstacles, such as hedges,
clumps of trees, logs, mounds of earth, &c., to cover and
conceal the guns till the moment they open their fire. El-
evated positions are, contrary to the common opinion, gen-
erally unfavorable, for artillery cannot fire to advantage at
any considerable angle of depression. The slopes in front
should be of considerable length, otherwise the balls would
do very little execution upon that portion of the column of
attack which occupied the valley. The ground should
also be smooth, for if rough the balls will either bury
themselves in the earth, or ricochet at a high angle of de-
flection, thus destroying a considerable part of the effect
of the fire. The counterforts or spurs of hills are favora-
ble for artillery, as they enable it to see, with an enfilading
fire, the slopes of the principal range. Batteries should
seldom be placed so as to fire over other troops, for they
will not only b6 intimidated by this fire, but also exposed
to the opposing fire of the enemy's artillery. A large num-
ber of pieces should never be crowded into the same place,
but an interval should be left between the guns of forty or
fifty feet, according to the locality. The most favorable
position for this arm in ordinary ground, is in the intervals
between the iregiments or brigades of the line, and far
enough in advance of this line not to draw upon the other
troops the fire of the enemy's artillery. The flanks of the
line are also favorable for the action of this arm.
Sometimes artillery has been employed to form a part
of the line of battle ; but such instances are exceptions,
and can never be comprised in general rules. Whenever
this disposition has been made, it has resulted from the
defective character of the other arms, or from some pecu-
liar circumstance in the battle which enabled a bold and
skilful commander to deviate from the ordinary rules of
ARTILLERY. 295
tactics. Such was the case with Napoleon at Wagram.
In Saxony, in 1813, he was several times obliged to sub-
stitute his artillery to supply the want of other arms.
In the defence and attack of field-works, and in the
passage of rivers, artillery plays an important and indis-
pensable part ; but it here becomes an auxiliary to the dis-
positions of the engineers, or at least acts in concert with
that arm.
The troops of artillery, in all well-regulated army or-
ganizations, should equal about two-thirds of the cavalry,
or one-seventh of the infantry.*
* To qualify himself for tlie duties connected with his arm of ser-
vice, the artillery officer must make himself thoroughly acquainted
with —
The Instruction for United States Field Artillery, horse and foot ;
Capt. Anderson's Instruction for Garrison Artillery;
Kinsley's Notes on Pyrotechny ;
Knowlton's Notes on Gunpowder, &c. ; and
The writings of Thiroux and Piobert on theoretical and practical
instruction, and the writings of Jomini, Decker, and Okouuefi', on the
use of this arm on the field of battle.
The following list of books of reference may be of use to those who
wish to make themselves perfectly familiar with all the branches of
artillery.
Histoire general de I'artillerie. Brunet.
L'artillerie d cheval dans les combats de cavalerie. Fsir un officier
de I'aurtillerie Prnssienne.
Considerations et experiences sar le tir des obus a bailee, Bor-
mann.
Essai sur les obnsiers. Dusaert.
Easai sur Varganisation de l'artillerie. Le Bourg.
Traite sur I'artillerie, (traduit de I'Allomand.) Rouvroy.
Bombardier Francois. B^lidor.
Memoires d'artillerie. St. R^my.
Easai sur I'usage de I'artillerie dans la guerre de campagne et
celle de siige. Dupuget
Memoires sur les nouveaux systimes d'artillerie. St. Aubin.
Treatise on Artillery. Miiller.
296 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Artificial Fire-Works. Jones.
Table de tir Us canons et ohusiers. Lombard.
On Gunpowder. Antoni.
Recherches sur I'artillerie en general. Texier de Norbee.
Description de I'art defahriquer lea canons. Monge.
Precedes de la fabrication des armes blanches. Vandeimonde.
Manuel de I'artilleur. Durtubie.
Traite du mouvement des projectiles. Lombard.
Ti-eatise on Artillery. Soheel. (Translated from the Genneiu.)
Traite pratique desfeux d^ artifice. Morel.
Manuel dji canonnier marin. Comibert.
New Principles of Chmnery. Robins.
Memoires sur la fabrication des armes portatives. Cotty.
Recherches sur la poudre. Cossigny.
Supplement. Cossigny.
Fabrication de la poudre. Renaud.
American Artillerist's Companion. Toussard.
Tables des portees des canons et canonades de la marine. Cor-
nibert.
Traite d'artifices de guerre. Bigot
Tarite elementaire de la fabrication des bouches dfeu. Dstrtein.
Traite de I'art de fabriquer la poudre a canon. Bottle et Riffault.
L'art du salpetrier. Bottle et Rifiault.
Dictionary of Artillery. Hoyer. (German.)
New Experiments on Gunnery. Hutton — (Hutton's Tracts.)
Des bois propres au service des Arsenaux. Herbin de Halles.
Instruction sur le service de I'artillerie. Hulot.
MantBumres deforce. Bigot.
Balistique. Obenheim.
Treatise on Artillery. German. Schamhorst. (Translated into
French, 1840.)
Essai sur Part de pointer. Foumet.
Reflexions sur la fabrication des bouches dfeu. LamartiUitoe.
Memoire sur la planchette du canonnier. Obenheim.
Aide-Memoire. Gassendi.
Observations on the use of Artillery at the sieges of Badajos, St
Sebastian, ^c.
Treatise on Artillery. Lallemand.
Elemens de pyrotechnic. Ruggieri.
Nouvelle force maritime. Paixhans.
Dictionnaire d'artillerie. Cotty.
ARTILLERY. 297
RechercheS balistiques. Coste.
Poudres fulminantes. Vergnaud.
Manuel de la metallurgie dufer. Culman.
Pyrotechnie militaire, (traduit de I'Allemaud, par R. de Peretsdoiff.)
Journal des Sciences Militaires.
Pyrotechny. Cutbush.
Traite elementaire d?artillerie. Decker.
Fusees de guerre. Montgery.
Documens sur la matiere a canons. Herv€.
Observations sur le nouveau systems d'artillerie. Allix.
Systems ^artillerie de campagne. Allix.
Pocket Gunner. Adye.
On the Rocket System. Congreve
Essai sur Vart desfontes. Serres
Receuil de Memoires sur la poudre a canon. Proust.
Memorial de I'artilleur marin. Michel.
Observations sur le nouveau systems de I'artillerie. Poumet.
Memorial d'artillerie*
British Gunner. Spearman.
Regies de pointage a hord des vaisseaux. Montgery.
Manuel dw maitre de forges. Landrin.
Naval Chinnery. Douglass.
Metallurgie da fer (traduit de I'AUemand, par Culman.) Kar-
steu.
iide-Memoire d I'usage des officers d'artillerie. (Strasbourg.)
Traite de Vorganisation et de la tactique de I'artillerie, (traduit de
I'AUemand par Peretsdorff.) Grewenitz.
Supplement au dictionnaire d'artillerie. Cotty.
Memoir on Gunpowder. Braddock.
Manuel de I'armurier. Paulin-Desormeaux.
Journal des armes speciales.
Cours sur le service desofficiers dans les fonderies. Serres.
Experiences sur la fabrication et la duree des houches a feu en
fer et bronze, (traduit de I'AUemand par PeretsdoriE) Meyer.
Applications du fer aux constructians de I'artillerie. Thierry.
Aide-Memoire Hart militaire. Lebas.
Memorial d Vusage de I'armee Beige.
Instructions and Regulations for the service and management of
heavy ordnance in the British service.
Experiences sur les principes du tir, faites k Metz, en 1834.
Traite d'artillerie theorique et pratique. Fiobert.
298 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Aide-Metrwire a I'usage des officios d'artillerie, (avec approbation
da oomit^ d'artillerie.)
Manuel d'artillerie d I'nsage des officiers de la Republique Hel-
vetique. Bonaparte, (Napoleon Louis.)
Experiences comparatives entre des bouches a feu en fonte defer,
^origins Franfaise, Anglaise et Sutdoise, faites h, Gavres, en 1836.
Experiences faites a Brest en 1831, sur les canons. Faixhans.
Essai sur Forganisation de I'artillerie. Le Bourg.
Experiences sur des projectiles creux, faites en 1829> '30, '31.
Instruction pratique sur Vemploi des projectiles, (traduit de I'AlIe-
mand par Peretsdorff.) Decker.
Effects of heavy ordnance as applied to ships of war. Simmons.
Experiences sur lespoudres de guerre, faites b, Esquerdes, en 1832,
'33, '34, and '35. Maguin.
Gours d'artillerie d I'usage des sous-officiera. De Cr^py.
Instruction thiorique et pratique d'artillerie, k I'usage des ^Ifevea
de St. Cyr. Tliiroux.
Cours sur le service des officiers d'artillerie dans les forges.
Manuel historique de la technologic des armes a feu, (traduit de
I'AUemand par M. Rieffel.) Meyer.
Formules relatives aux effets du tir sur affitt. Foisson.
Manuel de Vartif-cer. Vergnaud.
Etat actuel de I'artillerie de campagne de toutes les puissances
de I'Ewrope, (traduit par Mazd ; Ire partle, Artillerie Anglaise.) Ja-
cobi. (Six other parts have been published in German, containmg de-
scriptions of the French, Belgieui, Hessian, Wirtemburg, Nassau, and
Swedish systems.)
Introduction a Vetude de I'artillerie. Madelaine.
Cours sur le service des officiers d'artillerie dans les fonderies.
Description de la fabrication des botlches a feu a la fonderie royale
de Liege. Huguenm.
Poudre a canon. Timmerhans.
Procidea de fabrication dans les forges, (extrait du cours sur le ser-
vice des officiers dans les forges.)
Renseignements sur le materiel de I'artillerie navale de la Grande
Bretagne. Zeni et des Hays.
Thiorie des affAts et des voitures de I'artillerie. Migout et Bergery.
Artillerist's Manual. GrifBth.
Handbuch fur die K. K.Oesterreichische Artillerie Offiziere, (man-
ual for the Austrian artillery officers.)
Sammlung von SteindrucJezeichnungen der Preussischen Artillerie,
ARTILLERY. 299
mit Erlauterungen, (collection of plates of the Prussiau artillery, with
explanatory text.)
Histoire dea fusees de guerre.
Ordnance Manual, for the use of tho officers of the United States
Army.
Experiments on Gunpowder. Capt. Mordecai.
Pyrotechny, for the use of the Cadets at the United States Military
Academy. Kinsley.
Notes on Gunpowdei , Percussion Powder, Cannon, and Projec-
tiles. Lt. Knowlton.
300 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER Xn.
ARMY ORGANIZATION ENGINEERS.
Engineers. — The term engineer is derived from the un-
classical Latin word ingenium, which was applied both to
a machine and the mind or skill of the person who devised
or constructed it.
It was Philip Augustus, say the French writers, who
first introduced engineers (engigneufs, or engignours, as
they were called) into France, and restored the art of
sieges. The engineers of that age were seldom charged
with the construction of works of military defence, but,
like Archimedes at Syracuse, and Longinus at Palmyra,
they directed their attention principally to devising imple-
ments of war and the most effective manner of using them.
Engines of war were at that time divided between the en-
gigneurs and the artilUers, the former being charged with
the heavier machines, and the latter with the smaller wea-
pons used for throwing projectiles. After the invention
of gunpowder, the old battering-rams, cranes, hehpoles,
&c., disappeared, and with them the engigneurs, or mas-
ters of engines. The new inventions were united with
the few old projectile machines that remained in the artil-
lery, and the engineers were for a time left almost with-
out employment. The revival of the art of fortification
was very slow, and the modem system scarcely began to
be developed till near the sixteenth century.
We must omit for the present giving even an outline of
ENGINEERS. 301
the history of military engineering, and pass to the troops
of this arm, as constituting an essential element of an
army organization. The subject of fortification, and the
history of its various changes, will be examined in the
next chapter.
The engineers, in modem army organization, constitute
the fourth arm of service, as, compared with artillery,
their relative numbers are about as two to three. They
are divided in the same manner as the artillery, viz. : —
1st, the staff; 2d, guards, or fort-keepers ; 3d, artificers ;
and 4th, the troops.
I. The officers constituting the staff of this corps are
charged in time of peace with planning, constructing, and
repairing all fortifications and other defensive works ; the
construction and preparation of all military materials, and
stores connected with this arm ; and (in our service)
with the disbursements of money connected with these
operations : in time of war they are charged with the at-
tack and defence of military works, the .laying out and
construction of field defences, redoubts, intrenchments,
roads, &c. ; in the attack they form a part of the van-
guard, to remove obstructions ; and in retreat they form a
part of the rear-guard, to erect obstacles, destroy roads,
bridges, &c., so as to retard an enemy's pursuit.
From the important character of these duties as con-
nected with the means essential to a national defence, and
the vast amount of money expended in these operations,
it is evident that a high order of acquirements should be
deemed necessary to qualify one to perform the duties of
a military engineer. This officer requires a knowledge
of chemistry, to guide his choice of materials for mortars,
cements, and mastics ; of mineralogy and geology, for
selecting stone ; of botany, for timber and the means of
preventing its decay ; of mathematics, in laying out his
work and calculating the thickness and stability of his
302 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
walls, embankments, &c. ; of mechanical philosophy, in
constructing his machinery ; of military engineering, in
his plans of fortifications ; and of all the higher branches
of military science, in selecting positions for these works,
such that they shall have the proper relations to the means
of national defence, and to the grand operations of armies
in the field. The avenues to appointment to this corps
are guarded, in most European armies, with special care,
to prevent the influence' of money, politics, or family con-
nections ; and in our own army it is now specified by law
of Congress, that the vacancies shall be filled only from the
most distinguished graduates of the military academy.
Formerly our service suffered most severely from the em-
ployment of incompetent persons, introduced through
political influence from civil life, and foreign charlatans,
the refuse of European armies. Many of our earlier
military works (as will be mentioned hereafter) were
modelled upon systems for a long time discarded by the
profession in Europe, and-*ven some of those which have
been constructed within the last thirty years are made of
such wretched materials and workmanship that they are
already crumbling into ruins. While the existing laws
and regulations seem well calculated to prevent the recur-
rence of similar abuses and errors, it nevertheless can be
shown that the organization of this arm of our service re-
quires modifications and extensions to give it the requisite
degree of efficiency, and to economize the public expen-
ditures.
The wars of Louis XIV. first led to a regular military or-
ganization, and a regular system of defence. In these wars
the engineers received great development, and have ever
since occupied a prominent position as parts of an army or-
ganization. We therefore find in all the great sieges and
battles of this era a large and continually increasing number
of engineers and engineer troops, this force being grad-
ENGINEERS. 303
ually augmented as the true principles of war became
better understood, and as the wants of the service required.
Even in the earliest of these battles we find the engineers
taking a prominent and distinguished part. In the war
of 1688, twenty-four engineers were killed and wounded
at the siege of Philipsbourg, eighteen at Namur, eight at
Huy, ten at Charleroi, eight at Ath, thirty at Barcelona,
&c. Such losses were good proofs of the usefulness of
these officers, and before this war was closed, their num-
ber was increased to six hundred; and in 1706 the army
contained eight brigades of engineers and four companies
of miners.
The engineer corps being partially disbanded in the early
part of the French Revolution, great difficulty was experi-
enced in reorganizing it and in finding competent men to
supply the places of those who had been driven into exile or
sacrificed during the reign of terror. Energy and activity,
combined with republican zeal, could supply the place of
skill in the other arms, but the science of the engineer
could not be acquired in a day.
In 1799, the staflf of the engineer corps consisted of
four hundred and forty-nine officers, without including the
general officers, conmianding departments, or those con-
nected with the engineer troops. The same organization
was continued in 1804. The engineer staff of the French
army now numbers four hundred and thirty-two officers.
We have in our service forty-three engineer officers, for
staff duty, who are now engaged in the construction and
repairs of some sixty or seventy fortifications, and other
works of a civil an'd military character.
H. Engineer Guards, or Fort-Keepers, are a class of
men charged with the general care of forts, and all public
property deposited in the several engineer (ilpots and
garrisons, and in the public works during their construction;
There are five hundred and fifty of these " gardes du
304 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Genie" in the French army, who rank next the sub-lieuten-
ants of engineers, and are assimilated with the sub-lieu-
tenants of infantry in the hospitals, marches, &c. In our
service we have no engineer guards or fort-keepers.
This defect in our organization has been the cause of
serious inconvenience, and the consequent waste of public
property. The expense of hiring civil agents for this
purpose has more than trebled the cost of supporting a
suitable number of non-commissioned guards to maintain
the good order and efficiency of our forts, in the absence
of engineer officers, and to preserve and keep in repair
the military implements and stores connected with this
department of the army. It has already been shown that
we have fifty-eight of these guards for the artillery service,
and it really seems somewhat singular that the engineers,
with a much greater amount of public property in their
charge, are allowed no assistants of this kind.
III. Engineer artificers are a class of men employed in
the practical operations of constructing forts and oth^r
military defences, and in making and repairing all the im-
plements used by the engineer troops in the operations of
sapping and mining, in crossing rivers, in constructing
field-defences, and in the attack and defence of field-
works.
As very few new fortifications are now required in
France, the services of engineer artificers are less neces-
sary and important than in our service, where large sums
of money are annually expended upon military defences.
There are, however, in the French army a corps of en-
gineer artificers, consisting of eight officers and a cadre of
fifty-four non-commissioned officers, with a variable num-
ber of privates, organized into two companies. But in
our army we have no regular engineer artificers ! In our
»rtillery service we have three hundred and thirty enlist-
ed artillery artificers. If these are useful and necessary
ENGINEERS. 305
to the artillery service, which no one doubts, for still
stronger reasons would it be advantageous to the public
service to employ at least an equal number of enlisted en-
gineer artificers on our fortifications ; for the annual ex-
penditure of public money is here much greater than in
the corresponding branch of the artillery service.
IV. Engineer troops are divided into three classes —
1st, sappers and pioneers ; 2d, miners; and 3d, ponioniers.
In the French army of 1799, there were four battalions of
sappers, consisting of 120 oiBcers and 7,092 men. In 1 804,
Napoleon organized five battalions of these troops, consist-
ing of 165 officers and 8,865 men. Even this number was
found insufficient in his campaigns in Germany and Spain,
and Jie was obliged to organize an additional number of -
sappers from the Italian and French auxiliaries. The
pioneers were then partly attached to other branches of
the service. .There is, at present, in the French army a
considerable number of sappers or pioneers detached for
the service of the infantry regiments, three companies of
sapeurs-conducteurs, and forty-two companies of sapeurs.
In the French army of 1799, there were six companies
of miners, consisting of 24 officers and 576 men. In 1804,
Napoleon increased these troops to nine companies, con-
taining 36 officers and 864 men. The present French
peace establishment contains six companies of miners,
organized much the same as under Napoleon. In the
French army of 1799 there- were two regiments of pon-
toniers, of 38 officers and 960 men. But this number was
found too small in the remaining campaigns, and the de-
ficiency was temporarily supplied by organizing sailors
for these duties. In the present French army organiza-
tion, there are eleven companies of pontoniers, forming a
regiment of sixty-three officers.
We have in our service no sappers, miners, or pontoniers,
and, in case of war, would be found without the means of
306 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
executing any military -works, or performing any military
operation which would require engineer troops.
In the preliminary stages of army organization under
Louis XIV., infantry troops were detailed as sappers, and
instructed in these duties by the engineers. This irregu-
larity of service soon caused difficulties and losses, and
the evils springing from it were so great, that Vauban ur-
ged the propriety of a separate organization. In 1670
he officially recommended to the king to establish a regi-
ment of twelve hundred sappers and ouvriers, and in a sub-
sequent report on the value of these troops, used the fol-
lowing language : " They would be useful in peace as
well as in war, and would be the means of saving much in
all fortifications where they should be employed. In fact,
I have not the least doubt that they would save annually
to the king much more than their pay. I assert all I have
said on this subject with as much confidence as if I had
seen the result ; and I can, with the same certainty, add,
that this small troop will be the means of saving large
numbers of good engineers and brave officers and soldiers,
from the stem necessity to which we are reduced of ex-
posing, almost always, the laborers and those who support
them ; which necessity would not arise had we at com-
mand a sufficient number of this kind of workmen well in-
structed. To such a degree have I felt the necessity of
sappers, at every siege at which I have been present, that
I have always had reason to repent of not having more
urgently solicited the creation of this company."
Such are the views of the greatest of military engi-
neers, a man who fought one hundred and forty battles,
conducted fifty-eight sieges, and built or repaired three
hundred fortifications. His anticipations of the useful-
ness of engineer troops were fully realized, and they have
ever since received the most careful attention, and now
{orm, as has just been shown, one of the most important
ENGSINEERS. 307
and efficient arms in the French service. The fortifi-
cations constructed by the engineers, as organized by
Vauban, have ever since constituted one of the principal
elements of the French military power.
In the wars of Napoleon there are innumerable instan-
ces in illustration of the delays and disasters attending the
operations of armies not supplied with engineer troops ;
and, on the other hand, the advantages resulting from their
services when properly organized and instructed. We
have already pointed out the influence which the fortifica-
tions in the hands of the French exerted on the results of
these wars, and the fatal consequences to the Allies of
neglecting these works of national defence. Every stu
dent of military history will immediately call to mind the
influence of Savona, Coni, Mondovi, Ceva, Govi, Ales-
sandria, Tortona, Pizzighitone, Peschiera, Mantua, Palma-
Nuova, Osopo, Klagenfurth, &c., in the campaigns of
1796-7; of Genoa, -Fort Bard, the fortifications of the
Var, Ulm, Ingoldstadt, &c., in 1800 ; of Milan, Turin,
Mantua, Roco d'Aufo, Genoa, Alessandria, &c.,in 1805;
the importance of Kehl, Cassel, Wesel, &c., to the French
in 1806, and the fatal consequences to the Prussians in
that campaign, of their total and culpable neglect of their
own fortifications.
All military historians speak of the influence of fortifi-
cations in the Peninsular campaigns: those which had
been given up to Napoleon previous to the opening of
hostilities, contributed very much to the success of his
arms, while those which were retained ^by Spain and her
allies, contributed in an equal degree to hamper and em-
barrass his operations. Some of these, like Saragossa
and Tarragona, with their broken walls and defective ar-
maments, kept the enemy in check some sixty days each,
and did much to weaken the French power in the Penin-
sula.
308 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Temporary or field-fortifications also had an important
influence here. The lines of Torres- Vedias, the field-
works of Ronda, the intrenched camps of the Pyrenees,
Bayonne, Toulouse, &c., are examples under this head.
In fact, field-works played a most important part in all of
Napoleon's wars. We might mention the redoubt of Mon-
tenotte, the intrenchments at Milesimo, the batteries of
Lobau, the field-defences of Hougomont, La Haye-Sainte,
and Papelotte at Waterloo, and numerous other cases
equally striking. Just before the battle of Waterloo, Wel-
lington employed some eighteen thousand peasants and
two thousand horses, under the direction of British of-
ficers of engineers. In speaking of these defences, Colo-
nel Pasley says : " It may be easily conceived that to
have directed such a great body of workmen to proper ad-
vantage, by means of a few ofiicers of engineers, would
have been impossible, but for the system adopted of sub-
dividing the various works among the non-commissioned
officers and privates of the engineer troops, each of whom
was made responsible for laying out the details of his own
portion, and for the direction of a party of from twenty to
one hundred men, or even more, according to circimi-
stances.''
But to return to the Peninsular war. These campaigns
exhibit in strong colors the advantages derived, on the one
side, from a well-organized engineer corps, and the losses,
delays, and defects suffered on the other, until the defects
of the organization were remedied. Napoleon entered
Spain with a well-appointed army, and soon, through
strategy and well-directed force, gained possession of the
important fortresses of the Peninsula ; seizing in this
way the strategic routes and important geographical points,
he was enabled to retain possession of the country for
eight years, in spite of the numerous forces arrayed against
him, the absence of himself and his best generals in Ger-
ENGINEERS. 309
many, and the great inefficiency of Joseph and of many of his
generals. These fortifications were old, and of strength
inferior to modem works of defence, but it required years
and the expenditure of millions in blood and treasure
to expel from the country those who had possession of
them.
For the first five years of this war the English strug-
gled with a most imperfect army organization.* When
" the first serious siege," says Napier, was undertaken by
the British army, " to the discredit of the English gov-
ernment, no army was ever so ill provided with the means
of prosecuting such an enterprise. The engineer officers
were exceedingly zealous ; and many of them were well
versed in the theory of their business. But the ablest
trembled when reflecting on their utter destitution of all
that belonged to real service. Without a corps of sap-
pers and miners, without a single private who knew how
to carry on an approach under fire, they were compelled
to attack fortresses defended by the most warlike, prac-
tised, and scientific troops of the age.
" The best officers and finest soldiers were obliged to
sacrifice themselves in a lamentable manner, to compen-
sate for the negligence and incapacity of a government,
always ready to plunge the nation into war, without the
* lu a letter dated February 1 1 th, 1812, Wellington wrote to the
Secretary of State as follows : — " I would beg leave to suggest to
your lordship the expediency of adding to the engineer establishment
a corps of sappers and miners. It is inconceivable with what disad-
vantages we undertake any thing like a siege for want of assistance
of this description. There is no French corps d'armee which has not
a battalion of sappers and a company of miners ; but we are obliged
to depend for assistance of this description upon the regiments of the
line ; and although the men are brave and willing, they want the
knowledge and training which are necessary. Many casualties among
them consequently occur, and much valuable time is lost at the most
critical period of the siege."
310 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
slightest care of what was necessary to obtain success.
The sieges carried on by the British in Spain were a
succession of butcheries ; because the commonest mate-
rials, and the means necessary to their art, were denied
the engineers." Colonel J. T. Jones writes in nearly
the same terms of the early sieges in the Peninsida, and
with respect to the siege of Badajos, adds in express
terms, that " a body of sappers and miners, and the ne-
cessary fascines and gabions, would have rendered the
reductioB of the work certain."* Soon after this siege a
body of engineer troops arrived from England, but their
number was insufficient, and Wellington, having learned
by sad experience the importance of engineer troops, or-
dered a body of two hundred volunteers to be detached
from the line, " and daily instructed in the practice of
sapping, making and laying fascines and gabions, and the
construction of batteries, &c.'' The siege of Ciudad
Rodrigo, which immediately followed this organization,
was conducted with greater skill and success than any
other till nearly the close of the war ; and all military
writers have attributed this result to the greater efficiency
of the engineer force engaged in the siege. This arm
was now gradually increased, and the last year of the
war the engineer force with the English army in the field
consisted of seventy-seven officers, seven assistant-engi-
neers and surveyors, four surgeons and assistants, one
thousand six hundred and forty-six sappers, miners, arti-
ficers, &c., one thousand three hundred and forty horses,
and one hundred and sixty carriages.
During all this time the French furnished their armies
* Colonel Pasley etates that only one and a half yards of excava-
tion, per mail, was executed in a whole night, by the untrained
troops in the Peninsular war; whereas an instructed sapper can
easily accomplish this in twenty minutes, and that it has been done
by one of his most skilful sappers, at Chatham, in seven minutes .'
ENGINEERS. 311
in Spain with well-organized engineer forces. We have
endeavored to form a comparison of the number of French
engineers and artillerists employed on these peninsular
sieges. But from the loose manner in which these de-
tails are usually given by historians, it is almost im-
possible to distinguish between the two. Both are not
imfrequently given under the same head, and when a
distinction is apparently kept up, only the engineer staff
is mentioned under the head of engineers — ^the sappers,
miners, artificers, the train, &c., all being put down as
artillery. In the following table we have endeavored to
arrange them as is done in our own army. The trains of
both arms are left out, for frequently that of one arm per-
formed the duties of the other. Moreover, in our service
a portion of these duties of engineer and artillery trains is
performed by the quartermaster's department. For those
who wish to know the exact organization of the French
engineer train, we give it as it existed in 1811, viz.: —
seven troops, each troop consisting of three ofiicers, one
hundred and forty-one non-commissioned officers and pri-
vates, two hundred and fifty horses, and fifty wagons, con-
veying five thousand two hundred and seventy intrenching
tools, one thovwand seven hundred cutting tools, one thou-
sand eight hundred and two artificers' tools, two hundred
and fifty-three miners' tools, and eight thousand three hun-
dred and eighteen kilogrammes' weight of machinery and
stores, each article being made to a particular pattern.
The pioneers in Spain acted sometimes with one arm and
sometimes with the other, and we have assigned them ac-
cordingly in the table. The pontoniers, however, in our
service are included with the engineers ; we have there-
fore put them, in our table, in the same column with the
engineers.
312
MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Name of Siege.
Engineer
staff, sappers,
miners, ponto-
niers, and
pioneers.
Artillery staff,
horse and foot
artillery,
onvriers, and
pioneers.
Offic. Men.
Offic. Men.
Total
of
engineers,
sappers,
miners,
ponton-
iers, and
pioneers.
Total of
artillery
staff, horse
and foot
artillery,
ouvners,
and
pioneers.
Girona
Astorga
Lerida
Meguinenza,
1st Ciudad Rodrigo,
Almeida
Tortosa,
Tarragona
Oliyensa,
1st Badsyos,
Tarifa
Feniscola,
Sd Ciudad Rodiigo,
Sd Badsyos
Burgos,
Casuo tidiales
St. Sebastian,
HI
54
7
15
34
34
34
43
SO
10
S5
12
13
3
9
4
5
13
1189
211
603
91
316
278
441
489
429
681
106
707
235
138
12
256
124
68
348
90
32
46
41
17
9
8
■3
8
7
1276
1299
427
208
381
701
148
183
160
126
197
166
1275
232
657.
98
331
312
475
523
472
731
116
732
247
151
15
265
128
73
261
1360
461
1361
444
219
136
1019
1019
413
747
186
740
165
192
168
268
129
20S
173
From this table it appears that the ratio of the two arms
at these sieges, making the comparison on the basis of
our own organization, is about the same as for the present
French army in Algeria, or a little more than five of engi-
neers to six of artillery. .,
Thus far we have spoken of the field-operations of en-
gineer troops in connection with fortifications, alluding
only incidentally to the use of military bridges and the
passage of rivers. In the early wars of the French Revo-
lution the want of pontoniers was severely felt, and from
the deficiency of this branch of service, the operations of
the French generals were on several occasions very much
restricted. The evil was afterwards remedied in a great
degree by the introduction of several battalions of ponto-
niers in the regular army organization. On many occa-
sions, during his wars, did Napoleon feel and acknow-
ledge the importance of these troops ; but on none, per-
ENGINEERS. 313
haps, was this importance more clearly shown than in the
passage of the Beresina during his retreat from Moscow
with the wreck of his army. The Russians had cut the
bridge of Borisow aad taken position in great strength on
the right bank of the river, both at this point and below ;
the French, wearied with long and difficult marches, des-
titute of artillery, provisions, and military stores, with a
wide and deep river in front, and a powerful enemy on
their flank and rear, benumbed by the rigors of a merciless
climate, and dispirited , by defeats — every thing seemed to
promise their total destruction. " General Eble," says an
English general officer, in his remarks on this retreat,
" who, from the beginning of the campaign, had made all
the arrangements for the equipment and construction of
military bridges, was specially charged with the important
duty of providing for the passage of this river ; and he
discharged that duty with a degree of forecast and ability
to which certainly Napoleon owed his escape and the
wreck of his army its safety. General Eble had begun to
prepare, at Smolensko, for the difficulties which he fore-
saw in this operation. He formed, with every care, a
train sufficient for the transport of all the tools and stores
that might be required ; and, further to provide against
casualties and accidents, every man belonging to the com-
panies of pontoniers was obliged to carry from Smolensko
a tool or implement of some kind, and a proportion of
nails : and fortunate was it for the army that he did so ;
for such was the difficulty in getting through the carriages
containing stores, that only two forge-wagons and six cais-
sons of tools and nails could be preserved. To these the
general added a quantity of iron-work taken from the
wheels of carriages that were abandoned on the march.
Much was sacrificed to bring ofi" these valuable materials
for making clamps and fastenings, but, as Segur observes,
that exertion ' sauva Varmee.' "
37
314 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
But it is not always in the possession of a thing that
we are most likely to appreciate its utility ; the evils and
inconveniences resulting from the want of it not unfre-
quently impress us most powerfully- with its importance
and the advantages to be derived from its possession. A
few examples of this nature, drawn from military history,
may be instructive. We need not go back to the disas-
trous passage of the Vistula by Charles XII., the failure
of Marlborough to pass the Dyle, and Eugene to cross the
Adda in 1705, nor of the three unsuccessful attempts of
Charles of Lorraine to cross the Rhine in 1743. The
wars following the French Revolution are sufficiently re-
plete with useful instruction on this subject.*
In 1794 so great was the disorder in the direction of
affairs, that the boats of the bridges across the Wahal and
the Rhine were disposed of for commercial purposes ; and
in the beginning of 1795, says Jomini, " the conquerors of
* Before recurring to these, it might be useful to give one example,
AS it is often referred to, in the campaign of 1703. It was deemed
important for the success of the campaign to attacls the Prince of Ba-
den in his camp at Friedlingen. Accordingly, a bridge was thrown
across the Rhine at Honingen, the passage effected, and the victory
gained. But Villars was several times on the point of losing all for
want of a sufficient ponton equipage. Having but a single bridge,
the passage was necessarily slow ; the artillery and stores were fre-
quently interrupted by the infantry hurrying to the iield of battle ;
disorder ensued, and the whole movement was retarded ; Villars could
bring only a small part of his artillery into action, and towards the
close of the battle the infantry were in want of ammunition : more-
over, the whole operation had nearly failed from the attempt of the
enemy to destroy this bridge, but the skill of the French pontoniers
saved it. We here remark, 1st, the passage secured to Villars an im-
portant victory; 3d, from having an inefficient bridge-equipage his
whole army was placed in great peril, and the operation had nearly
failed ; 3d, if the Prince of Baden had possessed a skilful corps to op-
pose that of Villars, this single bridge would have been destroyed, and
the army cut to pieces ; 4th, the skill of the little corps of French pon-
toniers saved the bridge, and of consequence, the army.
ENGINEERS. 315
Belgium and Holland had not even a bridge equipage, at
a time too when the success of the campaign depended
solely on the means of crossing a river." A few boats
were procured from the Wahal and the Meuse, and others
manufactured in the forests of the Moselle ; but " these
operations consumed precious time, KuAfour months thus
passed away in preparations." Even after other things
were all ready, the army was obliged to wait thirty days
for the arrival of boats for ponton bridges ; during this
delay the Austrians strengthened their position, and with
very little exertion they might easily have prevented the
passage.
In 1796, profiting by the errors of the form* campaigns,
the French collected more suitable bridge equipages, and
the two armies passed the Rhine at Neuweid and Kehl
without loss or delay. The latter of these passages has
often been referred to as a model for such operations, and
certainly does credit to the general who directed it. But
Moreau's bridge equipage having been destroyed during
this disastrous campaign, his operations the following year
were considerably delayed in preparing a new one, and
even then he was under the necessity of seizing all pri-
vate boats that could be found within reach ; but the diffi-
culty of collecting and using boats of all sizes and de-
scriptions was so great as entirely to defeat his plan of
surprising the enemy on the opposite bank of the river.
The necessity of co-operating with Hoche admitted of no
further delay, and he was now obliged to force his pas-
sage in the open day, and in face of the enemy. Under-
taken under such circumstances, " the enterprise was ex-
tremely sanguinary, and at one time very doubtful ;" and
had it failed, " Moreau's army would have been ruined for
the campaign."
■ Napoleon's celebrated passage of the Po, at Placentia,
shows plainly how important it is for a general to possess
316 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the means of crossing rivers. " I felt the importance of
hastening the enterprise in order not to allow the enemy
time to prevent it. But the Po, which is a river as wide
and deep as the Rhine, is a barrier difficult to be over-
come. We had no means of constructing a bridge, and
were obliged to content ourselves with the means of em-
barkation found at Placentia and its environs. Lannes,
chief of brigade, crossed in the first boats, with the ad-
vanced guard. The Austrians had only ten squadrons on
the other side, and these were easily overcome. The
passage was now continued without interruption, but very
slowly. If I had had a good ponton-equipage, the fate of
the enemy's army had been sealed ; but the necessity of pass-
ing the river by successive embarkations saved it."
In the campaign of 1799, the Archduke attempted to
pass the Aar, and attacked the French on the opposite
side, but for want of suitable equipage his operation was
delayed till the enemy had collected sufficient forces to
intercept the passage ; he was now obliged to enter into
a stipulation for a suspension of hostilities, and to with-
draw his bridges.
The operations of the French in the campaign of 1800,
led to the most glorious results, but their execution was
attended with the greatest difficulties. ' The passage of
the Alps was greatly facilitated by the ability of the chief
engineer, Marescot, and the skill of the troops under his
command ; and the facility of .passing rivers affijrded Na-
poleon by his pontoniers, had an important influence upon
the success of 'the campaign. " The army of the reserve
had many companies of^ontoniers and sappers ; the pon-
tons of course could not be taken across the St. Bernard,
but the pontoniers soon found materials on the Po and
Tesin for constructing bridge equipages." Moreau's army
in the same year profited well by his pontoniers, in the
passages of the Inn, the Salza, the Traun, the Alza, &c.,
ENGINEERS. 317
and in the pursuit of the Austrian aimy — a pursuit that
has but a single parallel example in modern history.
The facility with which Napoleon crossed rivers, made
forced marches, constructed redoubts, fortified depots, and
grasped the great strategic points of the enemy in the
campaign of 1805, resulted from the skilful organization
of his army, and the eificiency given to the forces em-
ployed in these important operations. The engineer staff
of the French army at this period, consisted of four him-
dred and forty-nine officers, and there were four battalions
of sappers, of one hundred and twenty officers and seven
thousand and ninety-two men ; six companies of miners,
of twenty-four officers and five hundred and seventy-six
men ; and two regiments of pontoniers, of thirty-eight offi-
cers and nine hundred and sixty men. On the contrary,
the enemy's neglect of these things is one of the most
striking of the many faults of the war, and his ill-directed
efforts to destroy the great wooden bridge across the
Danube, and the successful operations of the French sap-
pers in securing it, formed one of the principal turning
points in the campaign.
The same organization enabled the French to perform
their wonderfully rapid and decisive movements in the
Prussian campaign of 1806, and the northern operations
of 1807.
In 1809, Napoleon's army crossed, with the most won-
derful rapidity, the Inn, the Salza, the Traun, and other
rivers emptying into the Danube, and reached Vienna be-
fore the wonder-stricken Austrians could prepare for its
defence. It was then necessary for the French to effect
a passage of the Danube, which was much swollen by
recent rains and the melting snow of the mountains.
Considering the depth and width of the river, the positions
of the enemy, and his preparations to oppose a passage^
with the disastrous consequences that would result to the
318 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
French from any failure in its execution ; taking all these
things into consideration, Jomini pronounced it " one of
the most hazardous and difficult of all the operations of
war." Here the fate of the army depended, apparently,
upon the skill and efficiency of the engineers and pon-
toniers, and nobly did they discharge the trust reposed in
them. When the pontons failed, tressel-bridges were
substituted, and even fifty-four enormous boats were put in
requisition. So skilfully were these operations conducted,
that Napoleon's immense army crossed over in safety, di-
rectly in the face of a superior enemy, and the same day
fought the memorable battle of Esling. Forced to retire
before numbers vastly superior to his own, Napoleon con-
centrated his forces on the island of Lobau, and intrenched
his position. Surrounded by the broad and deep channel
of the Danube, and watched by numerous and skilful ene-
mies, it required the most constant activity and the greatest
good fortune to effect a passage. Here the skill and
efficiency of the engineers shone conspicuously ; a num-
ber of bridges were thrown across the river in the face
of the Austrians, and against obstacles almost insurmount-
able ; the whole French army passed in safety, and soon
put the finishing stroke to that brilliant campaign. So
high an estimate did Napoleon attach to the construction
of these bridges, that, when the passage was completed,
he offered to place Bertrand, the constructing engineer,
though of comparatively low rank, at the head of the
French corps du genie.
On many occasions during the retreat in 1812-13, from
the Beresina to the left of the Rhine, across the Niemen,
the Vistula, the Oder, the Elbe, and the numerous other
rivers which divide that immense country, the French
derived vast advantages from the experience and skill of
their engineers and pontoniers, several times whole corps
escaping through their means from the grasp of their pur
ENGINEERS. 319
suers. When, however, the disasters of this retreat had
absorbed most of the material of the army, and had sadly
thinned the ranks of men of skill and experience, they
sustained many severe, and, in other circmnstances, unne-
cessary losses. Of this character we may mention the
passage of the Elster by the bridge of Lindnau, where,
through the ignorance and carelessness of those charged
with the mines, and through the want of suitable bridge
arrangements, thousands of brave men were buried in the
muddy waters of this small river. So sensibly did Napo-
leon feel this want of bridge equipages, in the winter of
1813-14, that he addressed to his minister of war, on this
subject, the foUowmg remarkable words : " If I had had
pontons, I should have already aimihilated the army of
Schwartzenberg, and closed the war; I should have taken
from him eight or ten thousand wagons, and his entire
army in detail ; but for want of the proper means I could
not pass the Seine." Again, on the 2d of March he wrote :
" If I had had a bridge equipage this morning, Blucher's
army had been lost." Whoever will examine the details
of the operations of this campaign, will be convinced of
the full force of these remarks.
In Spain in 1808, Sir John Moore, in order to assist the
native forces, had penetrated so near the army of Napo-
leon, that retreat became exceedingly difficult, and.he was
several times on the point of being lost. The English
army was at this time very deficient in engineer troops,
and Moore suffered much for want of miners to destroy
bridges, and pontoniers to construct new ones. In order
to cover his retreat and impede the advance of the French,
the commander-in-chief, says Napier, " directed several
bridges to be destroyed, but the engineers [for want of
miners and miner's tools] failed of success in every at-
tempt."
In Soult's retreat, in 1809, he crossed the Duero at
320 MILITARY ART ANd' SCIENCE.
Oporto, and destroyed the bridges so as to cut off the pur-
suit of Wellington. But while Soult, deceived by treach-
ery in his own corps, neglected to guard the river with
proper vigilance, Wellington collected boats at differ-
ent points, crossed over his army, surprised the French,
and, had it not been for the singular delay and indecision
of General Murray, would most certainly have forced the en-
tire army to capitulate ; as it was, his operation produced a
decided influence on the campaign, and effected the safety
of Beresford's corps. Soult destroyed his artillery and
baggage, and hastily retreated through the mountain
passes ; but his army was again arrested at the river Ca-
vado, and placed on the very brink of destruction, when
the brave and skilful Dulong succeeded in effecting a pas-
sage at the Ponte Nova ; the same daring officer opened,
on the same day, a way for the further, escape of the
French across the Misarella by the Saltador.
In the pursuit of Massena, in 1810, it was important to
the English to cross the Guadiana, and attack the French
before Badajos could be put in a state of defence. Be-
resford was directed by Wellington to pass this river at
Jerumina, where the Portuguese had promised to furnish
pontons ; but they neglected to fulfil their engagement,
and the army had to wait till Capt. Squire, an able and
efficient officer of engineers, could construct other means
for effecting a passage. Every thing was done that genius
could devise and industry execute ; nevertheless, the op-
erations of the army were greatly delayed — " a delay,"
says the historian, " that may he considered as the principal
cause of those long and bloody operations which afterwards
detained Lord Wellington more than a year on the frontiers
of Portugal."
We might prolong these remarks by discussing the pas-
sages of the Ceira and Alva, and their influence on the
pursuit of Massena ; Wellington's passage of the Tagus,
ENGINEERS. 321
and his retreat from Burgos in 1812 ; the passage of the
Adour and Garonne in 1814 ; and the failure of the mines
to blow up the bridges of Saltador, Alcantara, &c. ; but a
sufficient number of examples, it is believed, has already
been adduced to show the advantage of maintaining a prop-
erly organized and instructed body of sappers, miners, and
pontoniers, and the fatal results attending the want of such
troops, as a component part of an army organization.
It has already been remarked that the infantry of an
army must always form the basis of the apportionment ;
and by the general rule laid down by military writers, the
cavalry should be from one-fourth to one-sixth of the in-
fantry, according to the character of the war ; the artillery
about two-thirds of the cavalry, or one-seventh of the in-
fantry ; and the engineers from one-half to three-fourths
orthe artillery, — say about two-thirds. The staff and ad-
ministrative corps must vary according to the nature of the
organization, and the character of the theatre of war. The
former ought to be from two to five in a thousand, and the
latter from twenty-five to seventy-five,* as a general rule.
These ratios would give for a good army organization :
Staff, about 5
Administrative service— pay, medical, commis-
' sary, quarter-master, &c. . . 65
Infantry . . 650
Cavalry, .... . . 130
Artillery, 90
Engineers, 60
Total, . . 1,000
In a broken country, and against savage and undis-
ciplined foes, like the Indians in this country, the natiyes
opposed to the English in India, to the French in Algeria,
* This supposes the teamsters, wagon-masters, hospital-servants,
&c., to be enlisted men, and not persons hired for the occasion, as is
done in our army.
322 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
or to the Russians in Circassia, the cavalry, artillery, and
engineers would be diminished, and the infantry and ad-
ministrative corps proportionably increased; the former
because light troops are always preferable against an un-
disciplined foe, and the latter because of the difficulty of
moving and procuring supplies in new and uncultivated
countries. The French forces in Algeria, in 1844, amount-
ed to about sixty thousand men, in the following propor-
tion ; —
Staff, .4.7
Administrative, &c., 113,3
Infantry - . . . 687.3
Cavalry 86.6
Artillery, 61.2
Engineers, . .... 47.9
1000 men.
In small peace establishments the relative proportion of
infantry and cavalry should be much less than when pre-
pared for the field, because troops for these two arms can
be much more readily formed in case of emergency, than
for those which require more scientific information, and
technical skill and instruction. The staff and engineers
are evidently the most difficult to be formed in case of
war, and next to these the artillery and administrative corps.
In this country we can maintain, in time of peace, only
the frame-work of an army, looking to our citizen soldiery
to form, in case of need, the great mass of our military
force. This is the starting point in our military system,
and the basis of our army organization. Let us see
whether this principle is carried out in practice.
For every thousand men in our present organization* we
have,
' These numbers are the real rather than the nominal proportions,
many of our officers being called at(fff, who properly belong to one of
the other classes.
EXGINEERS 323
For the staff, 2
Administrative, . . . . . . 20*
Infantry, 513
Cavalry 150
Artillery, 310
Engineers, 6
1000
We see from this table, that while our artillery is nearly
six times as numerous as in ordinary armies, our staff is
less by one-half, and our engineers not more than one-half
what ought to be their proportion in a war establishment.
To this excess of artillery over infantry and cavalry in our
army in time of peace there is no objection, inasmuch as
the latter could be more easily expanded in case of war
than the artillery. But for a still stronger reason our staff
and engineers should also be proportionally increased, in-
stead of being vastly diminished, as is actually the case.
Experience in the first campaigns of the American
Revolution strongly impressed on the mind of Washing-
ton the absolute necessity of forming a regular and sys-
tematic army organization. But so difficult was it to ob-
tain properly instructed engineers, that he was obliged to
seek his engineer officers in the ranks of foreign adven-
turers, and to make drafts from the other arms of service,
and have them regularly instructed in the duties of engi-
neer troops, and commanded by the ofiicers of this corps.
An order, in his own handwriting, giving the details of
this temporary arrangement, is dated March 30th, 1779.
Until men are enlisted for the purpose, companies of sap-
pers and miners shall be formed by drafts from the line.
" The duties of the companies of sappers and miners,"
* Much of the administrative duty in our army is done by unen-
listed men, or by soldiers detached from their companies. Where such
is the case, the ratio of this branch of the service ought to be no high-
er than is represented above.
324 MILITAHY ART AND SCIENCE.
he continues, " shall be under the direction of the engi-
neers, to construct field-works of every kind, and all
■works necessary for the attack or defence of places, as
circumstances may require. On a march in the vicinity
of an enemy, a detachment of the companies of sappers
and miners shall be stationed at the head of the column,
directly after the vanguard, for the purpose of opening
and mending the roads, and removing obstructions," &c.
&c.
The great difficulties encountered by Washington in
instructing his inexperienced forces in the more difficult
branches of the art, made him the more earnest, in after
years, to impress on us how important it was for us In
peace to prepare for war. The preparation here meant is
not the keeping up, in time of peace, of a large standing
army, ever ready to take the field ; but rather the forma-
tion of a small body, educated and practised in all the
scientific and difficult parts of the profession ; a body
which shall serve as the cadre or framework of a large
army, capable of imparting to the new and inexperienced
soldiers of the republic that skill and efficiency which
has been acquired by practice. How far have we accom-
plished this object, and what will be the probable opera-
tions in case of another contest with a European power ?
New and inexperienced troops will be called into the
field to oppose a veteran and disciplined array. From
these troops we shall expect all the bravery and energy
resulting from ardent patriotism' and an enthusiastic love
of liberty. But we cannot here expect much discipline,
military skill, or knowledge of the several branches of
the military art. The peaceful habits of our citizens
tend but little to the cultivation of the military character.
How, then, are we to oppose the hostile force ? Must
human blood be substituted for skill and preparation, and
the dead bodies of our citizens serve as epaulements
ENGINEERS. 325
against the inroads of the enemy 1 To some extent; we
fear it must be the case ; but not entirely so, for govern-
ment has not altogether neglected to make preparation for
such an event. Fortifications have been planned or
erected on the most important and exposed positions ;
military materials and munitions have been collected in
the public arsenals ; a military school has been organized
to instruct in the military sciences ; there are regularly
kept up small bodies of infantry and cavalry, weak in
numbers, but capable of soon making good soldiers of a
population so well versed as ours is in the use of the
musket and the horse ; an artillery force, proportionally
much larger, is also regularly maintained, with a suf-
ficient number of men and ofiicers to organize and make
good artillery-men of citizens already partially acquainted
with the use of the cannon. But an acquaintance with
infantry, cavalry, and artillery duties is not the only prac-
tical knowledge requisite in war. In the practical oper-
ations of an army in the field, rivers are to be crossed,
bridges suddenly erected and suddenly destroyed, field-
works constructed and defended, batteries captured and
destroyed ; fortifications are to be put in order and de-
fended, or to be besieged and recaptured ; trenches must
be opened, mines sprung, batteries established, breaches
made and stormed ;-trous-de-loup, abattis, palisades, ga-
bions, fascines, and numerous other military implements
and machinery are to be constructed. Have our citizens
a knowledge of these things, or have we provided in our
military establishment for a body of men instructed and
practised in this branch of the military art, and capable
of imparting to an army the necessary efiiciency for this
service 1 Unfortunately this question must be answered
in the negative ; and it is greatly to be feared that the
future historian will have to say of us, as Napier has
said of the English : — " The best officers and soldiers were
326 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
obliged to sacrifice themselves in a lamentable manner, to
compensate for the negligence and incapacity of a govern-
ment tilways ready to plunge the nation into a war, without
the slightest care of what was necessary to oMain success.
Their sieges were a succession of butcheries ; because the
commonest materials, dlhd the means necessary to their art,
were denied the engineers.^'*
* The subjects discussed in this chapter are also treated by most
authors on Military Organization and Military History, and by the
several writers on Military Engineering. Allent, Vauban, Cormon-
taigue, Rocquancourt, Fasley, Douglas, Jones, Belmas, Napier, Gay
de Vernon, may be referred to with advantage. Pasley, Douglas,
Jones, and Napier, speak in the strongest terms of the importance of
engineer troops in the active operations of a war, and of the absolute
necessity of organiziiig this force in time of peace. A list of books of
reference on Military Engineering will be given at the close of the fol-
lowing chapters.
While these pages are passing through the press, Congress has au-
thorized the President to raise one company of engmeer troops ! This
number is altogether too small to be of any use in time of war.
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 327
CHAPTER XIII.
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS.
Fortification is defined, — ^the art of disposing the ground
in such a manner as to enable a small number of troops
to resist a larger army the longest time possible. If
the work be placed in a position of much importance,
and its materials be of a durable character, it is called
permanent; if otherwise, it receives the appellation oi field,
or temporary. Field-works are properly confined to oper-
ations of a single campaign, and are used to strengthen
positions which are to be occupied only for a short period.
Generally these works are of earth, thrown up by the
troops in a single day. They ' are intimately connected
-with a system of permanent fortifications, but from the fa-
cility of their construction, no provision need be made for
them before the actual breaking out of war. Indeed,
they could not well be built before hostilities commenced,
as their locality in each case must be determined by the
position of the hostile forces.
Having already described the general influence of per-
manent fortifications as a means of national defence, we
shall here speak merely of the principles of their con-
struction. It is not proposed to enter into any technical
discussion of matters that especially belong to the instruc-
tion of the engineer, but merely to give the nomenclature
and use of the more important parts of a military work ;
in a word, such general information as should belong to
officers of every grade and corps of an army.
328 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
The first species of fortification among the ancients
was of course very simple, consisting merely of an earth-
en mound, or palisades. A wall was afterwards used, and
a ditch was then added to the wall. It was found that a
straight wall could be easily breached by the enemy's bat-
tering-rams ; to remedy this evil, towers were built at
short intervals from each Other, forming a broken line of
salient and re-entering parts. These towers or salient
points gradually assumed a shape approximating to the
modern bastion.
After the invention of gunpowder and the application
of cannon to the attack and defence of places, it became •
necessary to arrange earthen ramparts behind the thin
walls of the ancient works, for the reception of the new
artillery. Moreover these walls were soon found inad-
equate to resist the missiles of the besiegers, and it be-
came necessary to replace them by parapets of earth. In
order to cover the retaining walls of these parapets from
the besieging batteries, it was also found to be necessary
to lower these walls as much as possible, and to raise the
counterscarps. The traces or plans of the works, how-
ever, received no material change till about the close of
the fifteenth century.
It is not knovra who first changed the ancient towers
into bastions. Some attribute it to an Italian, and with
considerable show of reason, for a bastion was built at
Turin as early as 1461. Achmet Pacha, it is said, forti-
fied Otranto in this way, in 1480, but whether the system
was previously known among the Turks cannot be deter-
mined. Others attribute the invention to Ziska, the cele
brated leader of the Hussites. It is most probable that
the trstnsition from the tower to the bastion was a very
gradual one, and that the change was perfected in several
eountries at about the same time.
Fortifications, like other arts and sciences, greatly
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 329
flourislied in Italy under the Medicis, and that country
furnished Europe with its most skilful engineers. Cath-
arine of Medicis introduced into France many of her
countrymen, distinguished in this profession ; among these
may be . named Bellamat, Bephano, Costritio, Relogio,
Vorganno, the two Marini, Campi, and Hieronimo, who
built several important places and directed the sieges of
others. These able foreigners were rivalled by some
distinguished French engineers, who laid the foundation
of the " corps du Genie," which has since become a school
of military instruction for the world. Among the early
French engineers may be distinguished Lafontaine De
Serre, Feuquieres, and St. Remy. Pedro Navarro had
been appointed a member of this corps, but his attention
was more specially directed to mining, and we do not
learn that he distinguished himself in the construction of
any fortification.
In Germany, in the beginning of the sixteenth century,
Albert Durer distinguished himself as a writer on fortifi-
cation ; his book is remarkable as containing the germs
of many of the improvements which were made by those
who followed him. This is the more to be wondered at
as he was not a professed engineer. After him followed
Spekel, a native of Strasburg, who died in 1589. His
writings are valuable as showing the state of the art at
that time, and the changes which he himself introduced.
He was an engineer of much practical knowledge and
experience, having assisted at the sieges of Malta, Gol-
letta, Vienna, Jula, Nicosia, Famagusta, &c.
The first French engineer who wrote on fortification was
Errard de Bar-le-Duc, who published near the close of
the sixteenth century. As an engineer, he was rivalled
by Chatillon, a man of distinguished merit. Errard for-
tified Amiens, built a part of the castle ^of Sedan, and a
portion of the defences of Calais. Under the reign of
330 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Louis XIII., Desnoyers, Deville, Pagan, and Fabre were
greatly distinguished. Deville published in 1628. He
was a man of much learning and experience ; but he is
said to have adopted, both in his theory and practice, the
principles of the Italian school, with most of its errors.
Pagan began his military career while young, and became
marechal de champ at the age of 38, when, having the mis-
fortune to become blind, he was compelled to relinquish
his brilliant hopes. He was the ablest engineer of his
age, and was also greatly distinguished in other branches
of science. In his plans he inclined to the Dutch rather
than the Italian school of fortification. He published in
1645.
At the close of the sixteenth century, the Dutch had
been forced to resort to military defences to protect
themselves against the aggressions of the Spaniards. As
the Dutch were inferior in other military means, fortifica-
tion became one of the vital resources of the country.
Their works, however, thrown up in much haste, were
in many respects defective, although well adapted to the
exigencies of the time. Freytag, their principal engineer,
wrote in 1630. Some of his improvements were intro-
duced into France by Pagan. He was preceded by Ma-
rolois, (a cotemporary of Pagan,) who published in 1613.
In Germany, Rimpler, a Saxon, wrote on fortification in
1671. He was a man of great experience, having served
at the sieges of Candia, Phillipsburg, Bonn, Riga, Bre-
men, Dansburg, Bommeln, &c. He fell at the siege of
Vieima in 1683. His writings are said to contain the
groundwork of Montalembert's system.
In Italy, after the time of Tartaglia, Marchi, Campi,
&c., we find no great improvement in this art. Several
Italians, however, distinguished themselves as engineers
under the Spaniards. The fortifications of Badajos are a
good example of the state of the art in Italy and Spain at
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 331
that epoch. The citadel of Antwerp, built by two Italian,
engineers, Pacciotti and Cerbelloni, in 1568, has become
celebrated for the siege it sustained in 1832.
The age of Louis XIV. effected a great revolution in
the art of fortification, and carried it to such a degree of
perfection, that it has since received but slight improve-
ment. The years 1633 and 1634 are interesting dates in
the history of this art, as having given birth respectively
to Vauban and Coehorn. The former was chief engineer
of France under Louis XIV., and the latter held a corre-
sponding position under the Dutch republic. Coehom's
ideas upon fortification are conceived with an especial
view to the marshy soil of his own country, and, although
well suited to the object in view, are consequently of less
general application than those of his more distinguished
cotemporary and rival. The best specimens of his mode
of construction that exist at the present day, are the
fortresses of Manheim, Bergen-op-Zoom, Nimiguen, and
Breda.
Coehorn was followed in Holland by Landsberg, an able
and practical engineer, who to much reading added ex-
tensive experience, having himself served at sixteen
sieges. His system was in many respects peculiar, both
in trace and relief ; it dispensed with the glacis, and all
revertments of masonry. His plans could be applied only
to marshy soils. The first edition of his work was pub-
lished in 1685.
But the career 'of Vauban forms the most marked and
prominent era in the history of fortification ; it constitutes
the connecting link between the rude sketches of the ear-
lier engineers, and the well-established form which the
art has since assumed. In his earlier works we find many
of the errors of his predecessors ; but a gradual change
seems to have been wrought in his mind by reflection and
experience, and these faults were soon remedied and a
332 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
new and distinct system developed. Vauban has left no
treatise upon his favorite art, and his ideas upon fortifica-
tion have been deduced from his constructions, and from
detached memoirs left among his papers. The nature of
his labors, and the extent of his activity and industry,
may be imagined from the fact that he fought one hundred
and forty battles, conducted fifty-eight sieges, and built or
repaired three hundred fortifications. His memoirs, found
among his manuscript papers, on various military and po-
litical subjects, are numerous, and highly praised even at
the present day. But his beautiful and numerous con-
structions, both of a civil and military character, are real
monuments to his genius. The best illustrations of his
principles of fortification occur at Lille, Strasbourg, Lan-
dau, Givet, and Neuf-Brisack. His vrritings on mines,
and the attack and defence of places, are, by the profes-
sion, regarded as classic. His improvements in the ex-
isting method of attack gave great superiority to the arms
of his countrymen, and even enabled him to besiege and
capture his rival Coehorn, in his own works. He died in
1707, and was soon succeeded by Cormontaigne.
The latter did not attempt the introduction of any new
system, but limited himself to improving and perfecting
the plans of his illustrious predecessors. His improve-
ments, however, were both extensive and judicious, and
are sufficient to entitle him to the place he holds as one
of the ablest military engineers the world has ever pro-
duced. His works on the subject of fortification, besides
being elegantly written, contain the most valuable infor-
mation of any works we have. His most admired con-
structions are to be found at Metz, Thionville, and Bitche.
The beautiful crown works of Billecroix, at Metz, are per-
fect models of their kind. Cormontaigne died in 1750.
Cotemporary with him were Sturin and Glasser. The
former deviated but slightly from the systems of his prede»
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 333
cessors, but the latter invented several ingenious improve-
ments which gave him great reputation.
Next follows Rosard, a Bavarian engineer; and Fred-
erick Augustus, king of Poland, who devoted himself par-
ticularly to this art. The former casemated only the iianks
of his works, hut the latter introduced casemate fire more
extensively than any one who had preceded him.
In France, Belidor and De Filey published about the
middle of the last century. They were both able engineers,
but their systems were inferior to that of Cormontaigne.
In 1767 De la Chiche introduced a system of fortifica-
tion in many respects original. He raised his covered-
ways so as to conceal all his masonry, and casemated a
great portion of his enceinte. For exterior defence, he
employed direct fire from his barbettes, and curvated fire
from his casemates ; the direct fire of the latter secured
his ditches.
Next to.De la Chiche follows Montalembert, who pub-
lished in 1776. He was a man of much experience and
considerable originality, but of no great ability as an engi-
neer. Most of his ideas were derived from De la Chiche
and the German school of Rimpler. His plans have gen-
erally been rejected by his own countrymen, but they still
have advocates among the Germans.
General Virgin, a distinguished Swedish engineer,
wrote in 1781. His idea Of strongly fortifying the smaller
towns to the comparative neglect of the larger cities, con-
stitutes one of the principal novelties in his system.
In 1794, Reveroni devised a system in which the case-
mates of Montalembert were employed, but, his guns were
so arranged as to be employed in barbette while the be-
siegers were at a distance, and afterwards to be used for
casemated fire. The casemate gunrcarriage, which form-
ed a part of his invention, was ingenious, but never much
employed in practice.
334 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Bouamard, a French emigrant, published in 1799. He
adopted the general trac6 of Vauban, but introduced modi-
fications in the details essentially different from those of
Cormontaigne. Some of these modifications are very val-
uable improvements, while others are of a more doubtful
character. Bousmard is, on the whole, a very able wri-
ter, and his works should be found in the library of every
military engineer.
Carnot's celebrated treatise was published in 1810. He
was evidently a man of genius, and during his career at
the head of the War Department of France, numerous and
very important improvements were made in the several
branches of the military art, and especially in strategy.
His work on fortification exhibits much originality and
genius, but it is doubtful whether it has very much contrib-
uted to the improvement of this art. His ideas have been
very severely, and rather unfairly criticised by the Eng-
lish, and particularly by Sir Howard Douglas.
Chasseloup de Laubat early distinguished himself as an
engineer of much capacity and talent. He followed Na-
poleon in nearly all his campaigns, and conducted many
of his sieges. He remodelled the fortifications of North-
ern Italy and of the Lower Rhine. He published in 181 1 .
The improvements which he introduced are numerous
and valuable, and he probably contributed more to advance
his art, and to restore the equilibrium between attack and
defence, than any other engineer since Cormontaigne.
After the fall of Napoleon and the partition of his empire,
the allies mutilated or destroyed the constructions of Chas-
seloup, so that, it is believed, no^f^erfect specimen of his
system remains.
The cotemporaries of Chasseloup were mostly engaged
in active field service and sieges, and few had either lei-
sure or opportunity to devote themselves to improvements
in permanent fortification.
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 335
Choumara published in 1827. His system contains
much originality, and his writings give proof of talent and
genius. He has very evidently more originality than
judgment, and it is hardly probable that his system will
ever be generally adopted in practice.
The Metz system, as arranged by Noizet, as a theore-
tical study, is undoubtedly the very best that is now known.
It, however, requires great modifications to suit it to dif-
ferent localities. For a horizontal site, it is probably the
most perfect system ever devised. It is based on the
system of Vauban as improved by Cormontaigne, and con-
tains several of the modifications suggested by modem
engineers. It is applied in a modified form to the new
fortifications of Paris.
Baron Rohault de Fleury has introduced many modifi-
cations of the ordinary French system in his new defences
of Lyons. We have seen no written account of these
works, but from a hasty examination in 1844, they struck
us as being too complicated and expensive.
The new fortifications of Western Germany are modi-
fications of Rempler's system, as improved by De la
Chiche and Montalembert. It is said that General Aster,
the directing engineer, has also introduced some of the
leading principles of Chasseloup and Camot.
The English engineers have satisfied themselves with
following in the track of their continental neighbors, and
can ofi"er no claims to originality.
Of the system of fortification now followed in our ser-
vice we must decline expressing any opinion ; the time
has not yet arrived for subjecting it to a severe and judi-
cious criticism. But of the system pursued previous to
1820, we may say, without much fear of contradiction,
that a worse one could scarcely have been devised. In-
stead of men of talent and attainments in military science,
most of our engineers were then either foreigners, or
336 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
civilians who owed their commissions to mere political
influence. The qualifications of the former were proba-
bly limited to their recollection of some casual visit to
two or three of the old European fortresses ; and the latter
probably derived all their military science from some old
military book, which, having become useless in Europe,
had found its way into this country, and which they had
read without understanding, and probably without even
looking at its date. The result was what might have been
anticipated — a total waste of the public money. We
might illustrate this by numerous examples. A single
one, however, must suffice. About the period of the last
war, eight new forts were constructed for the defence of
New York harbor, at an expense of some two millions of
dollars. Six of these were circular, and the other two were
star forts — systems which had been discarded in Europe
for nearly two thousand years ! Three of these works
are now entirely abandoned, two others are useless, and
large sums of money have recently been expended on the
other three in an attempt to remedy their faults, and ren-
der them susceptible of a good defence. Moreover, a
number of the works which were constructed by our en-
gineers before that corps was made to feel the influence
of the scientific education introduced through the medium
of the Military Academy — we say, a considerable number
of our fortifications, constructed by engineers who owed
their appointment to political influence, are not only wrong
in their plans, but have been made of such wretched mate-
rials and workmanship that they are already crumbling
into ruins.
A fortification, in its most simple form, consists of a
mound of earth, termed the rampart, which encloses the
space fortified ; a parapet, surmounting the rampart and
covering the men and guns from the enemy's projectiles ;
a scarp wall, which sustains the pressure of the earth of
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 337
the rampart and parapet, and presents an insurmountable
obstacle to an assault by storm ; a wide and deep ditch,
which, prevents the enemy from approaching near the body
of the place ; a counterscarp wall, which sustains the earth
on the exterior of the ditch ; a covered way, which occu-
pies the space between the counterscarp and a mound of
earth called a glacis, thrown up a few yards in front of the
ditchfor the purpose of covering the scarp of the main work.
The work by which the space fortified is immediately
enveloped, is called the enceinte, or- body of the place.
Other works are usually added to the enceinte to strength-
en the weak points of the fortification, or to lengthen the
siege by forcing the enemy to gain possession of them be-
fore he can breach the body of the place : these are term-
ed outvibrks, when enveloped by the covered way, and
advanced works, when placed'exterior to the covered way,
but in some way connected with the main work ; but if
entirely beyond the glacis, and not within supporting dis-
tance of the fortress, they are called detached works.
In a bastioned front the principal outwork is the demi-
lune, which is placed in front of the curtain ; it serves to
cover the main entrance to the work, and to place the
adjacent bastions in strong re-enterings.
The tenaille is a small low work placed in the ditch, to
cover the scarp wall of the curtain and flanks from the
fire of the besieger's batteries erected along the crest of
the glacis.
The places of arms, are points where troops are assem-
bled in order to act on the exterior of the work. The re-
entering places of arms, are small redans arranged at the
points of junction of the covered ways of the bastion and
demi-lune. The salient places of arms are the parts of the
covered way in front of the salients of the bastion and
demi-lune.
Small permanent works, termed redoubts, are placed
29
338 MILITAUr ART AND SCIENCE.
within the demi-lune and re-entering places of arms for
strengthening those works. Works of this character con-
structed within the bastion are termed interior retreneh-
ments ; when sufficiently elevated to command the exte-
rior ground, they are called cavaliers.
Caponniers are works constructed to cover the passage
of the ditch from the tenaille to the gorge of the demi-
lune, and also from the demi-lune to the covered way, by
which communication may be maintained between the
enceinte and outworks.
Posterns are underground communications made through
the body of the place or some of the outworks.
Sortie-passages are narrow openings made through the
crest of the glacis, which usually rise in the form of a
ramp from the covered way, by means of which commu-
nication may be kept up with the exterior. These pas-
sages are so arranged that they cannot be swept by the
fire of the enemy. The other communications above
ground are called ramps, stairs, &c.
Traverses are small works erected on the covered way
to intercept the fire of the besieger's batteries.
Scarp and counterscarp galleries are sometimes con-
structed for the defence of the ditch. They are arranged
with loop-holes, through which the troops of the garrison
fire on the besiegers when they have entered the ditch,
without being themselves exposed to the batteries of the
enemy.
In sea-coast defences, and sometimes in a land front for
the defence of the ditch, embrasures are made in the scarp
wall for the fire of artillery ; the whole being protected
from shells by a bomb-proof covering over head : this ar-
rangement is termed a casemate.
Sometimes double ramparts and parapets are formed, so
that the interior one shall fire over the more advanced ;
*he latter in this case is called afaussebraie.
PEEMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 339
If the inner work be separated from the other it is called
a retrenchment* and if in addition it has a commanding
fire, it is termed, as was just remarked, a cavalier.
The capital of a bastion is a line bisecting its salient
angle. All the works comprehended between the capitals
of two adjacent bastions is termed ^ front : it is taken as
the unit in permanent fortification.
Fig. 39 represents the ground plan of a modem bas-
tioned front, of a regular and simple form, on a horizontal
site. '
A, A, A — Is the euceinte, or body M — The redoubt of the re-entering
of the place. pleices of arras.
B — The bastions. N — ^The ditches of the redoubts.
C— The main ditch. O— The tenaille.
D — The covered ways. P — The double caponnier. /
E — The re-entering places of arras, a — The traverses.
F — ^The salient places of arms. b — ^The sortie-passages.
G — The derai-lune. . c — Stairs.
H — The demi-lune ditch. d — Cut m the demi-lune to flank
J — The demi-lune redoubt. the redoubt of the re-entering
L — The ditch of the demi-lune place of arms. /
redoubt.
Fig. 40 represents a section through the line mn' of the
preceding figure.
A — Is the rampart. F — The glacis.
B — ^The parapet G — The covered way.
C— The ditch. if— The terre-plein.
D — ^The scarp wall. J — The parade.
E — ^The counterscarp wall.
Sometimes half embrasures are cut in the earthen par-
apet of a fort, so as to sink the gun below the crest, and
thus more effectually cover the men from the enemy's fire.
* The term reirencJtment implies an interior work, which is con-
structed within or in rear of another, for the purpose of strengthening
it; the term intrencTiment, on the contrary, implies an independent
work, constructed in the open field, without reference to any other ad-
joining work.
340 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
But guns in embrasure have a far less extended field of
fire than when mounted in barbette ; moreover, the embra-
sures present openings through which an enemy may pen-
etrate in an assault. Owing to these objections, they are
employed only for the protection of particular points ; that
is, where it is important to cover the artillerists from the
enemy's fire, or where the guns are to be used merely to
protect a ditch, or to enfilade a road, &c. The bottom of
the embrasure is called the sole, the sides are called
cheeks, and the mass of earth between two embrasures, the
merlon. Embrasures may be made either direct or oblique,
according as the fire is required to be perpendicular or
oblique to the parapet.
A coverport is a small outwork of any convenient form,
erected immediately in front of a gateway, to screen it^
from the enemy's fire.
A counterguard is a more extensive work, constructed in
front of a part of the fortress itself, or of some other outwork
of greater importance, which it is intended to cover. These
are sometimes called coverfaces, from their situation and
object ; but the former term is most commonly used.
Sometimes outworks, called tenaillons, consisting of one
long and one short face, are placed on each side of the
demi-lune of a front of fortification, for the purpose of pro-
longing the siege. (Fig. 41.)
Small, or aJem-tenaillons, are frequently so arranged as
to cover only one-half of the demi-lune, and then a bonnet
constructed in front of the salient of the demi-lune. (Fig.
42.) In this case the bonnet is fianked by the short faces
of the demi-tenaillons ; these short faces are themselves
fianked by the demi-lune, while the bastions flank the long
faces.
A hornwork consists of a front of fortification, and two
wings resting on the faces of bastions of a front of the
PERMANENT FORTIFICATIONS. 341
fortress. It sometimes has also a demi-lune or bonnet, as
in the case of demi-tenaillons. (Fig. 43.)
A crovmwork consists of two fronts of fortification, and
two wings. (Fig. 44.) It is sometimes made double, and
even triple.
These works are also employed as advanced works,
and placed entirely in front of the glacis. They have
generally been added to a fortress for the purpose of oc-
cupying some important piece of ground not included
within the limits of the main work. They may be con-
structed with covered ways, and sometimes it may be
found advantageous to secure them by retrenchments.
A detached work may be made in any form deemed best
suited to the site. Being but remotely connected with the
fortress, the latter will exercise but slight influence on the
character of its plan or construction. They are usually
of limited extent and slight relief, partaking much of the
nature of field-works.*
* The general principles of permanent fortification may be best
learned from the writings of Cormontaigne, St. Paul de Noizet, and
Laurillard-Fallot. A list of valuable books of reference on the seve-
ral branches of military engineermg will be given at the close of the
next chapter.
342 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER XIV.
FIELD-ENGINEERING.
Field-Engineering includes the making of military re-
connaissances, temporary fortifications, and military roads ;
the planning and construction of military bridges ; the at-
tack and defence of military works ; — in fine, all the various
duties of engineer troops, either in the operations of a
campaign, or in the dispositions on the battle-field.
Military reconnaissance. — By this term is meant an ex-
amination of a portion of the theatre of war, to ascertain
its military character and resources. If the examination
be made of a large district of country, and for an entire
campaign, the reconnaissance is general ; if made for col-
lecting detailed information respecting a proposed line of
march, the passage of a river, the position of an enemy,
&c., it is termed special.
In making a general reconnaissance, great care should
be taken to collect accurate information respecting the
general topography of the country ; the character of the
mountains, forests, and watercourses ; the nature of the
roads, canals, and railways ; the quality of the soil, and
the amount of provisions and forage it produces ; the pop
ulation and character of the cities, towns, and villages ,
the commercial and manufacturing resources of every part
of the country, and the means of transportation to be found
in each district. The plan of military operations will be
based on the information thus obtained, and any serious
error in the reconnaissance may involve the results of the
Mmpaign, and even the fate of the war.
In a special reconnaissance, not only accurate but mi-
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 343
nute information will be required : the character of the
roads must be given io detail ; the nature of the water-
courses, their depth and velocity ; the position and charac-
ter of bridges, and fords ; — in fine, a full description of
all obstacles to be encountered, and the means that can be
made available for overcoming these obstacles.
A reconnoitring officer may usually derive much valua-
ble information from the published maps and descriptions
of the country to be examined ; additional matters of de-
tail may be obtained from woodsmen, hunters, and fisher-
men ; and also from the innkeepers and local authorities
of the district. But the officer should always verify this
information, so far as practical, by*personal examination.
In making a reconnaissance in the vicinity of an enemy,
he must be supported by a strong escort of mounted troops,
and in all his operations the greatest precaution will be re-
quisite to ensure success.
Some simple instrument, such as a pocket sextant, or
compass, will be sufficient to enable the reconnoitring offi-
cer to measure, with considerable accuracy, the height of
mountains, the width of streams, &c., and an ordinary scale
and dividers will enable him to make a suitable military
sketch.
Temporary Fortification. — It has been stated in the pre-
ceding chapter that temporary fortifications are properly
confined to the operations of a single campaign, and are
used to strengthen positions which are to be occupied only
for a short period ; and that they are usually made of
earth, thrown up by the troops in a single day. Tempo-
rary fortifications, as a part of field-engineering, may there-
fore be regarded rather as an arm than an art. The prin-
ciples of their construction are derived, of course, from the
theory of permanent fortification, but in applying these prin-
ciples to practice in the field, much greater latitude is allowed
than in the exact scientific arrangement of permanent works.
344 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
The purpose of field-works (or iatrenchments, as they
are commonly called) is to arrest, or at least to impede,
the march of the attacking foe ; to shelter the defensive
troops from the missive weapons of the assailants, and to
detain them in a position where they will be exposed to
the fire of the defensive force. The numerical and posi-
tive strength of the assailed may be much less than that
of the assailant, and yet an equilibrium exist ; the material
obstacles compensating for the diiTerence in numbers. In-
trenchments, though inert masses, must therefore be re-
garded as most valuable and important accessaries in the
defence of a position.
Intrenchments consist either of lines of works made to
cover extended positions, or of detached works designed
simply to defend the ground they occupy. The former
generally present a front against the enemy in but one di-
rection, while the latter are usually closed on all their sides.
The following figures have been employed for the plan
of simple intrenchments, viz. : the polygon, redan, lunette,
mitre, star-fort, and bastion.
Square or polygonal redoubts are the most common forms
given to field-works, on account of the ease of their con-
struction. But they have many defects. There is a sec-
tor without fire in front of each salient, and the ditches are
without protection. The latter objection also holds good
against all circular works.
The redan (Fig. 45) is frequently used to cover a point
in rear, as a bridge, a ford, or a defile. When used alone,
its gorge should be closed by palisades. Its ditches are
unprotected.
The lunette (Fig. 46) has nearly the same defects as
the redan.
The mitre, or priest-cap, (Fig. 47,) may be employed
with advantage when a cross-fire is required on the capi-
tal of the work.
FIELD-ENGINEERING^ 345
The star-fort has all the defects, without the merit of
simplicity, which belong to the polygonal redoubt.
The bastion-fort (Fig. 48) more fully satisfies the con-
ditions of a good defence than any other plan ; but it is
less simple and easy of execution. It is usually composed
of four or five fronts, but it may be applied to a polygon of
any number of sides.
For the details of the construction of these several
works, we must refer to the special treatises on field-forti-
fication.
Lines of intrenchraents may be made either continuous
or with intervals. In adopting either plan, the engineer
should avail himself of all the natural obstacles presented
by the position, so as to diminish the labor of erecting
artificial means of defence.
The simplest arrangement for a continuous intrench-
ment is the cremailliire, or indented line. When applied
to an irregular site, or used to connect together distant
and detached works, the indented line may be regarded
as a good disposition. Mitres and redans, connected by
straight curtains, are sometimes employed, as alsp a com
bination of large and small redans, forming alternate sa •
lient and re-entering angles. A continuous line of bas-
tions is preferable to any othei arrangement, when there
is plenty of time for their construction.
Lines with intervals are frequently formed of alternate
lunettes and square redoubts. Other detached works may
be employed in the same way. This manner of intrench-
ing a position has several advantages, with disciplined
troops. The first shock of the assailant is sustained by
the detached works, and when he attempts to penetrate in
the intervals, his flanks become exposed to a deadly cross
fire. These intervals also allow the assailed to act on the
ofiensive, by charging the enemy at the opportune moment.
But with raw and militia forces it will be safer to resort
346 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
to continuous lines. If cavalry form any part of the de-
fensive force, it will be absolutely necessary to leave in-
tervals through which these troops niay charge.
A vertical section of all intrenchments is of the same
general form ; the dimensions will, of course, vary with
the nature of the soil, aM the time and means employed in
their construction. The minimum dimensions that can be
used with any considerable advantage are given in Fig. 49.
In laying out field-works advantage should be taken of
all available artificial obstacles, such as hedges, walls,
houses, outbuildings, &c. A thickset hedge may be ren-
dered defensible by throwing up against it a slight parapet
of earth. Stone fences may be employed in the same way.
Walls of masonry may be pierced with loopholes and ar-
ranged for one or two tiers of fire. The walls of houses
are pierced in the same manner, and a projecting wooden
structure, termed a machicoulis gallery, is sometimes made '
from the floor of the second story, to enable the assailed
to fire down upon their opponents. This arrangement is
frequently employed to advantage in wooden blockhouses
against a savage foe ; but it is of little avail when exposed
to the fire of artillery. Some have proposed galleries of
this description in permanent works of masonry, but the
project is too obviously absurd to merit discussion.
In addition to the parapet of an intrenchment, a good
engineer will always find time and means for constructing
other artificial obstacles, such as trous-de-loup, abattis,
ipalisades, stockades, fraises, chevaux-de-frise, crows'-feet,
mines, &c.
Trous-de-loup are pits dug in the earth in the form of
an inverted truncated cone, some six feet in diameter, and
about the same number of feet in depth. They are usu-
ally placed a few yards in front of the ditch, and concealed
by some slight covering.
Abattis are tops and large limbs of trees arranged along
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 347
the glacis of a work ; the ends of the branches are lopped
off and sharpened.
Palisades are stakes some eight or ten feet long, with
one end fastened in the ground and the other made sharp.
They are placed in juxtaposition and connected together
by horizontal riband-pieces. This arrangement is fre-
quently placed at the foot of the counterscarp. When the
timbers are large and the work is intended as a part of a
primary defence, it is called a stockade ; when the stakes
are placed at the foot of the scarp, either horizontally or
inclined, they receive the name oi /raises.
A cheval-de-frise consists of a horizontal piece of timber
armed with wooden or iron lances, which project some
eight or ten feet. It is much employed against cavalry,
and on rocky soils serves as a substitute for palisades.
Crows'-feet are small wooden or iron forms filled with
sharp spikes. They are thrown, with their points up-
ward, on ground which is to be passed over by cavalry.
Mines are sometimes used in connection with intrench-
ments, but more commonly in the attack and defence of
permanent works. They will be noticed further on.
Field-works which are to be occupied for a consider-
able length of time will usually have their steeper slopes
revetted, and be arranged with scarp and counterscarp,
galleries, traverses, blindages, &c. Such works hold an
intermediary rank between temporary and permanent for-
tification.
As examples of the importance of field fortifications
and of the manner of organizing them, the reader is re-
ferred to the celebrated battle of Fontenoy, in 1745, where
the carefully-.arranged intrenchments of Marshal Saxe en-
abled the French to repel, with immense destruction, the
attacks of greatly superior numbers ; to the battle of Fleu-
rus, in 1690, where the Prince of Waldeck exposed him-
self to a most disastrous defeat "by neglecting the re-
348 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE,
BOUTces of fortification and other indispensable precau-
tions ;" to the battle of Malplaquet, in 1709, where
Marshal Villars, by neglecting to occupy and intrench the
farm that closed the passage between the woods of Sars
and Lani^re, exposed himself to a disastrous defeat ; to
the operations of 1792, where General Custine, by
neglecting to intrench the heights that covered Bingen,
as the engineers had recommended, exposed himself to
those terrible disasters which forced him to a precipi-
tate retreat ; to the works of Wervike, which, by a vig-
orous resistance on the 10th of September, 1793, saved
the Dutch army from total destruction ; to the intrenched
camp of Ulm, in 1800, which for six weeks held in check
the victorious army of Moreau ; to the intrenched lines of
Torres Vedras, in 1810, which saved from destruction the
English army of "Wellington ; to the field-defences of
Hougomont, which contributed so much to the victory of
Waterloo, &c.
Military communications. — The movements of armies
are always much embarrassed by forests, marshes, and
water-courses, and nothing contributes more to the dis-
patch of military operations than the means of opening
practical and easy communication through these various
obstacles.
It is not necessary here to enter into any detailed disr
cussion of the manner of constructing military communi-
cations through forests or marshes. In a new country
like ours, where almost every one has had some experi-
ence in road-making, no very great technical knowledge
is required for the construction of temporary works of
this character ; but much professional skill and experience
will be requisite for the engineers who make the prelimi-
nary reconnaissances, and fix the location .of these roads.
Water-courses may be crossed by means of fords, on
the ice, ^or by ferries and bridges. When temporary
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 349
bridges or ferries are constructed by the aiiny in the field,
they are classed under the general head of military bridges,
or more properly, pontoniering.
Where the depth of the stream is not great,, the current
slight, and the bottom smooth and hard, the passage may
be effected hy fording. If the bottom be of mud, or large
stones, the passage will be difficult and dangerous, even
where the depth and current are favorable. Under favor-
able circumstances infantry can ford a stream where the
depth is not greater than four feet ; cavalry to a depth of
four or five feet ; but artillery, and engineer trains, cannot
go to a depth of more than two and a half feet, without
greatly exposing their ammunition and military stores.
The fords should be accurately staked out before the pas-
sage is attempted, and ropes ought to be stretched across
the stream, or cavalry and small boats stationed below, to
prevent the loss of life.
Ice may be crossed by infantry, in small detachments.
Its strength may be increased by covering it with boards,
or straw, so as to distribute the weight over a greater sur-
face. By sprinkling water over the straw, and allowing
it to freeze, the mass may be made still more compact.
But large bodies of cavalry, and heavy artillery, cannot
venture on the ice unless it be of great thickness and
strength. An army can never trust, for any length of
time, to either fords or ice ; if it did a freshet or a thaw
would place it in a most critical state. Military bridges
will, therefore, become its only safe reliance for keeping
open its communications.
Military bridges are made with trestles, rafts, boats, and
other floating bodies. Rope bridges are also sometimes
resorted to by troops for passing rivers.
Trestle bridges are principally used for- crossing small
streams not more than seven or eight feet in depth : they
also serve to connect floating bridges with the shore, in
350 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
shallo'w water. The fonn of the trestle is much the same
as that of an ordinary carpenter's horse, i. e., a horizontal
beam supported by four inclined legs. These trestles are
placed in the stream, from twelve to twenty feet apart, and
connected by string-pieces, (or balks as they are termed
in technical language,) which are covered over with
plank. The action of the current against the bridge may
be counteracted by anchors and cables, or by means of
boxes or baskets attached to the legs of the trestles, and
fiUed with stones. A more substantial form may be given
to the bridge by substituting for the trestles, piles, or the
ordinary framed supports so much used in the newer
parts of our country.
For examples of the use of bridges of this description
we would refer to Caesar's celebrated bridge across the
Rhine ; the passage of the Scheldt in 1588 by the Span-
iards ; the passage of 'the Lech in 1631 by Gustavus
Adolphus ; the passage of the Danube in 1740 by Mar-
shal Saxe ; the great bridge across the Var during Na-
poleon's Italian campaigns ; the passage of the Lech in
1 800 by Lecourbe ; the bridges across the Piava, the
Isonso, &c., in the subsequent operations of the army in
Italy ; the celebrated passage of the Danube at the island
of Lobau in 1809; the passage of the Agueda in 1811
by the English ; the passages of the Dwina, the Mos-
cowa, the Dneiper, the Beresina, &c., iji the campaign
of 1812 ; the repairing of the bridge near Dresden, and
the passage of the Elbe in 1813, &c.
Rafts formed of timbers, casks, barrels, &c., are fre-
quently used as military bridges. They may be made to
bear almost any weight, and will answer for the passage
of rivers of any depth and width, provided the current be
not rapid.
Where the bridge is to be supported by rafts made of
solid timbers, these timbers should be first placed in the
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 351
water, to ascertain their natural position of stability, and
then the larger ends cut away on the under side, so as to
present the least possible resistance to the action of the
current. They are afterwards lashed together by strong
rope or withe lashing, or fastened by cross-pieces let into
the timbers, and held firm by bolts, or wooden pins.
These rafts are kept in place by anchors and cables pla-
ced up and down stream. The roadway is formed in
nearly the same manner as for a bridge supported on
trestles. Empty casks, and other floating bodies, may be
substituted in place of logs in the construction of rafts.
For examples of the use of rafts in the construction of
military bridges, we would refer to the passage of the
Seine in 1465 by Count Charolais ; the passage of the
Meuse in 1579 by Alexander Famese ; the passage of
the Vistula in 1704, the Borysthenese in 1709, and the
Sound in 1718, by Charles XII. ; the passage of the
Adige in 1796 ; the passage of the Po in 1807 ; and the
subsequent military operations in the Spanish Peninsula.
Military bridges are frequently made of boats, and the
ordinary river-craft found in the vicinity of the intended
passage. Flat-bottomed boats are the most suitable for
this pmpose, but if these cannot be obtained, keel boats
wiU serve as a substitute. When these water-craft are of
very unequal sizes, (as is frequently the case,) two smaller
ones may be lashed together to form a single support ;
they can be brought to the same level by means of stone
ballast. The gunwales must be suitably arranged for sup-
porting the balks, or else frameworks should be erected
for this purpose from the centre of the boat. The ar-
rangement of the roadway, anchors, &c., is the same as
before.
A bridge-equipage made to follow an army in its move-
ments in the field, is generally composed of light skiffs or
batteaux, and the necessary timbers, planks, anchors, &c.,
352 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
for forming the roadway, and keeping the bridge in Its po-
sition. All these articles are constructed especially for
this purpose. All the wood-work should be of tough and
well-seasoned timber, so as to impose no unnecessary
weight on the wagon trains. The bateaux should also be
made of strong and light materials. For convenience in
transportation, these boats are sometimes made with hinges
so as to fold up. The ribs are usually of oak, and the
sides and bottom of pine. Instead of plank, a covering of
tin, copper, India-rubber, &c., has sometimes been substi-
tuted. Floating supports of this character are often made
in compartments, so as to prevent their sinking when in-
jured by the enemy's projectiles. Indian-rubber pontons
rnay be folded up into a small space, and their slight weight
renders them convenient for -transportation.
On navigable streams a part of the bridge resting on
one or two bateaux should be so arranged that it can be
shipped out of its place, forming a draw for the passage of
river-craft. Indeed, it would be well, even where the
river is not navigable, to form a draw for the passage of
trees, and other floating bodies, sent down by the enemy
against the bridge.
An ordinary bridge-equipage of bateaux, or light pontons,-
for crossing a river of from three to four hundred yards in
width, and of moderate current, will require a train of from
sixty to eighty wagons.* Under favorable circumstances,
and with a well-instructed corps of pontoniers, the bridge
may be thrown across the river, and prepared for the pas-
sage of an army in a few hours at most.f After the troops
* The number of wagons in a ponton train will be greatly diminishsfl
if it be found that Indian-rubber boats may be used as supports for the
bridge. The engineer department of our army are making experi-
ments to determine this point
t In 1746, three bridges of bateaux were thrown across the Fo,near
Placentia, each fifteen hundred feet in length, and entirely comple-
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 353
have passed over, the bridge may be taken up, and re-
placed on the wagons in from a quarter to half an hour.
The following examples will serve to illustrate the use
of different kinds of boat-bridges in military operations : —
the passage of the Rhine, in 1702, by Villars ; thfe pas-
sage of the Dnieper and the Bog, in 1739, by the Rus-
sians ; the passage of the Danube, in 1740, by Marshal
Saxe ; the passage of the Rhine, near Cologne, in 1758,
by the Prince of Clermont ; the passage of the Rhine, in
1795, by Jourdan ; the passage of the Rhine, at Kehl, in
1796, by Moreau ; and again the same year, at Weissen-
thum, and at Neuwied, by Jourdan ; the bridges across
the Rhine, at the sieges of Kehl and Huninguen, in
1797 ; the passage of the Limmat, in 1799, by Massena ;
the passages of the Mincio, the Adige, the Brenta, the Pi-
ava, &c., in 1800 ; the passages of these rivers again in
1805; the passages of the Narew, in 1807, by the Rus-
sians ; the several passages of the Danube, in 1809, by
the French and Austrian armies ; the passages of the Ta-
gus and Douro, in 1810, by the English ; the passages of
the Niemen, the Dwina, the Moskwa, and the Beresina,
in 1812, by the French; and of the great rivers of Ger-
many and France, in 1813 and 1814.
A floating body, propelled from one bank to the other by
the current of the stream, is termed s, flying-bridge. The
usual mode of establishing a ferry of this kind, is to at-
ted in eight hours. In 1757, two bridges of bateaux were thrown
across the Rhine, at Wesel, in half an hour ; again, in the same
year, a tliird bridge was thrown across this river near Dusseldorf, in
six hours. In 1841, Col. Birago, of the Austrian army, arrived on the
bank of the Weisgerben arm of the Danube, with his bridge-equipage,
at a round trot, and immediately began the construction of his bridge,
without any previous preparation or examination. In less than three-
quartets of an hour the bridge was completed, and three loaded four-
hoise wagons psissed over on a trot, followed by a column of infantry.
354 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
tach the head of the boat by means of a cable and anchor,
to some point near the middle of the stream. By steering
obliquely to the current, the boat may be made to cross
and recross at the same point, A single passage may be
made in the same way, by the action of the current with-
out the cable and anchor, but the boat in this case will be
carried some distance down the stream. Rowboats are
employed for crossing over infantry by successive debar-
kations ; but this process is too slow for the passage of a
large force ; it may very well be resorted to as auxiliary
to other means.
Steam craft are so conmion at the present day on all
navigable streams, that an army in the field will frequent-
ly be able to avail itself of this means of passing the
larger rivers. But, in a hostile country, or in one already
passed over by the enemy, it will not be safe to rely with
confidence upon obtaining craft of this character. A well-
organized army will always carry in its train the means of
efiecting a certain and speedy passage of all water-courses
that may intercept its line of march.
Flying-bridges or rowboats were employed in the pas-
sage of the Dwina, in 1701, by the Swedes ; the passage
of the Po, in 1701, by Prince Eugene ; the passage of the
Rhine, at Huninguen, in 1704 ; Jourdan's passage of the
Rhine in 1795 ; Moreau's passage in 1796 ; the sieges of
Kehl and Huninguen in 1797 ; Massena's passage of the
Limmat, and Soult's passage of the Linth, in 1799 ; the
passage of the Rhine, at Lucisteig, in 1800 ; the passage
of the Po, by the French, just before the battle of Maren-
go ; and others in Italy, Germany, and Spain, in the sub-
sequent campaigns of Napoleon.
Military bridges have sometimes been formed of ropes,
cables stretched across the stream, and firmly attached at
each end to trees, or posts let into the earth. If the shore
is of rock, rings with staples let into the stone form the
FIELD-ENGINKERING. 355
best means for securing the ends of the main ropes. Plank
are laid on these cables to form the road-way. The ropes
forming the " side-rail" of the bridge are passed over tres-
tles at each shore, and then fastened as before. Short
vertical ropes attach the main supports to these side ropes,
in order that they may sustain a part of the weight passing
over the bridge. Constructions of this character are fully
described in Douglas's Essay on Military Bridges. For
example, see tYl% passage of the Po, near Casal, in 1515,
by the Swiss ; the bridge thrown over the Clain by Admi-
ral Coligni, at the siege of Poitiers, in 1569 ; the opera-
tions of the Prince of Orange against Ghent and Bruges,
in 1631 ; the passage of the Tagus, at Alcantara, in 1810,
by the English ; the bridge constructed across the Zezere,
by the French, in 1810 ; the bridge thrown across the
Scarpe, near Douai, in 1820; the experiments made at
F6re in 1823, &c.
The passage of a river in the presence of an enemy,
whether acting offensively or in retreat, is an operation of
great delicacy and danger. In either case the army is
called upon to show the coolest and most determined
courage, for its success will depend on its maintaining the
. strictest discipline and good order.
In the case of a retreat the bridge should be covered by
field intrenchments, called a t&te depont, and defended by
a strong guard. If the river be of moderate width, the
enemy may be kept at a distance by heavy batteries on
the opposite shore. As soon as the passage is effected
by the main body, the bridge, if permanent, will be blown
up, or otherwise destroyed by the miners, and if floating,
will be swung round to the other shore. The rear-guard
will pass over in rowboats, or the end pontons detached
for that purpose. An army retreating in the face of an
enemy should never rely upon one single bridge, no mat-
ter what may be its character ; for the slightest accident
356 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
happening to it might expose the whole army to inevita-
ble destruction.
The passage of a river by main force, against an enter-
prising and active enemy on the opposite shore, is always
an operation of the greatest difficulty, and not unfrequent-
ly accompanied with the most bloody results.
The most effectual method of accomplishing this ob-
ject is by stratagem. Demonstrations are made at seve-
ral points at the same time : bodies of troops are thrown
across, after nightfall, in rowboats or by flying-bridges, to
get possession of the opposite bank. The vanguard of
light cavalry may cross by swimming. The pontoniers
should have their bridge equipage in readiness near the
intended point of passage, so that it can be thrown across
with the greatest possible rapidity, while the advanced
guards are still able to keep the enemy at a distance.
Under favorable circumstances the pontoniers will have the
bridge in readiness for the passage of the anny before the
enemy can collect his troops upon the threatened point.
Cannon-balls and hollow shot are the most effectual
means for destroying an enemy's bridge when our batteries
can be planted within reach. When this cannot be done,
we must resort to fire-boats, floating rafts, &c., to accom-
plish our object. Operations of this kind carried on in
the night, are most likely to succeed.
To protect bridges from the action of these floating
bodies, stockades, or floating chevaux-de-frise are con-
structed across the stream at some distance above the
bridge ; strong cables, or chains stretched directly across
the river, or with an angle up stream, may be used in
place of stockades, or in conjunction with them. Guards
should be stationed above the bridge, with boats, ropes,
grapnels, &c., for the purpose of arresting all floating
bodies and drawing them ashore, or directing them safely
through the draw in the bridge arrangement.
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 357
The troops especially charged with the construction
and management of the various kinds of military bridges,
are denominated pontoniers. The duties of these troops
are arduous and important, and, in a country like ours,
intersected by numerous water-courses, the success of a
campaign will often depend upon their skill and efficiency.
Sapping. — This is a general term applied to the opera-
tions of forming trenches, along which troops may ap-
proach a work without being exposed to the fire of the
besieged.
In addition to the ordinary sapping-tools, such as shov-
els, picks, gabion-forks, &c., used in constructing trenches,
there wiU also be required a considerable amount of sap-
ping materials, such as gabions, fascines, sap-fagots, sand-
bags, &c.
The gabion is a cylindrical basket of twigs, about two
feet in diameter, and some three feet in length, and with-
out a bottom. It is made by driving into the ground, in a
circular form, a number of small pickets about an inch in
diameter, and of the length- required for the gabion.
Twigs are wattled between the pickets like ordinary bas-
ket-work, and fastened at the ends by withs or packthread.
Gabions are used in forming saps, batteries, blindages,
powder-magazines, and in revetting the steep slopes of
field-works.
The fascine is a bundle of twigs closely bound up, from
nine to twelve inches in diameter, and from ten to fifteen
or twenty feet in length. The largest are sometimes called
saucissons. In making a fascine, straight twigs about the
thickness of a man's finger are laid side by side, and
firmly compressed together by a strong rope or chain at-
tached to the extremities of two levers. While held in
this position the twigs are firmly bound together by withs
or cords. Fascines are used in constructing trenches, bat-
teries, &c., and for filling up wet ditches.
358 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE,
The sap-fagot is a strong fascine about ten inches in
diameter and two feet in length, with a picket inserted
through the middle. It is used in the double sap in con-
nection with gabions. ^
Sand-bags are usually made of coarse canvass. When
filled with earth they are some six or eight inches in dia-
meter, and from eighteen inches to two feet in length.
From their perishable nature, they are used only when
other materials cannot be procured, and where it is im-
portant to place the troops speedily under cover from the
enemy's fire.
Bales of wool, cotton, hay, straw, &c., may be employed
in sapping for the same purposes as the above materials,
when they can be procured in sufiicient quantity. Pork
and flour barrels, which are usually in abundance in a
camp, are frequently filled with sand and used for forming
magazines, blindages, &c., in field-works.
A trench constructed in ordinary soil beyond the range
of the enemy's grape, is called a simple sap, or ordinary
trench. The earth is thrown up on the side towards the
place besieged, so as to form a kind of parapet to cover
the men in the trench. The labor is here executed under
the supervision of engineer soldiers, by working parties
detached from the other arms. Fig. 50 represents a ver-
tical section of a simple sap.
When within range of *he enemy's grape, the ^^ying- sap
is resorted to in order to place the workmen speedily under
cover. In this operation, gabions are placed in juxtapo-
sition on the side towards the besieged work, and filled
with all possible speed by the workmen. Three rows of
fascines are usually placed on the top of the gabions to in-
crease the height. The most diflicult part of the fljring
sap is executed by engineer troops, and the trench is com-
pleted by the ordinary working parties. Fig. 51 repre-
sents a section of this sap.
FIELD-ENOINEERING. 359
The full-sap is employed when the works of the be-
siegers are within range of musketry, or when the grape
fire of the besieged is so deadly that the flying sap can
no longer be used. This is a difiicult operation, and un-
less execuTfed with great care and by well-instructed engi-
neer troops, the construction of the trench will be attend-
ed with an immense loss of life. The work must be ex-
ecuted under cover of a sap-roller, which is a cylindrical
mass of fascines, wool, or cotton, some two feet in diame-
ter. On very smooth ground a ball-proof shelter on wheels
might be used as a substitute. The sap-roller being
placed along the line of the trench so as to cover the sap-
per in front, who is armed with a musket-proof head-
piece and cuirass, this sapper commences the sap by
placing a gabion on the line of the proposed trench and
fiUs it with earth, working on his hands and knees. Hav-
ing filled the first gabion, he pushes forward the sap-roller
and places a second one next the first, stopping the open
joint between the two with a stop-fagot. The second
gabion being filled in the same manner as the first, others
are successively established. When the first sapper has
advanced a few feet, he is followed by a second, also in
defensive armor, who increases the excavation and em-
bankment ; this sapper is then followed in the same way
by a third and a fourth, after which the trench will be suf-
ficiently advanced to be turned over to the ordina;ry work-
men. The sap-fagots may be removed when the em-
bankment becomes thick enough to resist grape. Fig. 52
represents a plan and section of a full-sap.
When the direction of the trench is such that the men
are exposed on both sides, it will be necessary to throw
up an embankment both to the right and left. This oper-
ation is called the double sap, and is executed by two
parties of sappers, working side by side. In this sap it
will be necessary to frequently change the direction of
360 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
the trench, or to throw up traverses, in order to cover the
men at a distance from the sap-roller. Wing-traverses,
on the side of the trench which is least exposed, some
times serve the same purpose as a double sap.
Mines. — By mining, as a military term, we^understand
the operations resorted to for the demolition, with pow
der, of a military structure of any description. The term
mine is applied both to the excavation charged with pow-
der for the purpose of producing an explosion, and to the
communications which lead to this excavation.
The place in which the charge of powder is lodged is
called the chamber, the commimication by which this
place is reached the gallery, and the excavation made by
the explosion is termed the crater.
The form of the crater caused by an explosion in or-
dinary soils is assumed to be a truncated cone, the diam-
eter, c d, (Fig. 53,) of the lower circle being one-half the
diameter, a h, of the upper circle. This form has never
been ascertained to be exactly correct, but the theoretical
results deduced from a mathematical discussion of this
figure have been fully verified in practice. The radius,
p b, of the upper circle is termed the crater radius ; the
line op, drawn'fromthe centre of the charge perpendicular
to the siu:face where the explosion takes place, is termed
the line of least resistance ; the line o b, drawn from the
centre of the powder to any point in the circumference of
the upper circle, is termed the radius of explosion.
When the crater radius is equal to the line of least re-
sistance, the mine is termed comrrum ; when this radius is
greater than the line of least resistance, the mine is
termed overcharged ; and when the radius is less, under-
charged. A mine of sma.ll dimensions, formed by sinking
a shaft in the ground, is termed a fougasse. The term
camouflet is applied to a mine used to suflTocate the ene-
my's miner, without producing an explosion. Small mines
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 361
made in rock or masonry, merely for the purpose of ex-
cavation, without any considerable external explosion, are
called blasts.
From experiments made on common mines, whose line
of least resistance did not exceed fifteen feet, it has been
ascertained that the tenacity of the earth is completely
destroyed around the crater to a distance equal to the
crater radius, and that empty galleries would be broken
in at once and a half that distance. It has also been
proved by experiment, that the crater radius in over-
charged mines may be increased to six times the line
of least resistance, but not much beyond this ; that within
this limit the diameter of the crater increases nearly in
the ratio of the square roots of the charge ; and that
empty galleries may be destroyed by overcharged mines
at the distance of four times the line of least resistance.
By means of the deductions of physico-mathematical
theory, and the results of experiments, rules have been
determined by which the miner can calculate, with much
accuracy, the charge necessary to produce a required
result in any given soil.
In the earlier stages of the history of this art, mines
were only used to open breaches and demolish masses of
masonry ; but in later times they have been employed as
important elements in the attack and defence of places.
^ An isolated wall, only two or three feet thick, may
readily be demolished by exploding one or two casks of
powder placed in contact with its base. If the wall be
five or six feet thick, the charges should be placed under
the foundation. For walls of still greater thickness it
will be best to open a gallery to the centjre of the wall, a
foot or two above its base, and place the powder in cham-
bers thus excavated. Revetment walls may be over-
turned by placing the charges at the back of the wall,
about one-third or one-quarter of the way up from the
31
362 MILITARY ART- AND SCIENCE.
base. If placed too near the base, a breach will be made
in the wall without overturning it.
To demolish a bridge of masonry the powder should be
lodged in chambers excavated in the centre of the piers.
When there is not time for excavating these chambers in
the piers, a trench may be cut over the key of the arch,
in which the powder is placed and exploded; or, the
casks of powder may be suspended immediately under
the arch, with the same results. Where a saving of pow-
der is of consequence, small chambers may be excavated
in the haunches of the arch, and the mine carefully
tamped before firing it.
Bridges of wood may be destroyed by suspending casks
of powder under the principal timbers, or attaching them
to the supports.
Palisading, gates, doors, &c., may be destroyed in the
same way, by suspending casks or bags of powder against
their sides ; or still more effectually, by burying the
charges just beneath their base.
To demolish a tower, magazine, or house, of masonry,
place charges of powder under the piers and principal
walls of the building. In wooden structures the powder
should be placed under, or attached to the principal sup-
ports. Where time is wanting to effect these arrange-
ments, a building may be blown down by placing a large
mass of powder in the interior. The powder may be
economized, in this case, by putting it in a strong case,
which should be connected with the walls of the building
on all sides by wooden props.
Special treatises on military mining contain full in-
structions for regulating the size and position of the
charge for the various cases that may be met with in
the practical operations of field-engineering.
As applied to the attack and defence of a fortified place,
mines are divided into two general classes — offensive and
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 363
defensive mines. The fonner are employed by the besie-
gers to overthrow the scarps and counterscarps of the
place, to demolish barriers, palisades, walls, and other
temporary means of defence, and to destroy the mines of
the besieged. The latter are employed by the opposite
party to blow up the besiegers' works of attack, and to de-
fend the passage of ditches against an assault. Small
mines called fougasses may be employed for the last
named object. The shell-fougasse is composed of a wooden
box filled with one or more tiers of shells, and buried just
below the surface of the earth. Sometimes a quantity of
powder is placed under the shells, so as to project them
into the air previous to their explosion. The stone fou-
gasse is formed by making a funnel-shaped excavation,
some five or six feet deep, and placing at the bottom a
charge of powder enclosed in a box, and covered with a
strong wooden shield ; several cubic yards of pebbles,
broken stone, or brickbats, are placed against the shield,
and earth well rammed round, to prevent the explosion from
taking place in the wrong direction. These mines are
fired by means of powder hose, or by wires connected
with a galvanic battery.
The defensive mines employed to blow up the besie-
gers' works, are generally common mines with the lines of
least resistance seldom greater than fifteen feet. All the
main galleries and principal branches of mines for a per-
manent fortification are constructed at the same time with
the other portions of the work, leaving only the secondary
branches, chambers, &c., to be made during the siege.
For the general arrangement of these galleries, and the
precautions necessary for their protection from the opera-
tions of the besiegers, reference must be made to trea-
tises specially devoted to the discussion of this subject.
Mines can seldom be employed with advantage in works
of slight relief, and liable to an assault. But if judiciously
364 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
arranged in the plan of tieir construction, and well man-
aged during the operq,^ons of the siege, they contribute
very materially to the length of the defence.
Attack and defence. — This subject admits of two natural
divisions : 1st, of intrenchments, and 2d, of permanent
works.
I. Intrenchments maybe attacked either by surprise, or
by open force. In either case the operations should be
based on exact information of the strength of the works
and the number and character of the garrison — information
that can be obtained from spies, deserters, and prisoners,
and confirmed by examinations or reconnaissances made
by officers of engineers. By these means a pretty accu-
rate knowledge may be obtained of the natural features of
the ground exterior to the works ; their weak and strong
points ; and their interior arrangements for defence.
In an attack by surprise, the troops should consist of a
storming party and a reserve of picked men. The at-
tacking column is preceded by a company of sappers
armed with axes, shovels, picks, crowbars, &c. ; bags of
powder are also used for blowing down gates, palisades,
&c. All the operations must be carried on with the ut-
most dispatch. The time most favorable for a surprise is
an hour or two before day, as at this moment the sentinels
are generally less vigilant, and the garrison in a profound
sleep ; moreover, the subsequent operations, after the first
surprise, will be facilitated by the approach of day. Un-
der certain circumstances, it may be advisable to make
false attacks at the same time with the true one, in order
to distract the attention of the garrison from the true point
of danger. But false attacks have, in general, the objec-
tion of dividing the forces of the assailants as well as of
the assailed. In all attacks by surprise, secrecy is the
soul of the enterprise.
In an open assault, if artillery be employed, the troops
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 365
should be drawn up in a sheltered position, until the fire
of the works is silenced, and breaches effected in the par-
apet. But if the bayonet alone be resorted to, the troops
are immediately brought forward at the beginning of the
assault. The attack is begun by a storming party of picked
men : they are preceded, as before, by a body of sappers,
provided with necessary means for removing obstacles,
and followed by a second detachment of engineers, who
will widen the passages, and render them more accessi-
ble to the main body of troops who now advance to the
assistance of the storming party. If the assailants should
be arrested at the counterscarp by obstacles which must
be removed before any farther progress can be made, the
infantry troops of the detachment display and open a fire
upon the assailed, in order to divert their fire from the
sappers. A few pieces of light artillery, on the flanks of
the column, may sometimes be employed for this purpose
with great advantage.
The storming party should always be provided with sca-
ling-ladders, planks, fascines, &c., for crossing the ditch,
and mounting the scarp. If the counterscarp be revetted
with masonry, the troops must either descend by ladders,
or fill up the ditch with fascines, bales of straw, bundles of
wool, &c. : if not revetted, a passage for the troops into
the ditch will soon be formed by the shovels of the sap-
pers. When the ditch is gained, shelter is sought in a
dead angle till the means are prepared for mounting the
scarp, and storming the work. If the scarp be of earth
only, the sappers will soon prepare a passage for the es-
calade ; but if revetted with masonry, the walls must be
breached with hollow shot, or scaled by means of ladders.
In the defence, the strictest vigilance should be at all
times exerted to guard against a surprise : sentinels are
posted on all the most commanding points of the work ;
all the avenues of approach are most thoroughly guarded ;
366 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
and patroles are constantly scouring the ground in all di-
rections. At night all these precautions are redoubled.
Light and fire-balls are thrown out in front of the work to
light up the ground, and discover the movements and ap-
proach of the enemy. Each man should have his particu-
lar post assigned to him, and be thoroughly instructed in
the duties he will have to perform. All auxiliary arrange-
ments, such as palisades, abattis, &c., should be defended
with the utmost obstinacy ; the longer the enemy is held
in check by these obstacles, the longer will he be exposed
to the grape and musketry of the main work. When he
assaults the parapet, he will be opposed by the bayonet in
front and a well-aimed fire in flank. While in the ditch,
or as he mounts the scarp, hollow projectiles, incendiary
preparations, stones, logs, &c., will be rolled down upon
his head. But when the assaulting column has gained
the top of the scarp, the bayonet forms the most effective
means of resistance.
The measures resorted to in the attack and defence of
the larger class of field-works, will necessarily partake
much of the nature of the operations employed in the at-
tack and defence of permanent fortifications.
II. The attack and defence of a fortress may be car-
ried on either by a regular siege, or by irregidar opera-
tions and an assault. The latter plan has sometimes been
adopted when the works of the place were weak and im-
properly defended ; where the time and means were want-
ing for conducting a regular siege ; or where the assail-
ants were ignorant of the means proper to be resorted to
for the reduction of the fortress. Such operations, how-
ever, are usually attended by an immense sacrifice of hu-
man life, and the general who neglects to employ aU the
resources of the engineer's art in carrying on a siege, is
justly chargeable with the lives of his men. In the siege
of Cambrai, Louis XIV., on the solicitation of Du Metz,
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 367
but contrary to the advice of Vauban, ordered the demi
lune to be taken by assault, instead of waiting for the re-
sult of a regular siege. The assault was made, but it was
unsuccessful, and the French sustained great losses. The
king now directed Vauban to take the demi-lune by regu-
lar approaches, which was done in a very short time, and
with a loss of only five men ! Again, at the siege of Ypres,
the generals advised an assault before the breaches were
ready. " You will gain a day by the assault," said Vauban,
" but you will lose a thousand men." The king directed
the regular works to be continued, and the next day the
place was taken with but little loss to the besiegers.
But a work may be of such a character as to render it
unnecessary to resort to aU the works of attack which
would be required for the reduction of a regular bastioned
fort, on a horizontal site. For example : the nature of the
ground may be such as to enable the troops to approach to
the foot of the glacis, without erecting any works what-
ever ; of course, all the works up to the third parallel may
in this case be dispensed with without any violation of the
rules of a siege. Again, the point of attack may be such
that the other parts of the place will not flank the works
of approach ; here a single line of hoyaux and short par-
allels may be all-sufficient.
But for the purpose of discussion, we wiU here suppose
the place besieged to be a regular bastioned work on a
horizontal site, (Fig. 54.)
The operations of the siege may be divided into three
distinct periods.
1st. The preliminary operations of the attack and de-
fence previous to the opening of the trenches.
2d. The operations of the two parties from the opening
of the trenches to the establishment of the third parallel.
3d. From the completion of the third parallel to the re-
duction of the place.
368 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
First period. The object of the investment of the place is
to cut off all communication between the work and the
exterior, thus preventing it from receiving succors, pro-
visions, and military munitions, and also to facilitate a
close reconnoissance of the place by the engineers, who
slould always accompany the investing corps, and pursue
their labors under its protection. This corps should be
composed chiefly of light troops — cavalry, light infantry,
horse artillery, " brigades of engineers and mounted sap-
pers," — ^who march in advance of the besieging army, and,
by a sudden movement, surround the work, seize upon all
the avenues of approach, and carry off every thing without
the work that can be of service either to the garrison or to
the besiegers. To effect this object, the enterprise must
be conducted with secrecy and dispatch.
The investing corps is now distributed around the work
in the most favorable positions for cutting off all access
to it, and also to prevent any commimication with the ex-
terior by detachments from the garrison, and even single in-
dividuals are sent out to give intelligence to a succoring ar-
my or to reconnoitre the operations of the besieging corps.
These posts and sentinels, called the daily cordon, are
placed some mile or mile and a half from the work, and
beyond the reach of the guns. But in the night-time
these posts are insuflicient to accomplish their object, and
consequently as soon as it is dark the troops move up as
close to the work as possible without being exposed to the
fire of musketry. This arrangement constitutes the nightly
cordon.
By the time the main army arrives the reconnoissance
will be sufficiently complete to enable the chief engineer
to lay 'before the general the outline of his plan of attack,
so as to establish the position of his dSpots and camp.
These will be placed some two miles from the work, ac-
cording to the nature of the ground. As they occupy a
PIELD-ENGINEERING. 369
considerable extent of ground around the work, it will gene-
rally be necessary to form intrencbments strong enough to
prevent succors of troops, provisions, &c., from being
thrown into the place, and also to restrain the excursions
of the garrison. The works thrown up between the
camp and besieged place are termed the line ofcounterval-
lation, and those on the exterior side of the camp form the
line of circumvallation. These lines are generally about
six hundred yards apart. It is not unusual in modem
warfare to dispense with lines of circumvallation, (except
a few detached works for covering the parks of the engi-
neers and artillery,) and to hold the succoring army in
check by means of an opposing force, called the army of
observation.
The measures of defence resorted to by the garrison
will, of course, be subordinate, in some degree, to those
of attack. As soon as any danger of an investment is ap-
prehended, the commanding general should collect into
the place all the necessary provisions, forage, military
munitions, &c., to be found in the surrounding country ;
all useless persons should be expelled from the garrison ;
a supply of timber for the works of the engineers and ar-
tillery, fascines, gabions, palisades, &c., prepared ; all
ground within cannon range around the work levelled ;
hedges and trees cut down ; holes filled up ; temporary
buildings demolished or burnt ; and all obstacles capable
of covering an enemy and interrupting the fire of the
work, removed.
During this period the engineer troops and working
parties detached from the other arms will be most actively
employed. As soon as the investing corps makes its ap-
pearance, bodies of light troops are thrown out to cut off
reconnoitring parties, and, if possible, to draw the enemy
into ambush. To facilitate these exterior operations, and
to prevent a surprise, several guns of long range are
370 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
placed on the salients of the bastions and demi-lunes, and
others, loaded with grape, in the embrasures of the flanks,
so as to sweep the ditches. About one-third of the gar-
rison may be employed in exterior operations, and the
other two-thirds in arranging the means of defence in the
interior.
Second period. — As soon as the engineers have com-
pleted their reconnaissances and determined on the front
of attack, and all the other preparations arfe made, the
general will direct the opening of the trenches. The
ground being previously marked out, battalions of light
troops, termed guards of the trenches, as soon as it is dark,
are placed about thirty yards in front of the first parallel,
(A. Fig. 54,) with smaller sections, and sentinels about
the same distance further in advance. These guards lie
down, or otherwise conceal themselves from the fire of
the work. The engineer troops and detachments of work-
men being first marched to the depots and supplied with
all the necessary tools for carrying on the work, now
commence their labors under the protection of these
guards. By daybreak the construction of the first parallel,
and the trenches connecting it with the depots, will be
sufficiently advanced to cover the men from the fire of
the place ; the guards will therefore be withdrawn, and
the workmen continue their labors during the day to give
the trenches the proper size and form.
The parallels are the long lines of trench which en-
velop the besieged work, and serve both as covered ways
for the circulation of the besiegers, and as means of de-
fence against sorties from the garrison ; they are therefore
arranged with banquettes for musketry fire. The boyaux
are trenches run in a zigzag direction along the capitals
of the front of attack, and are intended exclusively for the
circulation of the troops ; they have no banquettes. The
first parallel is about six himdred yards from the place,
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 371
and consequently beyond the reach of grape. It is con-
structed by the simple sap. After the first night, the
guards, instead of advancing in front of the work, are
placed in the trenches.
The second parallel (B) is made some three hundred
or three hundred and fifty yards from the place, and being
much exposed to grape, the jlyirtg-sap is employed in its
construction. Batteries (H) are established between the
first and second parallels to silence the fire of the demi-
Iimes of the collateral bastions, and others (I) near the
second parallel, to enfilade the faces of the front of at-
tack. These are armed in part with mortars and in part
with heavy siege-pieces.
The works are now gradually pushed forward to the
third parallel, (C,) which is constructed about sixty yards
from the salients of the place. As the operations of the
besiegers are here greatly exposed to musketry fire, the
trenches are constructed by iha full-sap. The third paral-
lel, having to contain the guards of the trenches, and being
of less development than the two preceding, is made much
wider. The second parallel now contains the reserve,
and the first parallel becomes the depot of materials.
Demi-parallels (G) are frequently established between the
second and third, to be occupied by detachments of guards.
The operations of defence during this period are so
directed as to harass the workmen in the trenches and
retard the advance of the works of attack. Garrison
pieces of long range and large howitzers are brought for-
ward on the salients of the bastions and demi-lunes of at-
tack, so as to fire in ricochet along the capitals on which
the boyaux must be pushed : light and fire-balls are thrown
out as soon as it becomes dark, to light up the ground oc-
cupied by the besiegers, thus exposing them to the fire of
the work and to the attacks of the sortie parties. These
parties are composed of light troops who charge the guards
372 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE,
and compel the workmen to abandon their sapping tools
and stand upon the defence. They are most effective
when the besiegers commence the second parallel, as the
guards in the first parallel are not so immediately at hand
to protect the workmen. When the sortie detachment has
driven these workmen from the trenches, instead of pur-
suing them into the first parallel, it will display itself in
battle order to cover the engineer troops, (who should al-
ways accompany the detachment in this enterprise,) while
they fill up the trenches and destroy the implements of
the besiegers. When the guards of the trenches appear
in force, the detachment will retire in such a way, if pos-
sible, as to drawThe enemy within range of the grape and
musketry of the collateral works. These sorties, if suc-
cessful, may be frequently repeated, for they tend very
much to prolong the siege. The best time for making
them is an hour or two before day, when the workmen and
guards are fatigued with the labors of the night. While
the besiegers are establishing their enfilading batteries, a
strong fire of solid shot and shells will be concentrated on
the points selected for their construction. The garrison
will also labor during this period to put the work into a
complete state of defence : constructing all necessary pa-
lisadings, traverses, blindages, barriers ; and strengthening,
if necessary, the covering of the magazines.
Third period. — After the completion of the third paral-
lel, the crowning of the covered way may be effected by
storm, by regular approaches, or (if the work is secured by
defensive mines) by a subterranean warfare.
In the first case stone mortar-batteries are established
in front of the third parallel, which, on a given signal, will
open their fire in concert with all the enfilading and mor-
tar batteries. When this fire has produced its effect in
clearing the outworks, picked troops will sally forth and
carry the covered way with the bayonet, sheltering them-
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 373
selves behind the traverses until the sappers throw up a
trench some four or five yards from the crest of the glacis,
high enough to protect the troops from the fire of the be-
sieged. It may afterwards be connected with the third
parallel by boyaux.
When the covered way is to be crowned by regular ap-
proaches, a double sap is pushed forward from the third
parallel to within thirty yards of the salient of the covered
way ; the trench is then extended some fifteen or twenty
yards to the right or left, and the earth thrown up high
enough to enable the besiegers to obtain a plunging fire
into the covered way, and thus prevent the enemy from
occupying it. This mound of earth is termed a trench ca-
valier, (0.) Boyaux are now pushed forward to the crown-
ing of the covered way and the establishing of breach bat-
teries, (J.) Descents are then constructed into the ditches,
and as soon as these batteries have made a breach into
the walls of the bastions and outworks, the boyaux are
pushed across the ditches and lodgments efiected in the
breaches. The demi-lune is first carried ; next the demi-
lune redoubt and bastion ; and lastly, the interior retrench-
ments and citadel. In some cases the breaches are car-
ried by assault, but the same objection is applicable here
as in the storming of the covered way ; time is gained, but
at an immense expense of human life.
If the place is defended by mines it will be necessary
for the besiegers to counteract the effects of these works
by resorting to the slow and tedious operations of a sub-
terranean warfare. In this case a fourth trench is formed
in front of the third parallel ; shafts are sunk in this,
about six yards apart, for establishing overcharged mines ;
as soon as the galleries of the besieged are destroyed by
the explosion of these mines, the covered way is attacked
by storm ; other mines are established on the terre-plain
of the covered way to destroy the entrance to the gal-
374 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Isries, and thus deprive the besieged of the use of their
entire system of mines.
The measures of defence during this period must em-
brace every thing calculated to retard the works of the be-
siegers. This may be most effectually accomplished by
maintaining a constant fire of grape and musketry on the
heads of the sap, and throwing grenades, shells, &c., into
the trenches, to harass and destroy the workmen. As
the musketry fire of the besiegers now becomes very de-
structive to the artillerists at the guns, strong musket-proof
blinds are arranged to mask the mouths of the embrasures
when the guns are not in battery, and also sloping blind-
ages to cover the men when serving at the pieces. The
possession of the outworks should be disputed inch by
inch, and when the besiegers have reached the ditch of
the body of the place, sorties, and every species of pro-
jectile, should be employed to drive off the sappers, and
to retard the construction of their works. In fine, all the
resources of the engineer's art should be put in requisition
for the defence of the breach, and the final assault should
be vigorously resisted by the bayonet, and by a well-sus-
tained fire from all the collateral works.
With respect to the relative strength of the opposing
forces it may be well to remark, that if the fortress is
properly constructed the garrison will be able to resist a
besieging army six times as numerous as itself. Such is
the estimate of the best engineers.*
* A good knowledge of the several subjects discussed in this chapter
may be derived &om the writings of Vauban, Cormoutaigne, and Noi-
zet de St. Paul, on the attack and defence of places and field fortifica-
tion ; the several manuela used in the French service on sapping, mi-
nmg, and pontoniering ; Col. Pasley's experiments on the operations of
a siege, sapping, mining, &c. ; Douglas's work on military bridges;
Macauley's work on field fortification ; and Professor Mahan's Treatise
on Field Fortification. This last is undoubtedly the very best work
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 375
that has ever been written on field fortification, and every officer going
into the field should supply himself with a copy.
The following eire reconunended as books of reference on subjects
discussed in the three preceding chapters.
Memorial pour la fortification permanenie et pasaagere. Cormou-
taigne.
Defense des places. Cormontaigne.
Attaque des places. Cormontaigne.
Attaque des places. Vauban.
Traits des mines. Vauban.
Memorial pour la castrametation et la fortification paesagere.
Lafitte-Clav€.
Exercice sur les fortifications. Duvigneau.
Memorial de Vofficier du genie. A periodical of rare merit, con-
taining most valuable military and scientific matter. It is conducted
by officers of the French corps of engineers. It has aheady reached
its fourteenth number, each number forming a volume.
Traite eomplet de fortification. Noizet de St. Paul.
Traite d'art militairc et de la fortification. Gay de Vernon.
Art de la guerre. Kogniat.
Essai general de fortification, &c. Bousmard.
Aide-memoire portatif d Vusage des ofiiciers du genie. LaiEU&
A very valuable and useful book.
Aide-memoire de I'ingenieur militaire. Grivet
Cours d?art militaire. Laurillard Fallot
Cours de fortification, &c. Lavart.
Le litre de la guerre. Perrot.
Journaux des sieges dans la peninsule. Belmas.
Journal of Sieges in Spain. John Jones.
Both of the above eire works of great value.
Cours d'art militaire et de fortification militaire. Frangois.
Architettura militare. Harchi.
Essai sur la fortification. Baltard.
La fortification. Bar-le-Duc.
Elemena de fortification. Bellaire.
La science des ingenieurs. B^Iidor.
L'art universel des fortifications. Bitain^neu.
Nouvelle maniere de fortifier les places. BlondeL
Les sept sieges de Lille. Brun Lavaine.
Defense des places fortes. Camot.
Memoire sur la fortification. Camot.
376 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Defense de Saragosse. Cavallero.
Memoires sur la fortification. Cboumara.
Nouvelle fortification. Coehom.
Theorie de la fortification. Cugnot
Dee fortifications, &c. &c. Daigon.
Relation de la defense de Dantzik. D'Artoia.
lies fortifications. Deville.
Peribologie. Dilich.
De la fortification permanente. Dufonr. A work of merit.
Essai sur la defense des Hats par les fortifications. Dnyivier.
Attaque et defense des places du camp de St. Omer.
L'ecole de la fortification. Fallois.
Introduction d la fortification. De Fer.
Precis de la defense de Valenciennes, Ferrand.
Traits theorique, &c. Foissac-Latour. *
Examen detaille, &c. Foissac-Latoui.
Les ouvrages militairea de Fosse.
Instruction sur la fortification, &c. Gaillaid.
Memoires pour V attaque et defense d?une place. Goulon.
Siege of Peschiera. Henin.
Journal du siege de Philisbourg.
Precis du siege de Dantzick. Kirgener.
Deuxieme defense de Badajos. Lamare.
Fortification, et I'attaque et defense des places. Xeblond.
CEuvres de Lefehme.
U architecture des forteressea. Maudar.
Traite sur I'art des sieges. Mazeroy. ■»
La sfirete des eiats par le moyen des forteresses. Maigret.
Defense d'Ancone. Mangourit.
Fortification. Marolois.
Siege de Turin. Mengin.
Recherches sur Vart defermf, &c. Michaloz.
La fortification de campagne, &c. Miller.
L'art defensif, &c. Montalembert.
Journaux des sieges de Flandre,
Relations des sieges en Europe, &c. Musaet-Fathay. A TMry
f aluable and interesting work.
Relation du siege de Metz.
Relation du siege d'Anvers.
Les sieges de Jaffa et de St. Jean d^Acre.
Les sieges de Saragosse et de Tortoae. Rogniot.
FIELD-ENGINEERING. 377
Siege de Dantzick. Sainte-Susanne.
Memoire sur la fortification permanente. S4a.
Le siege de Constantine.
EUmens de fortification. Trincano.
Des places fortes. Valaz^.
Essay on Military Bridges. Douglas. A valuable woik.
Guide du pontonier. Drieu.
Memoire sur la guerre aouterraine. Coutele.
Traite des mines. Etienne.
TVaite de I'art du mineur. Geuss.
Traite de fortification souterraine. Gillot.
Traite pratique et theorique des mines. Lebrun
Nouveau traite des mines, &c. Frudhomme.
Manuel du sapeur. Used in the French service.
Manuel du mineur. " " "
Manuel du pontonier. " " "
Essay on Field Fortifications. Pleydell.
Elements of Field Fortifications. Lochee.
Relation du siege de Grave et Mayence.
Sieges de Genes. Thi^bault.
Traite de fortification souterraine. .Mouze.
Militairische Mittheilungen. Xilander.
Die Befestigung der Statten. Hauser.
Ahhandlung uber die Befestigungskunst, &c. Hauser
Versuch uber die VerschanzungsJeunst. Muller.
Course of Elementary Fortification. Pasley. This is a work of
much detail — useful, no doubt, to an uneducated engineer soldier, but
to an officer at all acquainted with his profession, it must seem ridicu-
lously minute.
To the above list might be added a long list of books on that branch
of the engineer's ait called constructions ; but as this part of the pro-
fession is, in some degree, common both to the civil and military engi-
neer, it is not deemed necessary to include works of this character in a
list of books strictly military.
3TS MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
CHAPTER XV.
MILITARY EDUCATION APPOINTMENT AND PROMOTION.
With the Romans, six years' instruction was required
to make a soldier ; and so great importance did these an-
cient conquerors of the world attach to military education
and discipline, that the very name of their army was de-
rived from the verb to practise.
Modern nations, learning from experience that military
success depends more upon skill and discipline than upon
numbers, have generally adopted the same rule as the Ro-
mans ; and nearly all of the European powers have estab-
lished military schools for the education of their officers
and the instruction of their soldiers.
France, which has long taken the lead in military sci-
ence, has six military schools for the instruction of officers,
containing in all more than one thousand pupils, and nu-
merous division and regimental schools for the sub-officers
and soldiers.
Prussia maintains some twelve general schools for mil-
itary education, which contain about three thousand pu-
pils, and also numerous division, brigade, garrison, and
company schools for practical instruction.
Austria has some fifty military schools, which contain
in all about four thousand pupils.
Russia has thirty-five engineer and artillery technical
schools, with about two thousand pupils ; twenty-five mili-
tary schools for the noblesse, containing eight thousand
seven hundred pupils ; corps iTarmee schools, with several
thousand pupils ; regimental schools, with eleven thou-
MILITARY EDUCATION. 379
sand pupils ; and brigade-schools, with upwards of one
hundred and fifty-six thousand scholars ; — ^making in all
about two hundred thousand pupils in her military schools !
England has five military schools of instruction for offi-
cers, number of pupils not known ; a miUtary orphan
school, with about twelve thousand pupils ; and numerous
depot and regimental schools of practice.
The smaller European powers — Belgium, Sardinia, Na-
ples, Spain, Portugal, Denmark, Sweden, Wurtemberg,
Bavaria, Baden, have each several military schools, with
a large number of pupils.
It is seen from these statistics, that the European pow-
ers are not so negligent in educating their officers, and in
instructing and disciplining their soldiers, as some in this
country would have us believe.
Washington, Hamilton, Knox, Pickering, and others,
learning, by their own experience in the war of the Amer-
ican revolution, the great necessity of military education,
urged upon our government, as early as 1783, the impor-
tance of establishing a military academy in this country,
but the subject continued to be postponed from year to year
till 1802. In 1794, the subaltern grade of cadet was cre-
ated by an act of Congress, the officers of this grade being
attached to their regiments, and " furnished at the public
expense with the necessary books, instruments, and appa-
ratus" for their instruction. But this plan of educating
young officers at their posts was found impracticable, and
in his last annual message, Dec. 7th, 1796, Washington
urged again, in strong language, the establishment of a
military academy, where a regular course of military in-
struction could be given. " Whatever argument," said he,
" may be drawn from particular examples, superficially
viewed, a thorough examination of the subject will evince
that the art of war is both comprehensive and complicated ;
that it demands much previous study ; and that the pos-
380 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
session of it in its most improved and perfect state is al-
ways of great moment to the security of a nation.''
The subject was however postponed from time to time,
till March, 1802, when a bill was passed establishing the
Military Academy. It was at first on a small scale, and its
course of instruction meager and deficient. It gradually
became enlarged, but lingered along, with no great im-
provement, tUl 1817, when Capt. Patridge was dismissed
from the superintendency, and Col. Thayer put in charge.
From this period we date the commencement of the suc-
cess and reputation which the Military Academy has since
enjoyed.
This institution, as now organized, consists of one cadet
from each congressional district, and a few at large, making
an average of two hundred and thirty-seven. The course
of instruction is four years, after which time the cadet is
sent to his regiment or corps, with higher rank if there are
vacancies, but if there are no vacancies, he goes as a cadet,
with the brevet rank of the next higher grade.
The examination for admission to the institution is a
very limited one, being confined to the elementary branches
of an English education.
The annual course at the academy is divided into two
distinct periods, the first extending from June till Septem-
ber, and the second from September to the following June.
During the first period, the cadets leave their barracks and
encamp in tents, and are made subject to the police and
discipline of an army in time of war. In addition to the
thorough and severe course of practical exercises and
drills in the difierent arms during these three summer
months of each year, they are made to perform the same
tours of guard-duty, night and day, as is required of the
common soldier in time of actual war. This continues till
the first of September of each year, when the cadets re-
turn to their barracks, and for the remaining nine months
MILITARY EDUCATION. 381
devote themselves to the prescribed course of scientific and
military studies, intermixed with military exercises and
practical operations in the laboratory and on the field.
To test the progress of the cadets in their studies,
there are held semi-annual public examinations. These
examinations are strict and severe, and all who fail to
come up to the fixed standard are obliged to withdraw
from the institution, to allow some one else from the
same district to make the trial.
During their course of studies the cadets, as warrant-
officers of the army, draw pay barely sufiicient to defray
their necessary expenses. The allowance to each is
twenty-six dollars per month, but none of this is paid to
the cadet, but is applied to the purchase of books, fuel,
lights, clothing, board, &c.
This institution furnishes each year to the army about
forty subaltern officers, thoroughly instructed in all the
theoretical and practical duties of their profession. After
completing this course, the cadet is usually promoted
from the grade of warrant-oiEcer to that of a commis-
sioned officer, and is immediately put on duty with his
regiment or corps.
This system of appointment to the army has produced
the most satisfactory results, and has received the com-
mendation of our best military men, and the approbation
of all our presidents and most able statesmen. Never-
theless, it has occasionally met with strong opposition ;
this opposition springing in part from a want of proper
information respecting the character and working of the
system, and in part from the combined efibrts of those
who from negligence or incapacity have failed to pass
their examinations for promotion, and of those who, from
a conscious want of qualifications or merit, feel assured
that they cannot obtain commissions in the army so long
as this system of merit, as fixed by examination, shall
382 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
exist. Hence the effort to destroy the Military Academy,
and to throw the army entirely open to political appoint-
ment.
Several legislative bodies, acting under these combined
influences, have passed resolutions, giving various objec-
tions to the Military Academy, and recommending that it
be abolished. The objections made by the legislatures
of Tennessee, Ohio, Connecticut, New Hampshire, and
Maine, are mostly founded on false information, and may
be readily answered by reference to the ofiicial records
of the War-ofEce. But it is not the present object to en-
ter into a general discussion of the charges against that
institution, except so far as they are connected with the
importance of military education, and the rules of military
appointment and promotion.
It has been alleged by many of the opponents of the
West Point Academy, that military instruction is of little
or no advantage to a general ; — that in the wars of 'Napo-
leon, and in the American Revolution, and the American
war of 1812, armies were generally led to victory by
men without a military education, and unacquainted with
military science ; — and that in the event of another war
in this country, we must seek our generals in the ranks
of civil life, rather than among the graduates of our Mil-
itary Academy.
The objection here made to military education will
hold with equal force against education in any other pro-
fession. We sometimes find men who have become emi-
nent in the pulpit and at the bar, or in medicine and the
sciences, without ever having enjoyed the advantages of
an education in academic or collegiate halls, and perhaps
even without that preliminary instruction usually deemed
necessary for professional pursuits. Shall we therefore
abolish all our colleges, theological seminaries, schools
of law and medicine, our academies and primary schools,
MILITARY EDUCATION. 383
and seek for our professional men among the uneducated
and tlie ignorant ? If professional ignorance be a recom-
mendation in our generals, why not also in our lawyers
and our surgeons 1 If we deem professional instruction
requisite for the care of our individual property and
health, shall we require less for guarding the honor and
safety of our country, the reputation of our arms, and the
lives of thousands of our citizens ?
But in reality, were not these men to whom we have
alluded eminent in their several professions in spite of,
rather than by means of their want of a professional edu-
cation ? And have not such men, feeling the disadvan-
tages under which they were forced to labor, been almost
without exception the advocates of education in others ?
But is it true that most of the generals of distinction
in the more recent wars were men destitute of military
education, — ^men who rose from the ranks to the pinnacle
of military glory, through the combined influence of ig-
norance of military science and contempt for military in-
struction ? Let us glance at the lives of the most distin-
guished of the generals of the French Revolution, for
these are the men to whom reference is continually made
to prove that the Military Academy is an unnecessary
and useless institution, the best generals being invariably
found in the ranks of an army, and not in the ranks of
military schools. Facts may serve to convince, where
reasoning is of no avail.
Napoleon himself was a pupil of the military schools
of Brienne and Paris, and had all the advantages of the
best military and scientific instruction given in France.
Dessaix was a pupil of the military school of Effiat,
with all the advantages which wealth and nobility could
procure. Davoust was a pupil of the military school of
Auxerre, and a feHow-pupil with Napoleon in the military
school of Paris. Kleber was educated at the military
384 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
school of Bavaria. Eugene Beauhamais was a pupil of
St. Germain-en-Loye, and had for his military instructor
the great captain of the age. His whole life was devoted
to the mUi^tary art. Berthier and Marmont were both
sons of officers, and, being early intended for the army,
they received military educations. Lecourbe had also
the advantages of a military education before entering the
army. Pichegru and Duroc were pupils of the military
school of Brienne. Drouet was a pupil of the artillery
school. Foy was first educated in the college of Sois-
sons, and afterwards in the military schools of La F^re
and Chalons. Carnot, called the " Organizer of French
victory," received a good early education, and was also a
pupil of the engineer school of Mezieres.
Several of the distinguished French generals at first re-
ceived good scientific and literary educations in the col-
leges of France, and then acquired their military instruc-
tion in the subordinate grades of the army ; and by this
means, before their promotion to responsible offices, ac-
quired a thorough practical instruction, founded on a basis
of a thorough preliminary education. Such was Suchet,
a pupil of the college of Lisle-Barbe ; Lannes, a pupil of
the college of Lectoure ; and Mortier, who was most care-
fully educated at Cambrai ; Lefebvre and Murat were
both educated for the church, though the latter profited but
little by his instruction ; Moreau and Joubert were educa-
ted for the bar ; Massena was not a college graduate, but
he received a good preliminary education, and for several
years before he entered the army as an officer, he had en-
joyed all the advantages afforded by leisure and affluent
circumstances ; Ney, though poor, received a good prelim-
inary education, and entered a notary's office to study a
profession. Hoche was destitute of the advantages of
early education, but, anxious to supply this deficiency, he
early distinguished himself by his effiarts to procure books,
MILITARY EDUCATION. 385
and by his extraordinary devotion to military studies*., By
several years devoted in this way to professional studies
and the practical duties of a .subordinate grade: in. the army,
Hoche. acquired aimilitary knowledge^ which early distin-
guished him among the generals, of the French Revolution.
Soult and Gouvion-Saint-Cyr, being of: parents in limited
circumstances, had not the advantages of extensive educa-
tioni' but close and diligent application, an ardent ambition,
and strong.. and powetfid, intelle,ct,.;combined, with long
years of service in the practical operations of the field, at
length enabled these men to . overcome all obstacles,: and
fprce. their way tOi the. higher walks, of their professions.
But both knew from experience the advantages; of military
injstruction, and the importance of professional education
in the army, and they have consequently both been the
warmest friends and. strongest advocates of the: military
schools of:France.
.., The .Polytechnic School was established too late to fur-
nish. ofEceis for any of the earlier wars of Napoleon; but
in. his last campaigns he began, to reap the advantages of
an institution which had been underi his fostering care, and
Bertrand, Dode, Duponthon, Haxo, Rogniat, Fleury, Va-
lazej Gourgaud, Chamberry, and a host of other- distin-
guished young generals, fully justified the praises which
the emperor. lavished, on his 'fpoulet. aux Kufs^ i'or," — the
hen that laid him golden eggs !,. ..
;.. In our own revolutionary wary; Generals Washington,
Hamilton, Gates, Schuyler, Knox, Alexander,. (Lord Stir-
ling,) the two Clintons:, the Lees, and others, were men of
fme education, and a part of them of high literary and
scii«ntifie.jattaiimients.; Washington, Gates, Chairles Lee,
the Clintons, and some others^ had considerable ^militaiy
experience even before the war: nevertheless., so desti-;
tute was the army, generally, of military science, that flie
govenunent was under the necessity pf peeking it in
33
386 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
foreigners — in the La Fayettes, the Kosciuskos, the Steu-
bens, the De Kalbs, the Pulaskis, the DuportailS — ^who
were immediately promoted to the highest ranks in our
army. In fact the of&cers of our scientific corps were
then nearly all foreigners.
But, say the opponents of the Academy, imlitaiy know-
ledge and education are not the only requisites for military
success ; youthful enterprise and efficiency are far more
important than a mere acqiiaintance with miUtaiy science
and the military art : long service in garrison, combined
with the indolent habits acquired by officers of a peace-
establishment, so deadens the enterprise of the older offi-
cers of the army, that it must inevitably Jesuit, in Case of
war, that military energy and efficiency will be derivied
from the ranks of civil life.
We are not disposed to question the importance of
youthful energy in the commander of an army, and we
readily admit that while seeking to secure to our service
a due degree of military knowledge, We should also be
very careful not to destroy its influence by loading it down
with the dead weights of effete seniority. But we do
question the wisdom of the means proposed for supplying
our army with this desired efficiency. Minds stored with
vast funds of professional knowledge, and the rich lore of
past history ; judgments ripened by long study and expe-
rience ; with passions extinguished, or at least softened
by the mellowing influence of age^ — ^theSe may be best
suited for judges and statesmen, for here there is time for
deliberation, for the slow and mature judgment of years.
But for a general in the, field, other qualities are sdso re-
quired. Not only is military knowledge requisite for di-
recting the blow, but he must also have the military ener-
gy necessary for striking that blow, and the military ac-
tivity necessary for parrying the attacks of the enemy. A
rapid coup d'oeil, prompt decision, active movements, are
MILITARY EDUCATION. 387
as ihdispensable as sound judgment ; for the general must
see, and decide, and act, all in the same instant. Accord-
ingly we find that most great generals of ancient and mod-
ern times have gained their laurels while still young."
Philip of Macedon ascended the throne at the age of
twenty-two, and soon distinguished himself in his wars
with the neighboring states. At the age of forty-five he
had conquered all Greece. He died at forty-seven.
Alexander the Great had defeated the celebirated The-
ban band at the battle of Cheronea, and gained a military
reputation at the age of eighteen. He ascended the throne
of his father Philip before twenty, and at twenty-five had
reached the zenith of his military glory, having already
conquered the world. He died before the age of thirty-
cWO.
Julius Caesar commanded the fleet sent to blockade
ilitylene, where he greatly distinguished himself before
die age of twenty-two. He soon after held the important
offices of tribune, quasstor, and edile. ' He had completed
his first war in Spain, and was made consul at Rome be-
fore the age of forty. He twice crossed the Rhine, and
conquered all Gaul, aiad had twice jpassed over to Britain,
before the age of forty-five ; at fifty-two he had won the
field of Pharsalia, and attained the supreme power. He
died in' the fifty-sixth year of his age, the victor of five
himdred battles, and the conqueror of a thousand cities.
Hannibal joined the Carthaginian army in Spain at
twenty-two, and was made commander-in-chief at twenty-
six. Victorious in Spain and France, he crossed the Alps
and won the battle of Cannae before the age of thirty-one.
Scipio Africanus, (the elder,) at the age of sixteen dis-
tinguished himself at the battle of Ticinus ; at twenty was
made edile, and soon after pro-consul in Spain ; at
twenty-nine he won the great battle of Zama, and closed
his military career. Scipio Africanus (the younger) also
388 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
distinguished himself in early life ; at the age of thirty-
six he had conquered the Carthaginian armies and com-
pleted the destruction of Carthage-
GengisrsKhan succeeded, to the domain of his father at
the age of thirteen, and almost immediately raised an army
of .thirty thousand men, with which ihe defeated a numer-
ous force of rebels, who had thought to take advantage of
his extreme youth to withdraw from his dominion. He
soon acquired a military reputation /by numerous conquests,
and. before the age of forty h^d made himself emperor of
Mogul.
Charlemagne was crowned r king at twenty-six, con-
quered Aquitania at twentyreightj.made himself master of
France and the greater part of Germany at twenty-nine,
placed on his brows the iron crown of Italy at thirty.4W0j
and conquered Spain at thirty-six.
Gonsalvo.de .Cordova, the "great dtptaiuj" entered the
army at fifteen, and before the age . of seventeen had ac-
quired a brilliant military, reputajtion, and, was knighted by
the king himself on the, field of . battle ; at forty-one he
was promoted over the heads of colder veterans and jnade
commanderriuTchief of the army in Ita,ly. . -■,--.-
Henry IV. of Franog.was placed at the head of the Hu-
guenot army at the age of sixteen, at nineteen he became
king of Navarre ; at forty, he had overthrown all his ene-
mies, placed himself on the.throne of France, and become
the founder of a new dynasty.. . - , ..
Montecuculi, at the age of thirty^one, with two thousand
horse, attacked ten. thousand Swedes, and. captured, all their
baggage and artillery ; atthirtyj-.two he .gained the victory
of Triebel,. at forty-nine defeated the Swedes and saved
Denmark, and at fifty-three defeated the Turks at the great
battle, of St. Gothard. In his campaigns against the
French at a later age, he made it his chief merit, "not that
ne conquered, but that he was not conquered."
MILITARY EDUCATION. 389
Saxe entered the army at the early age of twelve, and
soon obtained the command of a regiment of horse ; at
twenty-four he became mareckal-de-eamp, at forty-four mar-
shal of France, and at forty-nine gained the celebrated
victory of Fontenoy. He died at the age of fifty-four. ■
¥auban entered the army of Conde as a cadet at the
age -of seventeen, at twenty was made a lieutenant, at
twenty-four he commanded- two companies,' at forty-one
was a brigadier, at forty-three a tnarechal-de-^camp, and at
forty-five commissaire-general of all the fortifications of
France. At the age of twenty-five he had himself coii-i
ducted several- sieges, and had assisted at many others.
Turenne entered the army before the age of fourteen ;
he served one year as a volunteer, four years as a captain,
four years as a colonel, three years as a major-general,
five years as a lieutenant-general, and became a marshal
of France at thirty-two. He had won all his military re-
putation by the age of forty.
Prince Maurice* commanded an army at the age of six-
teen, and acquired his military reputation in very early
life. He died at fifty-eight.
The great Conde immortalized his name at the battle
of Rocroi, in which, at the age of twenty-two, he defeated
the Spaniards. He had won all his great military fame
before the age of twenty-five.
Prince Eugene of Savoy was a colonel at twenty-one,
a lieutenant-field-marshal at twenty-four, and soon after, a
general-field-marshal. He gained the battle! of Zenta at
thirty-four, and of Blenheim at forty-one. At the opening
of the war of 1733, he again appeared at the head of the
army at the advanced age of sixty-nine, but having: lost
the- vigor and fire of youth, he effected nothing of im-
portance.
. Peter the. Great of Russia was proclaimed czar at ten
years of age ; at twenty he organized a large army and
890 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
built several ships ; at twenty-four he fought the Turks
and captujred Asnph ; at twenty-eight he made war with
Sweden ; at thirty he entered Moscow in triumph after
the victory of Embach, and the capture of Noteburg and
Marienburg ; at thirty-one he began the city of St. Pe-
tersburg ; at thirty-nine he was defeated by the Turks and
forced to ransom himself and awtiy. His latter years were
mostly devoted to civil and maritime affairs'. He died at
the age of fifty-five.
Charles the XII. of Sweden ascended the throne at
the age of fifteen, completed his first successful campaign
against Denmark at eighteen, overthrew eighty thousand
Russians at Narva before nineteen, conquered Poland and
Saxony at twenty-four, and died at thirty-six.
Frederick the Great of Prussia ascended the throne at
twenty-eight, and almost immediately entered on that ca-
reer of military glory which has immortalized his name.
He established his reputation in the first Silesianwar,
which he terminated at the age of thirty. The second Si-
lesian war was terminated at thirty-three ; and at forty-
three, with a population of five millions, he successfully
opposed a league of more than one hundred millions of
people.
Prince Henry of Prussia served his first campaign as
colonel of a regiment at sixteen ; at the age of thirty-one
he decided the victory of Prague, and the same year was
promoted to the command of a separate army. The mili-
tary reputation he acquired in the Seven Years' War was
second only to that of Frederick.
Cortes had efiected the conquest of Mexico, and com-
pleted his military career, at the age of thirty-six."
Sandoval, the most eminent of his great captains, died
at the age of thirty-one. He had earned his great renown,
and closed his military achievements, before the age of
wenty-five.
MILITARY EDUCATION. 391
Pizarro completed the conquest of Peru at thirty-five,
and died about forty.
Lord Clive began his military career at twenty-two, and
had reached the zenith of his military fame at thirty-five ;
he was raised to the peerage at thirty-six, and died at fifty.
Hastings began his military service at about twenty-five,
and became governor of Bengal at forty.
Napoleon was made a lieutenant at seventeen, a captain
at twenty, chef-d^-bataillon at twenty-four, general of bri-
gade at twenty-five, and commander-in-chief of the army
of Italy at twenty-six. All his most distinguished gener-
als were, like him, young men, and they seconded him in
his several campaigns with all the energy and activity of
youthful valor and enthusiasm.
Dessaix entered the army at fifteen ; at the opening of
the war he quickly passed through the lower grades, and
became a general of brigade before the age of twenty-five,
and a general of division at twenty-six ; he died before the
age of thirty-two, with a reputation second only to that of
Napoleon.
Kleber did not enter the army till later in life, but he
quickly passed through the subordinate grades, and was
made a general of brigade at thirty-eight, a general of di-
vision at forty, and general-in-chief of an army at forty-
one : he died at forty-six. On his death, and in Napoleon's
absence, Menau, aged and inefficient, succeeded by right
of seniority to the command of the army of Egypt. Its
utter ruin was the almost immediate consequence.
Massena first entered the army at seventeen, but soon
married a rich wife, and retired to civil life. He returned
to the army at the opening of the revolution, and in two
years, before the age of thirty-five, was promoted to the
rank of general of division. He immediately acquired that
high reputation, which he sustained through a long career
of military glory.
392 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Soult became a sub-lieot@nant at twenty-two, a cap-
tain at twenty.four ; the following year he passed through
the several grades of- qhef-de-'^nt.aillon, colonel, : and gen-
eral of brigade, and became general of division at twenty-
nine.
Davoust was a sub-lieutenant at seventeen, a general of
brigade at twenty-three, cuid general of division at twenty-
five.' ..,',.., ::,,-. „,. i
Eugene Beauharnais entered' the array at a very- early
age. He became chef-de-hataillon at nineteen, colonel at
twenty-one, general of brigade at twenty-three, and Vice-
roy -of Italy at twenty-five. He soon proved himself one
of Napoleon's ablest generals. At twenty-eight he com-
manded the army of Italy, and at thirty-one gained great
glory in the Russian campaign, at the head of the f«Hirth
cvrps d^arinee.
Gouvion-Saint-Cyr entered the army at the beginning
of the Revolution, and passing rapidly through the lower
grades, became a general of brigade .at twenty-nine, and a
general of division at thirty.
Suchet became a chef-de-bataillon at twenty^ general nf
brigade at twenty-five, major-general of Brune's army at
twenty-seven, and general of division and.i<^a,corpsd'armee
at twenty-eight.
Oudinot became a captain at twenty-^three, (Aef-de-ba-
taiUon at twenty-four, general of brigade at twenty-five,
and general of division at twenty-eight. .'; ' • ; . - .'^
Ney was a captain- at twenty-three^ adjutant-general at
twenty-six, general of brigade at twenty-seven, and gen-
eral of division at ^enty-nine. 1 ' I
Lannes was a colonel at twenty-seven, general of i bri-
gade at twenty-eight, and very soon after general of di-
vision. ' ■■■:■•■ ■-., v: ,
Joubert became adjutant-general at twenty-rfive,. general
of brigade at twenty-six, general of division at twen^-
MILITARY EDUCATION. 393
eight, and general-in-chief of the army of Italy at twenty-
nine. He died at thirty.
Victor was a cAef-rfa-Jafat'Wow at twenty-seven, general
of brigade at twenty-nine, and general of division at thirty-
two. -■" •*■ ,......■-:- ... ...... i.,
■ Murat was a lieutenant at twenty, and passing rapidly
through the lower grades, he became a general of brigade
at twenty-five, and ageneral of division at twenty-seven;
Mortier was a certain at twenty-three, adjutant-general
at twenty-five, general of brigade at thirty, and general Of
division at thirty-one. ' " ,. . i
Macdonald was a colonel at twenty-seven, a general of
brigade' at twenty-seven, and a general of division at thirty.
Marmont was a captain- at twenty-one, chef-de-batailloii
at twenty-two, geneiral of brigad* at twenty-four, injector
general at twenty-seven, and general-in-ehief of an army
at thirty-two. y
Bemadotte was a colonel at twenty-eight, general of
brigade at twenty-nine, and general of division at thirty.
Lefebvre was made a captain at the organization of the
army in 1793 ; he became a general of brigade at thirty-
eight, and general of division at thirty-nine. -
Bessieres entered the army at twenty-six, became a
colonel at thirty, general of brigade at thirty-two, and gen-
eral of division at thirty-four. He died at for-ty-sfeven.
' -Duroe was a captain at twenty-three, ckef-de-baiaillon
at twenty-six, colonel and ckef-de-brigade at twenty-seven,
and general of division at thirty.- He died at forty-one.
This list might be still further 'extended with the same
results, but names enough have been given to show that
the generals who assisted Napoleon in his immortal cam-
paigns were all, with scarcely an exception, young men,
still burning with the fires of youthful ardor and enthusi^
asm. -The grade of 'marshal was not created till after Na-
poleon became emperor. On ascending the throne of the
394 MILITARy ART AND SCIENCE.
empire, he ijominated to this rank eighteen of the most
distinguished generals of France. Some of these were
generals of the earlier wars of the Revolution, and had
never served under him. Others were younger men, sev-
eral being only thirty-four, thirty-five, and thirty-six years
of age. The mean age of all was forty-four. He after-
wards made seven more marshals, whose mean age was
forty-three. These appointments, however, were regard-
ed as rewards for past services, rather than as a grade from
which service was expected, for several of the older mar-
shals were never called into the field after their promo-
tion.
Having noticed the ages of the principal generals who
commanded in the armies of Napoleon, let us look for a
moment at those who opposed him. In the campaign of
1796 the enemy's forces were directed by Beaulieu, then
nearly eighty years of age ; Wurraser, also an octogena-
rian, and Alvinzi, then over seventy : these had all three
distinguished themselves in earlier life, but had now lost
that youthful energy and activity so essential for a mili-
tary commander.
In the campaign of 1800 the general-in-chief of the Aus-
trian forces was Melas, an old general, who had served
some fifty years in the army ; he had distinguished him-
self so long ago as the Seven Years' War, but he had
now become timid and inefficient, age having destroyed
his energy.
In the campaign of 1 805 the French were opposed by
Kutusof, then sixty, and Mack, then fifty-three ; the plan
of operations was drawn up by still more aged generals
of the Aulic council.
In the campaign of 1806 the French were opposed by
the Duke of Brunswick, then seventy-one, Hohenlohe,
then sixty, ancl Mollendorf, Kleist, and Massenbach, old
generals, who had served under the great Frederick, —
MILITARY EDUCATION. 395
men, says Jomini, " exhumed from the Seven Years' War,"
— " whose faculties were frozen by age," — " who had been
buried for the last ten years in a lethargic sleep."
In the campaign of 1807 the French were opposed by
KamenSki, then eighty years of age, Benningsen, then six-
ty,, aai Buxhowden, tlien fifty-six. The Allies now be-
gan to profit by their experience, and in 1809 the Austrian
army was led.by. the. young, active, skilful, and energetic
Archduke Charles ; and this campaign, although the com-
mande,r-in-chief was somewhat fettered by the foolish
projects of the old generals of the Aulic council, and
thwarted by the disobedience of his brother, was never-
theless the most glorious in the Austrian annals of the
wars of the Revolution. ,
At the. opening of, the campaign of 1813 the Emperor
Alexander, young, (oi\ly thirty-five,) active, intelligent, and
ambitious, had remodellqdhis army, and infused into ithi^
own energy and enthusiastic love of glory. He was him-r
self at its.head, and directed its operations. Kutusof was
for a, short time the nominal commander-in-chief, and ex-
hibited an activity unusual at his age, but he was sur-
rounded by younger generals. — .Barclay-de-Tolley, and
Miloradowichf then forty-nine, Wintzengerode, then forty-
three, Schouvalof, then thirty-five, and the Archduke Con-
stantine, then thirty-three,^-^generals who, at the heads of
their, corps, and under the young emperor and his able
staff of young. ofiicers,,in the two succeeding campaigns,
rolled, back, the. waves of French conquest, and finally
o,veiJhrew the French empire. Wellington, who led the
English in these campaigns, was of the same age as Na-
poleon, and had. been educated at the same time lyith him
in the military schools of France. The Austrians were
led by, Schwartzenburg, then only about thirty, and the
Prussians by Yorck, Bulow, and , Bliicljer. The last of
these was then well advanced iii,life, but all his movements
396 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
being directed by younger men, — Scbamhorst and Gneise-
nau, — ^his operations partook of the energy of his able
chiefs of staff.
In the campaign of 1815, Napoleon was opposed by the
combinations of Wellington and Gneisenau, both yonnger
men than most of his own generals, who, it is well known,
exlubited, in this campaign, less than in former ones, the
ardent energy and restless activity which had character-
ized their yoimger days. Never were Napoleon^' plans
better conceived, never did his troops fight with greater
Iwavery ; but the dilatory movements of his generals en-
aUed his active enemies to parry the blow intended 'for
theii: destruction.
In the American war of 1812, we pursued the same
course as Austria, Prussia, and Russia, in their earlier
contests vrith Napoleon, t. e., to supply our armies with
generals, we dug up the Beaulieus, the Wurmsers, the
Alvinzis, the Melases, the Macks, the BrunswickSj'and the
Kamenskis of our revolntionary war ; but after we had
suffered sufficiency from the Hulls, the Armstrongs, the
Winchesters, the Dearborns, the Wilkinsons, ■flie Hamp^
tons, and other veterans of the Revolution', we also changed
our policy,' and permitted younger men — -the Jacksons, the
Harrisons, the Browns, the McReas,' the Scotts,* the
Ripleys, the Woods, the M'Combs, the Wools, and the
Millers — ^to lead our forces to victory and to glory. In
the event of another war, with any nation' capable of op^
posing to us any Ihing like a powerful resistance, shall
we again exhume the veterans of former days, and again
place at the head of our armies respectable and. aged in-
efficiency; or shall we ^eek out youthful enterprise and
activity combined with military science and instruction?
The results of the war, the honor of the country, the gloxj'
* Scott had acquired his military reputation, and attraaed the rank
ef major-general at twehty-eight.
MILITARY EDUCATION. 397
of OUT amis, depeiid,^ m> a. great measuFe, upon the answer
that will be given to this question.
But it may be asked, how arewe to secure this combi*
nation of military instruction and military energy ; how
are we to fill the higher ^ades of our army with young
and active men possessing due military instruction and
talent? The question is not a difficult one^-aUd our gov*
emment can easily attain the desired object, if it will only
set at work honestly, disregarding all party prejudices
and the mercenary and selfish interests of its own mem-
bers and advisers. Other- governments have pointed out
to us the way. It is this : let Tnerit be the main test for
all appointments and promotions in the army. Let «ne or
more of the subordinate grades be thrown open to the
youth of the whole country, without distinction as to
birthj or wealth, or politics ; let them be-'fcepton proba-
tion in this subordinate grade, and be tiioroughly instructed
in all that relates to the military professioij; after strict
examination let them bepromoted to the- vacancies inthe
higher ^ades as rapidly as they shall show theras^ves
qualified for the duties of those grades, merit and services
being here as elsewhere the only tests. '
-The first part of this rule is already accomplished by
the Military Academy. One young-man is selected from
each congressional district^ on an average, once in about
two years, the selection being made by the representative
of the district ; these young men are made- warrant officers
in the army, and sent to a military post for instruction ;
frequent and strict examinations are instituted to deter-
mine their capacity and fitness for military service ; after
a probation of a certain length of time, the best are select"
ed for commission in the army, relative rank and appoint-
ments to corps . being made strictly with reference to
merit ; birth, wealth, influence of political^ friends— all ex-
traneous circumstances being excluded from considera^
398 MILITARY ART A\D SCIENCE.
tion. What can be more truly and thorougUy democratic
than this ? What scheme can be better devised to supply
our army with good officers, and to exclude from the mili-
tary establishment the corrupting influence of party poli-
tics, and to prevent commissions in the army from being
given to " the sons of wealthy and influential men, to the
almost total exclusion of the sons of the poor and less in-
fluential men, regardless alike of qualifications and of
merit V'
Unfortunately for the army and for the country this sys-
tem ends here, and all further advancement is made by
mere seniority, or by executive favoritism, the claims of
merit having but little or no further influence. Indeed,
executive patronage is not unfrequently permitted to en-
croach even upon these salutary rules of appointment, and
to place relatives and political friends into the higher
ranks of commissioned officers directly from civil lifcj
" regardless alike of qualifications and of merit," while
numbers " of sons of the poor and less influential men,"
whp.have served a probation of four or five years in military
studies and exercises, and have proved themselves, in some
thirty examinations made by competent boards of military
officers, to be most eminently qualified for commissions,
are passed by in utter neglect ! Our army is much more
open to this kind of favoritism and political partiality, than
that of almost any of the governments of Europe, which
we have been accustomed to regard as aristocratic and
wholly unfriendly to real merit.
In the Prussian service, in time of peace, the govern-
ment can appoint no one, even to the subordinate grade
of ensign, till he has followed the courses of*instmction
of the division or brigade-school of his arm, and has
passed a satisfactory examination. And, " no ensign can
be promoted to a higher grade till after his promotion has
been agreed to by the superior board or commission of
MILITARY EDUCATION. 399
examiners at Berlin, and his name has been placed on the
list of those whose knowledge and acquirements {connais-
sances) render them qualified (aptes) for the responsible
duties of their profession. The nomination to the grade
of second-lieutenant is not, even after all these conditions
are fulfilled, left to the choice of the government. When
a vacancy occurs in this grade, the subaltern officers pre-
sent to the commandant of the regiment a list of three
ensigns who have completed their course of study; the
commandant, after taking the advice of the superior offi-
cers of the regiment, nominates the most meritorious of
these three to the king, who makes the appointment."
The government can appoint to the engineers and artillery
only those who have been instructed as eUves in the
Berlin school of cadets and the school of artillery and en-
gineers, and these appointments must be made in the
order in which the pupils have passed their final exami-
nation. In these corps the lieutenants and second cap-
tains can be promoted to a higher grade only after they
have passed a satisfactory examination. No political in-
fluence, nor even royal partiality, can interfere with this
rule.
Even in the arbitrary monarchies of Austria and Rus-
sia it is deemed necessary to subject all military appoint-
ments and promotions, in the peace establishments, to
certain fixed rules. In the Austrian army all sub-lieuten-
ants must be taken from the military schools, or the spe-
cially-instructed corps of cadets and imperial guards ; from
this grade to that of captain all promotions are made by
the commandants of regiments and corps on the advice of
the other superior officers. Above the grade of captain
all nominations for promotion are made to the emperor by
the Aulic Council, in the- order of seniority of rank, except
the claims of superior merit interfere. " In the Russian
army," says Haillot, " no one, not even a prince of the im-
400 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
perial family, can reach the grade of officer till he has
satisfactorily passed his several examinations, or finished
the severe novitiate to which the cadets in the corps are
subjected." Promotion below the grade of colonel is made
partly by seniority, and partly by merit ; above that grade,
by selection alone.
In the British service, rank in the line of the army is
obtained by purchase, and the higher grades are in this
way filled with young mert of energy and enterprise-; but
this efficiency is gained by injustice to the- poor man, who
is without the means of purchasing rank. In some re-
spects it is preferable to our ruinous system of exclusive
seniority and executive favoritism, but far more (Ejection-
able than that based on merit.' Wellington has recently
said that the system of exclusive seniority would soon ut-
terly destroy the efficiency of the army, by -preventing
young men from reaching the higher gradea.-' ^* At first,"
says an officer of some distinction in the British navy, ja
speaking of promotions in that arm of service, " it certain-
ly looks very hard to see old stagers grumbling away their
existence in disappointed hopes; yet there can be little
doubt that the navy, and, of course, the country at large^
are essentially better served by the present system of em-
ploying active, young, and cheerful-minded officers, than
they ever coidd be by any imaginable system by seniorityv
It must not be forgotten, iadeed, that at a certain stage of.
the profession; the arrangement by which officers are pro-
moted in turn is already made the rule, and has long -been
so : but, foy> a wise regulation, it does not come into oper-
ation before the rank of post-captain be attaiaed. 'Ante-
cedent to this point, there must occur ample -opportunities
of weeding out those persons, who^ if the rule of mere se-
niority were adoptedj would exceedingly embarrass the
navy list." We fully agree with this writer respecting the
evils df a system of exclusive seniority, but not respecting
MILITARY EDUCATION. 401
the best means of remedying these evils. In England, where
the wealthy and aristocratic classes govern the state, thejr
may very well prefer a system of military appointment
and promotion based exclusively on wealth and political
influence'; but in this coimtry we are taught to 'consider
merit as a claim tnuch higher than wealth, or rank,' or
privilege. ' '
The various changes in the rules of appointment and
promotion in the French service, and the various results
of these changes j both on the character of the atmy and
the welfare of the state, are so instructive that we regret
that our limits w*ill not allow us to enter into a fall dis-
cussion of them. We can give only a very brief outline.
Previous to the Revolution, military appointment and
promotion were wholly subject to the rules of nobility,
certain grades in' the army belonging of right to certain
grades of the nobleise ; merit and service being excluded
from consideration.: But the constituent assembly changed
this order of things, and established the rule that three-
fourths of the sub-lieutenants be appointed by seleetion;
after a concours, a.nd the other quarter be appointed from
the sub-ofBcers, alternately by seniority and selection,
without concours; the captains and lieutenants by se-
niority ; the colonels and lieutenant-colonels two-thirds
by seniority and one-third by selection ■,mareehaux-'de-
eamp and lieutenant-generals one-half by > seniority and
ofleJhalf by selection. In 1793 the grades were still fur-
ther opened to selection, and in the turbulent times that
followed, a part of them were even thrown open to elec*
tion by the soldiers. But in 1795 the combined system
of merit and seniority, with certain' improvements, was
restored. ' In 1796 and the wars that followed, merii was
the only qualification- required, and Bonaparte,' Moreau;
and other young generals were actually placed in com*
mand of their seniors in rank. Military talent and mil-
402 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
itary services, not rank, were the recognised claims for
promotion, the baptism of blood, as it was called, having
equalized all grades. Bonaparte, in leaving Egypt, paid
no attention to seniority of rank, but gave the command
to Eleber, who was then only a general of brigade, while
Menou was a general of division. Everybody knows
that on the death of Kleber, General Menou succeeded
in the command ; and that Egypt, saved by the 'selection
of Kleber, was lost by the seniority of Menou.
Napoleon formed rules for promotion, both for peace
and war, based on merit. His peace regulations were
much the same as the system of 1795 ; his field regula-
tions, however, from the circumstances of the times, were
almost the only ones used. The following extract from
the Reglement de Campagne of 1809, (title XX.,) gives
the spirit of this system : — " The next day after an action
the generals of brigade will present to the generals of
division the names of all such as have distinguished
themselves in a particular manner ; the generals of di-
vision will immediately report these to the commander-
in-chief, and also the names of the generals and superior
officers whose conduct has contributed most to secure
success, so that the general-in-chief may immediately in-
form his majesty."
On the restoration of the Bourbons there were also re-
stored many of the ancient privileges and claims of rank
by the officers of the maison militaire du roi, and court fa-
voritism was substituted for merit and service. But the
revolution of 1830 produced a different order of things.
" The laws now regulate military promotion ; the king can
appoint or promote only in conformity to legal prescrip-
tions ; and even in the exercise of this prerogative, he is
wise enough to restrain himself by certain fixed rules,
which protect him from intrigues, and from the obsessions
of persons of influence, and of party politicians." Would
MILITARY EDUCATION. 403
that the same could always be said of the executive of this
country in making appointments and promotions in the
army.
The existing laws and regulations of the French service
differ slightly for different corps, but the general rule is
as follows : No one can be appointed to the grade of offi-
cer in the army who has not graduated at one of the mili-
tary ''schools, or has not served at least two years as a sub-
officer in a corps d'armee. In time of peace, no one can be
promoted to the rank of lieutenant, captain, or major, {chef-
d'eseadron and ehef-de-bataiUon,) till he has served two
years in the next lower grade ; no one can be made lieu-
tenant-colonel till he has served four years, nor be made
colonel till he has served three years, in the next lower
grade ; no one can be made marechal-de-camp, lieutenant-
general, or marshal of France, till he has served two years
in the next lower grade. These numbers are all dimin-
ished one half in time of war. For the grades of first-
lieutenant and captain, two-thirds of the promotions are
by seniority, and one-third by selection ; for the c7ief-de-
bataillon and chef-d'escadron, one-half by seniority and
one-half by selection ; for all the other grades by selection
only. In time of war, one-half of the promotions to the
grades of first-lieutenant 'and captain are filled by selec-
tion, and all the promotions to other grades in this way.
For promotion by selection, a list of the authorized candi-
dates for each grade is made out every yeai: by. inspectors,
and boards of examiners appointed q4 hoe, and the, name,
qualifications, and particular claim are given of each offi-
cer admitted to the concours. The recommendations of
these inspectors and examiners are almost invariably fol-
lowed by the government in its selections. This com-
bined system of seniority and merit secures a gradual pro-
motion to all, and at the same time enables officers of great,
talents and acquirements to attain the higher grades while
404 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
BtiU young and efficient. Merit need riot, therefore, al-
ways linger in the subaltern grades, and be held subordi-
nate to ignorance and stupidity, merely because they-hap-
pen to be endowed with the privileges of seniority. More-
over, government is precluded from thrusting its own fa-
vorites into the higher gtades, and placing them over the
heads of abler and better men.
If such a system of appointment weTC introduced into
our 'array,- and fixed by legal enactments, and no one were
allowed to receive a commission till he had either distia-
gtti'shed himself in th6 field, or had passed an examination
before a board of -competent ofiicerB, we are confident diat
better selections would be made in the appointments from
civil life than have been within the last ten years by the
present system of political influence. It would scarcely
be: possible to make worse selections.* And if -the cora-
* To show the working' of this system of political appointments, we
wonld call attention to a single fact. On the formation of an additional
regiment of.dragoons in, 183@, thirty of itp «ifipers were appointed ftogt
ciyil life, and only four from the graduates of the Militeuy Academy.
Of those appointed to that regiment from civil life, twenty-two have
already been dismissed or resigned, (most of the latter to save them-
selves from being dismissed,) and only eight of the whole thirty political
appointments are now left, their places having been i^ainly supplied, by
graduates of the Military Academy-
In case of anather increase pf our military estabiishm^nt, what course
will our government pursue ? Will it again pass by the meritorious young
officers of our army, — graduates of the Military Academy, — 'who have
spent ten or twelve of the best years of their life in qualifying themselves
for the higher duties of their profession, and place over then: heads ci-
vilians of less education and inferior character — ^men totally ignorant of
military duties, mere pothouse politicians, and the base hirelings of party,
— ^those who screech the loudest in favor of party measures, and de-
grade themselves the most in order to serve party ends 1 — and by thus
devotmg the army, like the cusiom-house and post-office, to political
purposes, will it seek to increase that vast patronage of the executivo
which is already debasing individual morality, and destroying the na*
MIIilTARY EDUCATION. 405
bined system of seniority and es^anunation were pursued
in promoting the subalterns already in service, it certainly
would produce less injustice, and give, greater efBciency
to the army, than the ;present one of exclusive seniqrity
and brevet rank, obtained through intrigue and political
iufluencei or high military appointmtaits bestowed as a re-
ward for dirty and corrupt party services. As a.military
maxim,. secure efficiency, hy limiting the privileges ofrcirik.;
exclude fitooritism, by giving Jhe power of selection tohoards
of competent, officers, totally independent of party-, ppliti^f.
Such a j^ystem has been for some tim^, pursued ill the med^
ical department of out army; it has pi;flducQd the most
satisfactory results ; stupidity, ignorance, and aged ineffi-
ciency ha^ve ])epn overslaugJifid, fOii will soon entirely dis-
appear from that corps ; they have been repls^ced byyouiig
men of aptivity, talejit, character, intelligence, and gl^at
professional skill. Is itle,ss,impprtan(rto ha,ve corapetesnt
military pfficersjtOjcomma,nd where the lives of thousands,
the honor of our flag, the safety of the country depend upon
their judgment and conduct, than it !§ to have competent
surgeoiis to a,ttend the sick, and the wounded I. .a-c'i-
We wishtp cajl particular attenjion to this subject, ,. It
deserves attention at all times.,, .but^ at the present momeitt
it more especially demands a close and candid considerar
tion. The higher grades of our peace establishment are
now filled /jvith men; so far ^.dvancedjn.life that, in case
of ian, increase of the anny, many pf them; must undpubtr
edly be either passed over, or put on a retired list.; Soon-
er or later some change of this kind will undoubtedly be
made. It is demanded by the good of service, even in
time of peace j and in time of wkr, it will be absolutely
tional character? 'Should any administration of the government bo m
unmindful of the interests and honor of the country as to again pursue
such a course, it is to be hoped that the swoid of politiced justice \riQ
aot long slumber in its scabbard.
406 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
necessary to the success of our arms.* But the great
danger is that the change may be made for the ■worse—
that all the appointments and promotions to the higher
grades will be made through political influence, thus con-
verting the artiiy and navy into jpolitical engines. Let
proper measures be taken to prevent so dangerous a re-
sult ; let executive patronage in the army be limited. by
wholesome laws, like those in France and Prussia ; aiid
let riiilitary merit and services, as determined by boards
of competent militaiy officers, be the only recognised
claims to appointment and promotion, thus giving to the
poor and meritorious at least an equal chance with the
man of wealth and the base hireling of party. In actual
service the system of exclusive seniority cannot exist ; it
would deaden and paralyze all our energies. Taking ad-
Vantage of this, ipoliticiaiis will drive us to the opposite
ejftreme, unless the executive authority be limited by
whole some laws, based on the just principles of merit arid
service.
But the importance' of maintaining in our military or-,
ganization a suitable system of militaiy instruction is not
confined to the exigencies of our actual condition. It
mainly rests upon the absolute necessity of having in the
country a body of men who shall devote themselves to
the cultivation of military science, so as to be able to com-
pete with the military science of the transatlantic powers;
It is not to be expected that our citizen soldiery, however
intelligent, ^patriotic, and hraVe they may be, can make
* Even at the present moment, in ordering troops to Texas, where
immediate and active service is anticipated, it is found necessary to
break up regiments and send only the yonng and efficient officers
into the field, leaving most of the higher offiders behiijd with mere
nominal commands. Very many of the officers now in Texas are
acting in capacities far above their nominal grades, but without receiv-
ing the rank, pay, and emoluments due to their services.
MILITARY EDUCATION. 407
any very great progrfess in 'military studies. Tliey have
neither the time nor opportunities for such pursuits, and if
they can acquire a practical acquaintance with elementary
tactics — the mere alphabet of the military art — it is as
much as can reasonably be expected of'thera. As a gen-
eral rule, the militia are individually more capable and in-
telligent than the men who compose a regular army. But
they must of necessity be inferior in practical professional
knowledge.
Technital education is necessary in every piirsuit of
life. It is possible that the lawyer may succeed in some
particular cases without a knowledge of law, but he will
probably have few clients if he remain ignorant of the
laws and precedents that govern the courts. The un-
learned chemist may succeed in performing some single
experiment, but his progress will be slow and uncertain,if
he neglect to make himself familiar with the experiments
and discoveries of his predecessors.
Learning, when applied to agriculture, raises it from a
mere mechanical drudgery to the dignity of a science. By
analyzing the composition of the soil we cultivate, we learn
its capacity for improvement, and gain the power to stimu-
late the earth to the most bountiful production. How dif-
ferent the results attending the labors of the intelligent
agriculturist, guided by the lamp of learning, from those
of the ignorant drudge who follows the barren formula of
traditional precepts ! , As applied to manufactures and the
mechanical arts, learning develops new powers of labor,
and new facilities for subsistence and enjoyment. Personal
comforts of every kind are greatly increased, and placed
within the reach of the humbler classes ; while at the same
time the " appliances of art are made to minister to the
demands of elegant taste, and a higher moral culture."
As applied to commerce, it not only greatly increases the
facilities for the more general diffusion of civilization and
408 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
knowledge, but. is also vastly influential in harmonizing
the conflicting interests of nations. ,
Nor is learning less, humanizing and pacific, in its in-
fluenqe when applied to the military art. " During the
dark ages which followed the wreck of the Roixtan power,
the military science by. which, that power had been reared,
was lost, with other branches of learning. When learning
revived, the military art revived with it, and .contributed
not a little to the restoration of the empire of. mind over
that of brute, fqrce. Then, ;too,: every.^ great djtscovery in
the art of war hag a life-saving andpeape-prornqting in-
fluence. The, effects of. the. , invention of gunpowder are
a familiar proof of, this Jem^rk ; and the. same, principle
applies to the discoveries pfjnodem tiro.e§.r By p^fectijig
ourselves in military science, paradoxical as it may seem,
we are therefore assisting, in tjie, diffusion of peace, and
hastening on the approach of that period when swords
shall be beaten into ploughshares and spears- into pruning-
hooks."
APPENDIX.
Since the first edition of this work was published, two important
wars haye been commenced and terminated — that between the United
States and the Bepublic of Mexico, and that between Russia and the
Western Powers of Europe — and another is now being waged between
France and Austria, upon the old battle fields of Northern Italy. In
issuing a new edition of these Elements of Military Art and Science, it
is deemed proper to refer to these wars, and to apply the principles
here discussed to the military operations carried on in Mexico and in
the Crimea. It is proposed fo do this in the form of Notes to the sev-
eral Chapters. The war in Italy being still undetermined, and the de-
tails of the sereral battles which have already been fought being but
imperfectly known, it is obviously improper to attempt to criticize their
strategic character or tactical arrangement.
H. W. H.
New Yoek, July, 1859.
NOTE TO CHAPTER II.-^tkategt.
In the invasion of Mexico, the United States formed four
separate armies, moving on foier distinct lines of operation :
1st. The " Army of the West," under General Kearny, movr
ing from St. Louis on New Mexico and California ; 2d. The
" Army of the Centre," under General Wool, moving from Sau
Antonio de Bexar on Chihuahua ; 3d. The " Army of Occupa-
tion," on the Rio Grande, under General Taylor, moving from
Corpus Christi on Matamoras, Monterey, and Saltillo j and 4th.
The " Main Army," under General Scott, moving from Vera
Cruz on the capital of Mexico.
The Army of the West, imder General Kearny, moved
35
410 NOTES.
upon a separate and distinct line of operations, having no
strategic relations to the other three ; its objects were the con
quest and occupation of New Mexico and Upper California.
The first was readily accomplished ; but the general then de-
tached so large a force to operate on Chihuahua after the diver-
sion of Wool's column, that his expedition to California must
have utterly failed without the assistance of the naval forces in
the Pacific.
The lines of Taylor and Wool were evidently ill chosen,
being so distant as to afford the enemy an opportunity to take
a central position between them. Fortunately Wool proceeded
no further than Monclova, and then turned off to occupy Parras,
thus coming under the immediate command pf Qeneral Taylor.
The latter fought the battles of Palo Alto and B«saca de la
Palma, and sustained the siege of Fort Brown ; then crossing
the Rio Grande at Matamoras, he captured Monterey, and,
forming a junction with Wool, defeated the army of Santa
Anna at Buena Vista. This battle ended the campaign, which,
however brilliantly conducted, was entirely without strategic
results.
Scott landed his ai-my near the Island of Sacrificios without
opposition, and immediately invested Vera Cru^ which sur-
rendered after a short siege and bombardment. Having thus
secured his base, he immediately advanced to the city of Puebla,
meeting and defeating the army of Santa Anna at Cerro Gordo.
Bemainlng some time at Paebla to reinforce his army, he ad-
vanced into the valley of Mexico, and after the brilliant vic-
tories of Contreras, Churubusco, Molino del Bey, and Chapul-
tepec, captured the city and terminated the war.
With respect to the double line of operations of Taylor and
Scott, it may be sufScient to remark, that Santa Anna, from
his central position, fought, with the same troops, the battles
of Buena Vista and Cerro Gordo. It should also be remarked,
that the line of operations of the army of the Rio Grande was
not approved by either Scott or Taylor, nor, it is believed, by
any other officer of our army. Scott's line of operations, how-
ever, was truly strategic, and in turning the Mexican flank by
NOTES. 411
Lake Ohalco and the Pedregal, he exhibited the skill of a great
general.
The war in the Crimea, from the limited extent of the
theatre of operations, afforded b^ut little opportunity for the
display of strategic skill on either side. Nevertheless, the
movements of both parties, prior to the investment and siege
of Sebastopol, are fair subjects for military criticism with re-
spect to the plansof operation.
When the allies landed their troops at the Old Fort, three
plans were open for the consideration of the Eussian general :
1st. To destroy or close the harbors of Balaklava, Eamiesch,
Kazatch and Strelitzka, and, garrisoning Sebastopol with a
strong force, to occupy with the rest of his army the strong
plateau south of the city, and thus force the allies to besiege
the strong works on the north. 2d. Having closed the harbors
on the south, and secured Sebastopol from being carried by the
assault of any detachment of the allies, to operate on their
left flank, annoying and harassing them with his Cossacks,
and thus delay them many days in the difficult and precarious
position which they would have occupied. 3d. To advance
with his whole force and offer them battle at the Alma. The
last and least advantageous of these plans was adopted, and as
the garrison of Sebastopol, during the battle, consisted of only
four battalions and the sailors of the fleet, it might, considering
the weakness of its works, have been easily carried by a de-
tachment of the allied forces.
For the allies at the Alma two plans presented themselves :
1st. To turn the Eussian left, cut him off from Sebastopol, and
occupy that city in force. 2d. To turn the Eussian right, and,
throwing him back upon Sebastopol, cut him off from all exter-
nal succor. Neither plan' was fully carried out. The column of
General Bosquet turned the Eussian left and decided his re-
treat ; but no strategic advantage was taken of the victory.
The battle was fought on the 20th of September, and by noon
of the 26th the allies had only advanced to the Balbeck, a dis-
tance of a little more than ten miles in six days ! On the 27th
they regained their communication with the fleet at Balaklava,
412 NOTES.
without attempting to occupy Sebastopol, and having exposed
themselves to destruction by an ill-conducted flank march. For-
tunately for the allies, the Russians failed to avail themselves
of the advantages which the enemy had thus gratuitously af-
forded. The fleet having entered the open harbor of Balaklava,
the allies now commenced the labor of landing and moving up
their siege material and of opening their trenches, while the
Russians prepared their fortifications on the south of Sebasto-
pol for resisting the operations of that gigantic siege which
stands without a parallel in history.
NOTE TO CHAPTER III.— Fortifications.
In the war between the United States and Mexico, the latter
had no fortifications on her land frontiers, and, with the single
exception of Vera Cruz, her harbors were entirely destitute of
defensive works. The Americans, therefore, had no obstacles
of this kind to overcome on three of their lines of operation ;
and, when Scott had reduced Vera Cruz, his line of march was
open to the capital. Moreover, nearly every seaport on the
Gulf and Pacific coast fell into our hands without a blow.
Had the landing of Scott been properly opposed, and Vera
Cruz been strongly fortified and well defended, it would have
been taken only after a long and difBcult siege. Moreover, had
the invading army encountered strong and well-defended fortifi-
cations on the line of march to Mexico, the war would, neces-
sarily, have been prolonged, and possibly with a different result.
The Russian fortifications in the Baltic prevented the allies
from attempting any serious operations in that quarter, and
those in the Black Sea confined the war to a single point of the
Heracleidan Chersonese. Had Russia relied exclusively upon
her fleet to prevent a maritime descent, and left Sebastopol
entirely undefended by fortifications, how difierent had been
the result of the Crimean war.
This subject will be alluded to again in the Notes on Sea-
coast Defences, and Permanent Fortifications.
NODES. 413
NOTE TO CHAPTER IV.— Loeistics.
The war in Mexico exhibited, in a striking manner, out
superiority over the enemy in this branch of the military art.
No army was better supplied than ours in all matters of sub-
sistence, clothing, medical and hospital stores, and in means of
transportation. Two points, however, are worthy of remark in
this connection : 1st. The great waste of material, which resulted
from the employment of raw troops under short enlistments,
and commanded by officers appointed from civil life, who were
without experience and destitute of military instruction ; and,
2d. The immense expense of transportation, which was due in
part to the above cause and in part to the employment, in the
administrative departments, of civilians who were utterly igno-
rant of the rules and routine of military service. This war
was conducted on the system of magazines and provisions
carried in the train of the army, or purchased of the inhabitants
and regularly paid for, forced requisitions being seldom resorted
to, and then in very moderate quantities. The wisdom of this
plan was proved by the general good order and discipline of
our troops, and the general good-will of the non-combatant
inhabitants of the country which was passed over or occupied
by the army.
The war in the Crimea proved most conclusively the vast
superiority of the French administrative system over that of
the English — of the military over a civil organization of the
administrative corps of an army. The French troops before
Sebastopol were regularly, cheaply, and abundantly supplied
with every requisite of provisions, clothing, munitions, medical
stores, military utensils, and hospital and camp equipages;
while the English army, notwithstanding an immense expendi-
ture of money, was often paralyzed in its operations by the
want of proper military materia], and not unfrequently was
destitute of even the necessaries of life.
Instead of profiting by this lesson, the recent tendency of
our own government has been (especially in supplying the
414 NOTES.
army in Utah) to imitate the sad example of the English, and
to convert the supplying of our armies into a system of political
patronage to be used for party purposes. If fully carried out,
it must necessarily result in the ruin of the army, the robbery
of the treasury, and the utter corruption of the government.
NOTE TO CHAPTER V.— Tactics.
The war in Mexico, from the small number of troops engaged,
and the peculiar character of the ground in most cases, afforded
but few opportunities for the display of that skill in the tactics
of battle which has so often determined the victory upon the
great fields of Europe. Nevertheless, the history of that war
is not without useful lessons in the use which may be made of
the several arms in the attack and defence of positions. The
limit assigned to these Notes will admit of only a few brief
remarks upon these battles.
The affairs of Palo Alto and Resaca de la Falma properly
constitute only a,single battle. In the first, which was virtually
a cannonade, the lines were nearly parallel, and Arista's change
of front to an oblique ; position during the engagement, was
followed by a corresponding movement on the part of General
Taylor. Being made sensible of the superiority of the Ameri-
can artillery, the Mexican general fell back upon the Ravine of
Resaca de la Falma, drawing up his troops in a concave line to
suit the physical character of the ground. The Americans
attacked the whole line with skirmishers, and with dragoons
supported by light artillery, and the charge of a heavy coliunn
of infantry decided the victory. General Taylor's operations
at Monterey partook more of the nature of an attack upon an
intrenched position than of a regular battle upon the field.
No doubt Worth's movement to the right had an important
influence in deciding the contest, but the separation of his
column from the main body, by a distance of some five miles,
was. to say the least, a most hazardous operation. The Mex-
icans, however, took no advantage of the opening to operate
NOTES.
415
between the separate masses into which the American army-
was divided. The loss which the Mexicans inflicted upon us
resulted more from the strength of their position than from
any skilful use of their defensive works. In the battle of
Buena Vista, the efforts of Santa Anna were principally directed
to turning the American left. If he had concentrated his masses
more upon the centre at the plateau, the success gained in
the early part of the contest would probably have been decisive.
The American right at La Angostura was made almost inacces-
sible by the deep ravines in its front, and the skilful use made
of the artillery from this point enabled General Taylor to gain
the victory, even after his left had been completely turned, and
a portion of the volunteers had actually fled from the field.
The manner in which Scott handled his troops in the various
battles on his line of march from Vera Cruz to the capital,
proved him to be one of the best generals of the age. At
Cerro Gordo he so completely turned Santa Anna's left as to
cut off his line of retreat, and nearly destroyed his army, the
general himself barely escaping capture. The turning of
Valencia's position by the village of San Geronimo, at the
battle of Contreras, and the charge by Riley.'s columns of
infantry, were movements well planned and admirably executed,
as were also the rapid pursuit of Santa Anna to Churubusco,
and the flank and rear attacks by the brigades of Fierce and
Shields. The victory of Molino del Eey was mostly won with
the musket, without very material assistance from heavy artil-
lery, and was one of the most brilliant but dearly, bought
achievements of the war. The assault upon Chapultepeo was
preceded by a long and heavy cannonade, which produced a,
decided moral effect upon the enemy and greatly facilitated the
assault.
"With respect to the battles of the Crimean war, only that
of the Alma is subject to the tactical criticism of ordinary bat-
tles ; those of Balaklava, Inkerman, and the Tchemaya, were
of the nature of sorties made to prevent an assault of the unfin-
ished works of defence, and to ptolbng the operations of the
fiiege. They must therefore be juclged as such, and not accord-
416 NOTES.
ing to the ordinary rules applicable to contests in the open field.
At the battle of the Alma the Russians were attacked in
position, the two lines of battle being nearly parallel. Accord-
ing to the original plan of attack, the Turks and Bosquet's
division was to turn the Russian left, while the main attack was
made upon the Centre. But, on account of the division of com-
mand in the allied army, there was no concert of action. The
heavy column of Bosquet probably decided the victory, although
the battle was general throughout the whole line. The English
army advanced in columns of bfigades at deploying distances
ij;s right connected with the French, and its left protected by a
line of skirmishers, of cavalry and horse artillery. With
respect to the formation and use of troops in the other battles,
it may be remarked that the charge of the English light cavalry
at Balaklava'was apparefltly without necessity or object, and
led to its inevitable destruction. In the battle of Inkerman
the Russians directed their main attack upon the English right
and centre, With false attacks upon the French left and towards
Balaklavaj But these false attacks, as is uSual in such cases,
were not conducted with sufficient energy and decision, and
Bosquet was thus enabled to perceive the real intentions of
the enemy upon the English portion of the line and move to
its assistance. Moreover, the maio body of the Russians
moved in too heavy and unwieldy masses, which exposed
them to terrible losses, and rendered impossible a rapid and
effective deployment of their numerical force. The same
criticism is applicable to their formation at the battle of
the Tchernaya.
NOTE TO CHAPTEE VI.— Means of National Defence.
On the invasion of Mexico by the United States, the former
republic had a large army of tolerably good troops, though badly
officered, still worse equipped, and almost destitute of proper
military stores; but she was entirely wanting in two important
elements of natipnnl defence — fortifications and a navy. Her
NOTES. 417
weakness was shown by the rapid and easy conquest of almost
the entire country.
"We hare already remarked that the fortifications of Russia
confined the theatre of war to a single point of the Crimea, and
limited the military operations of the allies to the prolonged
and only partially successful siege of Sebastopol.
NOTE TO CHAPTER VII.— Sea-Coast Defences.
^ Allusion has already been made to the weakness of Mexico,
resulting from her want of sea-coast defences, as shown by the
war between that republic and the United States. This
would have been still more manifest had she possessed any thing
like a commercial marine, exposed to capture by our naval
forces. As it was, the Mexican war afibrded not a single con-
test between ships and forts, no opposition being made to the
occupation of Mexican ports by our naval force. The only
coast defence, the castle of San Juan d'Ulloa, was not attacked,
but after the bombardment and capture of Vera Cruz, it sur-
rendered without a blow.
The Crimean war, on the contrary, exhibited in a most
marked degree the importance of a well-fortified sea-coast.
Notwithstanding the immense force of the combined fleets of
England and France, no naval attack was made upon either
Cronstadt or Sebastopol, and the large naval force of Eussia
proved utterly useless as a defence against a maritime descent.
There was, indeed, a simulachre of a " naval cannonade " on the
latter place on the 17th of October, 1854, intended as a diver-
sion of the attention and strength of the garrison from the
land side, where the real struggle for predominance was going
on between the besieged and the besiegers. The inutility of
this attempt was so manifest that no serious naval attack was
undertaken, notwithstanding that the allies were ready to bring
to bear upon the antiquated and ill-armed Bussian works the
most powerful naval armaments the world had ever seen.
The results of this "simulachre of a naval cannonade," as it
418 NOTES.
has been called, is worthy of note. The details are taken from
Major Barnard's able pamphlet on " The Dangers and Defences
of New York," and Commander Dahlgren's interesting and
valuable work on " Shells and Shell Guns."
" The allied fleet consisted of 14 French, 10 British, and 2 Turkish
ships-of-the-line (some few of which had auxiliary steam power), and a
number of side-wheel steamers to tow these ; and carried in all about
2,500 guns. It was opposed by about 280 guns from the works. The
fleet kept itself (in general) at a respectable distance (&om 1500 to 2000
yards) ; too far to inflict any material injuiy with its armament (32-
pounders, with a moderate proportion of 8-inch shell-guns) upon the
works ; — ^too far to receire much from the inefficient armament of the
Russian works.
" The only exception to this remark applies to the detached English
squadron under Sir Edmund Lyons, consisting of the Agamemnon,
SonapareU, London, AretJmaa, and AUiion, the first-named of which
vessels took a position at 750 or 800 yards from Fort Constantine, while
the others stretched along, at about the same distance from Fort Con-
stantine, the ' Wasp Tower,' and ' Telegraph Battery.' Dahlgren de-
scribes the result as follows ; —
'" The Agamemnon was very seriously maltreated, though not to
such an extent as to impair her power of battery or engine; She was
on fire several times ; was struck by 240 shot or shells ; and, singular
to say, only lost 29, while her second, just by, lost 70 men. The AOnon
suffered still more, and in an hour was towed out crippled, and on fire
in more than one place, with a loss of 81 men. The crews of the IiOn-
don and Arethusa fared rather better, but the ships nearly as ill ; and
they too remained in station but a little time after ihe AUion. The
Quein was driven off' soon after she got into her new position, in great
danger ; and the Sodney had the bare satisfaction of getting aground
and afloat after experiencing some damage.
" ' The value of the small works on the cape and blnfis, was clearly
defined in these results ; being above the dense cloud of smoke that
enveloped the ships and the lower forts, their aim was not embarrassed,
while the seamen la1)ored under the difficulty of firing, with an inoon-
venient elevation, at objects that they saw but seldom, and then but
dimly and briefly. As a consequence, three line-of-battle ships and a
frigate were driven off very shortly and in great peril, and a fourth
badly cut up ; while the Agamemnon lay opposed to one of the heaviest
sea-forts with two tiers of casemates, and at the end of five hours came
off with Comparatively little loss.'
" Whatever superiority of effect the batteries on the heights may
have had (and we have so few details about these works that we can
NOTES. 419
draw no sure conclusion from this mere naked statement of damages
receiTed by the vessels), it evidently was not for want of being Mt often
enough (smoke or no smoke), that the Agamemnon escaped with so
little injury. She ' was struck by 2^0 shot and shells ; ' and it is only
due to the inefficiency of the projectiles by which she was struck, that
she was not destroyed.
" With respect to the damages received by Fort Constantine, Dahl-
grea says : —
" ' The distance of the Agamemnon and Sanepareil from Fort Con-
stantine (17th October, 1851), was assumed to be about 800 yards ; Lord
Raglan states It to have been rather less. These two ships could bring
to bear about 87 guns, and the firing from them probably lasted some
four hours. There can be no doubt that it inflicted much damage, for
the Russian Commander-in-chief admits it in his official report ; but not
sufficient to Impair the strength of the masonry, and far short of effect-
ing a breach in it.
'"At Bomarsund, the results were rather different: — Three 32-
pounders of 42 owt. (guns of inferior weight), were landed from a ship's
spar deck, and placed in battery at 950 yards from the Korth Tower —
the masonry of gSod quality and 6i feet thick. In eight hours, the wall
between two embrasures was cut through from top to bottom, offering
apracticable breach, to effect which 487 shot and 45 shells were fired,
being at the rate of one round from the battery in rather less than a
minute ; or, from each gun, one in 21 minutes. The Tower surren-
dered.
" ' It seems almost incredible that three piecies should be able to
accomplish fully that which eighty-seven pieces utterly failed to do, the
distances from the object being alike — ^particularly when it is considered
that many of the latter were of greater calibre, and most of them
employed much heavier charges where the calibres were similar. The
guns of the ship, if fired at the same rate as those of the battery, which
was not unusually rapid (one round in two and three-fourth minutes),
would have discharged some seven thousand seven hundred shot and
shells in the course of the four hours, supposing no interruption ; a
number which, if properly applied, would appear, from the results of
three guns, to have been sufficient to breach the wall of the fort in four-
teen places ; whereas they did not effect a single breach, which is abun-
dant proof of the lack of accuracy. They must either have been
dispersed over the surface of the fort, or else missed it altogether, and
this could have been due only to a want of the precision which was
attained by the battery. The constantly preferred complaint of motion
in the ships was not to be urged, because on the day of cannonading
Sebastopol, there was scarcely a breath of wind, and the ships were top
large to be easily moved by the swell, unless very considerable. That
420 NOTES.
the fort did no greater damage to the ships thaa It received from them,
proves no more than that its fire was quite as illj directed, and the
calibres too low. It is said that the Agamenmon was struck in the hull
by two hundred and forty shot and shells, which must hare been but a
small portion of what was fired, though sufficient to be decisive, if, as
already observed, the calibre had been heavier,' "
Here, then, a number of projectiles thrown from the ships,
which were sufBcient, had they been thrown from a land bat-
tery, according to the result at Bomarsund, to produce fourteen
practicable breaches, failed not only to produce a single breach,
but even "to impair the strength of the masonry."
The reason of this is obvious. That degree of precision of
fire by which a breach is efiected by a land battery is utterly
unattainable from a floating structure, for the motion of the
water, even in the calmest days, is quite sufficient to prevent
accuracy of aim at an object at a distance, as in this case, of
seven and eight hundred yards.
With respect to the action of the shot and shells upon the
Agamsmnon, it is to be remarked that we have as yet had no
fair trial of the power of the fire of modem shell-guns of large
calibre from land batteries against ships of war. The Russians
had some of them in their fleet, and at Sinope, with their shell-
guns, they blew up two Turkish frigates in fifteen minutes.
It does not appear that in the Crimean war they had yet pro-
vided their fortifications with the modem armaments, for where
shells were thrown from their sea-coast batteries, they were in
every instance of inferior calibre.
With respect to the naval attack upon Kinbum, which has
been referred to as showing the importance of floating batteries
as an auxiliary to ships in reducing harbor defences, we have
no official reports of the Russians fi-om which to derive accurate
information of the strength of the works attacked. Dahlgren,
drawing his information from the official accounts of the " English
and French admirals," describes the works and their location
as follows : —
" ' The Boug and the Dnieper issue into a large basin, formed partly
by the projection of the main shore, partly by a long narrow strip of
gand-beacb, which continues from it and takes a north-westerly direction
NOTES. 421
until it passes the promoutoiy of Oichakov, where it terminates, and
from which it is separated by the channel, whereby the waters of the
estuary empty into the Black Sea.
" ' The distance between the spit or extremity of this tongue and the
Point of OtchakoT, or the main shore opposite, is about two miles ; but
the water is too shoal to admit of the passage of large vessels of war,
except in the narrow channel that runs nearest to the spit and its north-
em shore. Here, therefore, are placed the works designed to command
the entrance. They are three in number. Near the extreme point of
the spit is a corered battery built of logs, which are filled in and over-
laid with sand, — ^pierced for eighteen guns, but mounting only ten.
" ' Advancing further along the beach is a circular redoubt, connected
with the spit battery by a covered way. This work, built of stone,
and riveted with turf, is open, and said to be the most substantial
of the three ; it has eleven cannon, and within is a furnace for heating
shot.
*' ' Further on, and where the beach has widened considerably, is
Fort Kinbum, a square bastioned work, extending to the sea on the
south, and to the waters of the estuary on the north. It is casemated
in part, though but few of these embrasures were armed, — its chief force
being in the pieces en. barbette, and some nine or ten mortars. The
masonry, though solid, is represented by an eye-witness not to be bomb-
proof, and so dilapidated by age that the mortar was falling out from
the interstices, leaving the stone to disintegrate. The interior space
was occupied by ranges of wooden buildings, slightly constructed and
plastered over. ,
" ' This fort is said to be armed with sixty pieces. The English
admiral states, that all three of the works mounted eighty-one guns and
mortars. The calibres are not given officially, but stated in private *
letters to be 18-pounders and 32-pounders.' "
" The above description will quite justify the further remark as to
these works : —
" ' They were inferior in every respect, and manifestly incapable ot
withstanding any serious operation by sea or land. The main fort was
particularly weak in design, and dilapidated; all of them were indiffer-
ently armed and garrisoned.' "
" So much for the works. As to the character of the armament
brought to the assault, the same authority says ; —
'"The allied force was admirably adapted to the operation, em-
bracing eveiy description of vessel, from the largest to the smallest,
and all propelled by steam. There were screw-liners, and like vessels
of inferior class, side-wheel steamers, screw gunboats, floating-batteries,
mortar-vessels, etc., each armed in what was considered the most ap-
proved manner.' And this truly formidable naval force carried besides
422 NOTES.
' some thousand troops' on board, all designed to attack these 'dilapr
dated ' works of Kinburn.
" Without going into the particulars, w« simply give Dahlgren's ac-
count of the affair i^—
" ■ The French floating-batteries (Z>evastation, Lave, and Tonnante)
steamed in to make their first essay, anchoring some six or seven hun-
dred yards off the S. E. bastion of Fort Kinburn, and at 9.20 opened
fire, supported by the mortar-vessels, of which, six were English, by
the gun-boats, five French and six English, and by the steamer 0dm,
16;
" ' The heavy metal of the floating-batteries (said to be twelve 50-
ponnders on the broadside of each) soon tojd on the walls of the fort ;
and the vertical fire was so good that the French admiral attributed to
it, in great part, the speedy surrender of the place. The gun-boats also
made good ricochet practice, which was noticed to be severe on the
barbette batteries.
" ' The Russian gunners, in nowise daunted by this varied fire, plied
their guns rapidly in return, directing their attention chiefly to the
floating-batteries, whidi were nearest.
'"Exactly at noon, the admirals steamed in with the Boyal.Jlberi^
121, Algiers, 91, Agamemnon, 90, and iW»c«s» Jft)ya?,90,'with the four
French liners in close order,, taking position in line, ranging N. W. and
S. E., about one mile from the fort, in twenty-eight feet water.
" ' At the same time, a squadron of steam-frigates, under Bear-
Admirals Stewart and Fellion^ dashed in through the passage to the
basin, opening fire on the spit and central batteries in passing, and an-
choring well inside of Fort Nicholaiev and Otchakov. The attack sea-
ward was completed by ihe Acre, 100, Carofoa, SO, Tyiimne, 30, and
Sp^nx, 6, opening on the central battery; while the Sanmbdl, 91,
Daimiless, 24, and Terrible, 21, assailed that on the spit. To this storm
of shot and shells, the Russians could not reply long. In the spit bat-
tery, the sand falling through between the logs, displaced by shot atid
shells, choked the embrasures, and blocked up the guns. In the fort,
the light wooden buildings were in flames at an early hour ; then the
walls began to crumble before the balls which came from every quarter,
front, flank, and rear; and as the guns were disabled successively, the
return became feeble, until few were in condition to be fired, the central
redoubt alone discharging single guns at long intervals. The Russian
commander, however, made no sign of surrender ; but the admirals,
seeing that his fire had ceased, and further defence ivaa unavailing,
hoisted the white flag at 1.85 p. nr., upon which the works were given
up on honorable terms.
" ' The garrison consisted of about fourteen hundred men ; their loss
MOTES. 423
is differently stated, — the French admiral says eighty wounded,—
another, forty-three killed and one hundred and fourteen wounded.
" ' The English suffered the least, having but two men wounded;
besides two killed and two wounded in the Arrow, by the bursting of
her two 68-pounder Lancaster guns.
" ' The superiority of the allied vessels in number and calibre of
ordnance was very decided ; they must have bad at least six hundred
and fifty pieces in play, chiefly 32-pounders, and 8-inch shell guns, with
a fair proportion of 68-pounders and mortars, besides the 50-pounders
of the French floating batteries. To which the Russians could only
reply with eighty-one cannon and mortars, and no guns of heavier
calibre than 32-pounders, while many were lower. The great disparity
in offensive power was not compensated to the works by the advantage
of commanding position, the Russian- fort and redoubt being upon
nearly the same level with the ships' batteries, and also very deficient
in proper strength. On the other hand, the depth of water did not
allow the liners to approach nearer than one mile ; and thus their fire
was by no means so intense as it would have been at shorter range.
" ' This was the sole occasion in which the floating batteries had an
opportunity of proving their endurance ; which was the question of
most importance, as no one could doubt the effect of long SO-pounders,
or 68-pounders, when brought within a few hundred yards of masonry,
and able to retain 'She steadiness indispensable to a breaching fire.
'"No siege operation had ever embraced batteries of such power,
for though the English had employed long 68-pounders at Sebastopol,
yet the distance from the objects exceeded a thousand yards ; and the
concentration of fire, so far as any opinion can be formed from the
published statements, was far inferior to that of the thirty-six 50-
pounders, in the broadsides of the three batteries anchored in close
order.
" ' They were hulled repeatedly by shot ; one of them (the Sevastor
turn), it is said, sixty-seven times, without any other effect on the stout
iron plates than to dint them, at the most, one and a half inches, — still,
there were ten men killed and wounded in this battery by shot and shell
which entered the ports, — and the majority of damage to the French
personnel (twenty-seven men) occurred in the three floating-batteries.' "
Major Barnard, in commenting upon this affair, says that it " proves
nothing, unless it be, that dilapidated, and ill-designed, and ill-con-
structed works, armed with inferior calibres, cannot contend against
such an overwhelming array of force as was here displayed. * * * The
Fort of Kinburn surrendered, not lecauae it was breached — not because
the defenders were so far diminished by their losses as to be un-
able to protract the contest,— but simply because the guns and
gunners, exposed in all possible ways, were put hors-du-combat, and
424 NOTES.
the calibres (of the guns in Einburn) were incapable of doing an}
great damage to the vessels, at the distance they were stationed."
The guns in the low open batteries were exposed to a ri-
cochet and vertical fire, to which latter the French admiral
attributed, in good part, the surrender of the place. The
buildings behind the batteries, built of wood, '' slightly con-
structed and plastered over," were set on fire, and the heat
and smoke must have rendered the service of the guns almost
impracticable. Nevertheless, out of a garrison of 1,400, only
157 were killed and wounded — a very small loss under all the
circumstances. If the works had been well-constructed case-
mates, covering the men from the ricochet and vertical fires
and the sharpshooters of the troops who invested the land
fronts, the loss of the garrison would have been still less ; and
if they had been armed with heavier projectiles, much greater
dam!^ would have been inflicted upon the attacking force.
With respect to the use of floating-batteries in this case,
Commander Dahlgren very judiciously remarks : —
" The use that can be made of floating-batteries, as auxiliaries in
attacking shore-works, must depend on further confirmation of their
asserted invulnerability. It may be that the performance at Einburn
answered the expectation of the French emperor as regards offensive
power, for that is a mere question of the battering capacity of the
heaviest calibres, which is undoubted ; but the main issue, which con-
cerns their endurance, cannot be settled by the impact of 32-ponnder
shot, fired at 600 and 700 yards. Far heavier projectiles will in future
be found on all sea-board fortifications ; and the ingenuity of the artil-
lerist may also be exerted more successfully than at Einburn. Still, it
is not to be doubted that the floating-battery is a formidable element in
assailing forts, even if its endurance falls short of absolute invulner-
ability; and the defence will do well to provide against its employ-
ment."
The works at Bomarsund were taken by means of land-
iafteriea, which breached the exposed walls of the towers and
main works. An auxiliary fire was opened upon the water
front by the fleet, but it produced very little effect. But after
the work had been reduced, an experimental firing was made
by the Edinburgh, armed with the largest and most powerful
guns in the British navy.
NOTES. 425
In speaking of the effects of the siege batteries upon the
walls of Bomarsund, and the experimental fire of the Edin-
Iv/rffh, Sir Howard Douglas remarks : —
" This successful operation (of the laud batteries) is very generally,
but erroneously, stated to haye been effected by the fire of the ships,
and it is even sjrongly held up as a proof of what ships can do, and
ought to attempt elsewhere,
" But the results of the experimental firing at the remnant of the
fort, which, unless the previous firing of the ships during the attack
was absolutely harmless, must hare been somewhat damaged, and more-
over shaken by the blowing-up of the contiguous portions, do not war-
rant this conclusion, even should the attacking ships be permitted, like
the Edinburgh, to take up, quietly and coolly, positions within 500
yards, and then deliberately commence and continue their firing, with-
out being fired at ! The firing of the EdAiAwrgh, at 1,060 yards, was
unsatisfactory. 390 shot and shells were fired, from the largest and
most powerful guns in the British nary (viz., from the Lancaster gun
of 95 cwt., with an elongated shell of 100 lbs. ; — ^from 68-pounders of 95
cwt., and 32-pounder3 of 56 cwt., solid shot guns ; — from 10-inch shell
guns of 84 cwt., with hollow shot of 84 lbs. ; — from 8-inch shell guns of
65 and 60 cwt., with hollow shot of 56 lbs.), and did but little injury to
the work. At 480 yards, 250 shot, shells, and hollow shot were fired.
A small breach wasjbrmed in the facing of the outer wall, of extremely
bad masonry, and considerable damage done to the embrasures and
other portions of the Wall ; but no decisive result was obtained — no
practicable breach formed, by which the work might be assaulted,
taken, and effectually destroyed, although 640 shot and shells (40,000
lbs. of metal) were fired into the place, first at 1,060, and then at 480
yards."
Surely, this "naval attack," taken in connection with the
true facts of the capture of Kinbum, the abortive attempt of
the British fleet in the Pacific upon the Kussian works of
Petropauloski, is not calculated to affect the well established
opimon of the ability of forts to resist maritime attacks.
Few are now disposed to dispute the general superiority of
guns ashore over guns afloat ; but some think that works of
masonry are incapable of resisting the heavy and continuous
fire which may now be brought against it by fleets and floating-
batteries, and would therefore extend the area of the works
and rely mainly upon earthen parapets, with guns in barbette.
426 NOTES.
This conclusion they form from the results of the maritime
attack on Kinburn, and of the land-batteries on Bomarsund.
Major Barnard, in his valuable work on " The Dangers and
Defences of New York," draws a very different conclusion
from these attacks, and contends that they abundantly prove
the capability of well-constructed stone masonry to resist the
fire of ships and floating-batteries, if the latter are opposed by
proper armaments in the forts ; moreover, that they proved the
superiority of casemated forts over low open batteries, with
guns in barbette, in covering the garrison from the effects of a
vertical and ricochet fire. Unquestionably the masonry at
Bomarsund was poorly constructed ; nevertheless, the fire of
the shipping produced very little effect upon it. It is also
equally certain that Kinburn was taken, not by a breaching
fire, but mainly by the effects of vertical and ricochet fires.
With respect to our own system of sea-coast defences, it
may be remarked, that, since this chapter was written, the
works mentioned therein as having been commenced, have been
gradually advanced towards completion, and that the acquisi-
tion of Texas and California, and the settlement of Oregon and
Washington Territory, by greatly extending our line of mari-
time defence, have rendered necessary the fortification of other
points. It should also be noted that while the value and neces-
sity of these works are generally admitted, and while the gen-
eral outline of the system is almost universally approved, many
are of the opinion that the increased facilities for naval attacks,
and the immense power of modern maritime expeditions, like
that upon Sebastopol, render it necessary to more strongly
fortify the great naval and commercial ports of New York and
San Francisco— one the Teey point of the Atlantic, and the
other of the Pacific coast. Perhaps the system adopted by
our Boards of Engineers may be open to the objection that
they have adopted too many points of defence, without giving
sufficient prominence to our great seaports, which are neces-
sarily the strategic points of coast defence. However this may
have been at the time the system was adopted, there can be
no question that the relative strength of the works designed
NOTES. 427
for the different points of our, coast does not correspond to the
present relative importance of the places to be defended, and
the relative temptations they offer to an enemy capable of or-
ganizing the means of maritime attack. On this subject we
quote from the work of Major Barnard : —
, "While the means of maritime, attack have of late years assumed
a magnitude and formidableness not dreamed of when our defensive
system was planned, and our country has so increased in population,
wealth and military resources, that no enemy can hope to make any
impression by an invasion of our terrltory,^-^ur great maritime places
like New York, have, on the other hand, increased in even greater pro-
portion, in every thing that could make them objects of attack.
'' The works deemed adequate in former years for the defence of
New York could not, therefore', in the nature of things, be adequate at
the present day.
" The recent war of England and France against Russia may illns-
trate my qeaning ; for it has taught us what to expect were either of
these nations to wage war against the United States.
"No invasion of territory, no attempt at territorial conquest was
made, or thought of; for it was well foreseen that no decisive results
would flow from such means. The war consisted exclusively in attacks
upon maritime places— great seaports — seats of commercial and naval
power. Such places, by their vast importance to the well-being and
prosperity of a nation — by the large populations and immense amount
of wealth concentrated in them, and by their exposure to maritime at-
tack, offer themselves at once as poin^ at which the most decisive re-
sults may be produced. Cronstadt, Sebastopol, Sweaborg, Kinburn,
Odessa, Kertch, Fetropauloski, and other places of less note, were in
succession or simultaneously objects of attack ; while such as the first
named became, indeed, the true seats of war.
"Around Sebastopol assailed and assailant gathered their re-
sources, and on the result of the arduous struggle may be Said to have
turned the issue of the war. ' Had it not been so decided there, Cron-
stadt would have been the next field of combat,— 'for which, indeed, the
allies had made the most enormous preparations.
" Is it not certain that in future all war of maritime powers against
the United States, will take a similar course ? All territorial invasion
being out of the question, it is against our great seaports and strategic
paints of cdast defence — such as New York, New Orleans, and San
Francisco — pre-eminently New York, — that an enemy will concentrate
his efforts. Against these he will prepare such immense armaments, —
against these he will call into existence special agencies of attack, —
428 NOTES.
which (unless met by an inexpugnable defensive system) sbdll ^nlurl
success.
" Xhe mere defense of the city agunst ordinary fleets, is no longer
the question; but through the defemme workt to he here erected, the na-
tion is to measure Us strength against the most lavish use of the resources
of a great maritime power, aided Try all that modem science and me-
chanical ingenuity in creating or inventing means of attach, can bring
against them ; in short, in fortifying New York, me are really preparing
the hattle-jUld on which the issue of future mmnenlous contests is to be
A few, however, object to the system at present adopted,
on the ground that casemated works do not oifer sufficient re-
sistance to ships and floating-batteries, and that earthen works,
covering a greater area, will accomplish that object much more
eiTectually, while their longer land fronts will be more difficult
of reduction by siege.
It cannot be doubted that earthen batteries, with guns in
barbette, can, as a general rule, be more easily taken by as-
sault, that they are more exposed to vertical and ricochet
firing, and more expose their gunners to be picked off by
sharpshooters. Moreover, they give but a very limited fire
upon the most desirable point, as the entrance to a harbor.
On the other hand, it has not been proved that masonry-case-
mated works, when properly constructed and properly armed,
will not effectually resist a naval cannonade, whether from
ships or floating-batteries. The results of recent wars, and of
the West Point experiments by General Totten, would seem
to prove them abundantly capable of doing this. Against such
proofs the mere ad captandum assertion of their incapacity can
have but little weight — certainly not enough to justify the
abandonment of a system approved by the best military
authorities of this country and Europe, and sanctioned by
long experience.
Major Barnard, in speaking of the capacity of masonry-
casemated forts to resist the fire of a hostile armament, and of
the propriety of abandoning them for earthen batteries in our
system of Coast Defences, uses the following forcible lan-
guage:—
NOTES. 429
"When we bear in mind that the hostile 'floating batteries,' of
whatever description, will themselves be exposed to the most formidable
projectiles that can be thrown from shore batteries, — that when they
choose to come to 'close quarters,' to attempt to breach, their 'em-
brasures ' present openings through which deluges of grape, canister,
and musket balls can be poured upon the gunners ; and consider what
experience has so far shown, and reason has taught us, with regard to
the casemate, — we need not be under apprehension that our casemated
works will be battered down ; nor doubt that they will, as thej did in
Russia, answer the important purposes for which they were designed.
" It only remains to show the necessity of such works. It, in general,
costs much less to place a gun behind an earthen parapet, than to build
a masonry structure covered with bomb-proof arches, in which to mount
it. All authorities agree that an open barbette battery (Grivel's very
forcible admission has been quoted), on a low site, and to which vessels
can approach within 300 or 400 yards, is utterly inadmissible. It may
safely be said, that in nine cases out of ten, the sites which furnish the
efficient raking and cross fires upon the channels, are exactly of this
character ; and indeed it very often happens that there are no others.
" When such sites are found, it rarely happens that they afford room
for sufficient number of guns in open batteries. Hence the necessity
of putting them tier above tier, which involves, of course, the case-
mated structure. Such works, furnishing from their lower tier a low,
raking fire, and (if of several tiers) a plunging fire from their barbettes,
offer as favorable emplacements forgnns as can be contrived, and afford
to their gunners a degree of security quite as great as can be given to
men thus engaged.
" On subjects which have a mere speculative importance, there is no
danger in giving rein to speculation ;, but on those of such real and in-
tense practical importance as the security against hostile aggression of
the great city and port of Kew York, it is not admissible to set aside
the experience of the past, or the opinions of the best minds who have
devoted themselves to such subjects. A means of defence, sanctioned
by its being confided in to protect the great ports of Europe — which has
protected the great ports of Russia against the most formidable naval
armament that ever floated on the ocean, has a claim upon our confi-
dence which mere criticism cannot diminish ; and a claim to be adhered
to in place of all new ' systems,' until time and trial shall have necessi-
tated (not merely justified) the change.
" If, then, we refer to the practice of other nations, to find what has
been judged necessary for the defence of important ports, — to expe-
rience, to find how such defensive systems have stood the test of actual
trial, — we may draw useful conclusions with regard to what is now re-
quired to defend New York. We shall find at Sebastopol — a narrow
430 NOTES.
harbor, which owed its importance to its being the great naral d^pSt
of Russia on the Black Sea — an array of 700 guns, about 500 of which
were placed in fire 'masonry-casemated' works (several of them of
great size), and the remainder in open batteries. These defensive
works fulfilled their object, and sustained the attack of the allied fleet,
on the 17th of October, 18S4, without sensible damage.
" The facility with which seaports are attacked by fleets^the enor-
mous preparations required — the great risks encountered in landing a
besieging army on the coast of a formidable enemy (while, for protec-
tion against the former species of attack, costly works are necessary,
and against the latter, field works and men can, in emergency, afford
protection), naturally caused the Russians to make these water defences
VaiArjirsl object. Yet, though almost unprotected on the land side, Se-
bastopol resisted, for a whole year, an attack on that quarter; and illus-
trated how, with plenty of men and material, an energetic and effectual
land defence may be improvised, where the sea defence is provided for,
as thoroughly as it was at that place. ''
" Let Gronstadt be another example. Great as was the importance
of its defence to Russia, it was not greater, — it was by no means as
great, as that of New Tork to our own country. This port, and military
and naval d6pot, was defended (iii its main approach) by upwards of
600 guns, 500 of which were mounted in five ' masonry-casemated '
works ; the remainder in an open barbette battery, which enfiladed the
main channel. This number is formidable in itself; yet the same num-
ber mounted in New Tork harbor would not afford anything like such
a formidable defence as was found at Cronstadt, owing to its great area,
and long line of approach, compared with the latter.
" These works fulfilled their object. They protected the great port
and d6p6t of Cronstadt and the capital of the empire from invasion.
For two successive years did the mighty armaments of France and
England threaten ; but they were overawed by the frowning array of
'casemated castles' which presented itself^ and declined the contest.
" Let us turn our eyes now to the great naval d^pot of France.
After the almost incredible expenditure lavished here, in creating- a
harbor feeing the shores of her great rival, England, and an equally
profuse expenditure in providing all that constitutes a great naval
d€p6t, we may suppose that the best means, without regard to cost,
which the science of man could devise, would be employed here to make
this great seat of naval power secure against the formidable means of
attack possessed by the great maritime power most likely to be the as-
sailant. The means there employed are (so far as regards mere harbor
defence) precisely the same (viz., casemated works in several tiers, com-
bined with open batteries where the locations are favorable) ; and the
application of means is the same as we have found so successful in
NOTES. 431
Bussia, — the same which constitute the system of harbor defence of
New York."
Caplain McClelland, in his official report to the War De-
partment, on the siege of Sebastopol, uses language equally
strong and pertinent : —
" The permanent defences of Sebastopol against an attack by water,
although inferior in material and the details of construction to our own
most recent works, proved fully equal to the purpose for which they
were intended. Indeed, the occurrences on the Pacific, the Baltic, and
the Black Sea, all seem to establish beyond controversy, the soundness
of the view so long entertained by all intelligent military men, that well
constructed fortifications must always prore more than a match for the
strongest fleet.
" It is deemed that a calm consideration of the events so hastily and
imperfectly narrated in the preceding pages must lead all unprejudiced
persons among our countrymen to a firm conviction on two vital points :
" 1st. That our system of permanent coast defences is a wise and
proper one, which ought to be completed and armed with the least
possible delay.
" 2d. That mere individual courage cannot suffice to overcome the
forces that would be brought against us, were we involved in an Eu-
ropean war, but that it must be rendered manageable by discipline, and
directed by that consummate and mechanical skill which can only be
acquired by a course of education, instituted for the special purpose,
and by long habit.
" In the day of sailing-vessels the successful siege of Sebastopol
would have been impossible. It is evident that the Kussians did not
appreciate the advantages afforded by steamers, and were unprepared
to sustain a siege.
"This same power of steam would enable Eiiropean naltions to dis-
embark upon our shores even a larger force than that which finally en-
camped around Sebastopol. To resist such an attack, should it ever be
made, our cities and harbors must be fortified, and those fortifications
must be provided with guns, ammunition, and instructed artillerists.
To repel the advance of such an army into the interior, it is not enough
to trust to the number of brave but undisciplined men that we can
bring to bear against it. An invading army of 15,000 or 20,000 men
could easily be crushed by the unremitting attacks of superior num-
bers ; but when it comes to the case of more than 100,000 disciplined
veterans, the very multitude brought to bear against them works its
own destruction ; because, if without discipline and instruction, they
cannot be handled, and are in their own way. "We cannot aSbrd a Mos-
cow campaign.
432 NOTES.
" Out Tegular army never can, and, perhaps, never ought to be, large
enough to provide for all the contingencies that may arise, but it should
be as large as its ordinary avocations in the defence of the frontier will
justify ; the number of officers and non-commissioned officers should
be unusually large, to provide for a sudden increase ; and the greatest
possible care should be bestowed upon the instruction of the special
arms of the artillery and engineer troops. The militia and volunteei
system should be placed upon some tangible and effective basis ; in-
structors furnished them from the regular army, and all possible means
taken to spread sound military information among them. In the vicinity
of our sea-coast fortifications, it would be well to provide a sufficient
number of volunteer companies with the means of instruction in heavy
artillery, detailmg officers of the regular artillery for instructors."
On this subject of instructing our volunteers and militia in
the use of sea-coast batteries, we add the following quotation
from Major Barnard's pamphlet: —
" One of the main causes of inefficiency in coast batteries, which
has given color to the idea that they may be passed, or even attached
with impunity, I conceive to be the want of eMll and care in the use of
the guns. The result is a prodigious smoke, and a prodigious throwing
away of balls, and very little damage done. This has been, however,
by no means apeouUarity of coast defences. The same system of ran-
dom firing has hitherto prevailed, both in the use of small arms in land
and of heavy ordnance in sea battles ; nor has it occurred apparently to
even the greatest masters of the art of war, to ask why, for one man
wounded, or for one effective shot in a vessel's hull, so many thousands
of shot should be thrown uselessly into the air.'
" But this question is note asked, both in the use of the soldier's
rifled musket, and in the management of ships' guns, as well as of ar-.
tillery of all kinds.
" It is at last discovered that it is of more importance to teach the
soldier to direct his piece with accuracy of aim, than to perform certain
motions on parade with the precision of an automaton. The same idea
is now infused into all the departments of military and naval science,
and is a necessary result of the recent great improvements in the con-
struction of arms. In short, the truth has at last become apparent that
the old-fashioned system of random firing, though perhaps like the
' charge of the six hundred ' at Balaklava, ' bien magnifique, riest pas
la guerre.'
" It is of the utmost importance that we should apply this principle
to the management of our sea-coast batteries, and give it a practical
effect. The volimteers of our cities will constitute mamly, in time of
NOTES. 433
war, the gunners of our forts and manipulators of our sea-coast guns.
In time of war, they will probably be exercised in these duties. But it
is most desirable that we should have at oR times a body of gunners,
practised in these exercises. The result would be, not only to give to
our dUeeas, as well as citizen-soldiers, confidence in the defences pro-
vided for their security, but it wouVi disseminate military knowledge,
and an intelligent idea of the bearing and ob^cts of the different de-
fensive works. To carry out this idea, it would be desirable that there
should be at each considerable seaport town, a sufficient garrison Of
artillery troops to aid in the instruction of the volunteers. In the
present condition of the army this cannot be hoped ; but perhaps it
might, at least, be found practicable to detail an artillery officer or two
for the purpose."
NOTE TO CHAPTER VIII.— Oue Nokthern Frontier Defences.
The author has seen nothing since this chapter was written
to induce him to change the views therein expressed with re-
spect to the superior strategic importance of the line of Lake
Champlain, both as a line of military operations, and as a line
of defence. The mutual commercial interests of the United
States and the Oanadas render a war between the two countries
less probable than formerly ; nevertheless, such an event is by
no means impossible, and common prudence should induce us
to prepare in the best possible manner for such a contingency.
NOTE TO CHAPTERS IX., X., XI. and XII.— Aemy Oksaniza-
TION.
Since these chapters were written, several important changes
have been made in our army organization. The rank of Lieu-
tenant-General (at least, by brevet) has been revived, the stafl",
administrative corps, infantry and cavalry, have been in-
creased, and a company of engineer troops organized. But
this company is mainly employed at West Point for instruction
of the cadets in the several branches of military engineering.
3T
484
NOTES.
and thus serves to supply a deficiency long felt in the system
of education, at the Military Academy. The want, however,
of troops of this arm for the construction, care, and preserva/-
tion of our permanent fortifications, and for the general duties
of field engineering, still remains to be supplied. Of all the
arms of military orgtnization, this one most requires instruc-
tion in time of peace ; it cannot be supplied at the moment a
war is declared.
In speaking of our present army organization, as compared
with those of the difierent European powers which he was sent
to examine and report upon, Captain McClelland says : —
" Onr force of artillery is large in proportion to the other arms of
service, whilfe the number of our engineer troops is ridiculously and
shamefully small; it is, therefore, more than probable that in any
future siege it will be easy for the artillery to construct their own bat-
teries, while the engineers will be sufficiently burdened by the con-
struction of the other works of attack ; we have now, at last, the germ
of an artillery school of practice ; I would then suggest, for the consid-
eration of the Secretary, the propriety of causing the artillery to con-
struct their own batteries. The position and armament of siege bat-
teries should be determined by consultation between the engineers and
the artillery, the former having the preponderating voice, in order to
secure the necessary harmony and connection between all parts of the
works of attack. This change," he says, " will require to be intro-
duced into the artillery manual and course of instruction everything in
relation to the preparation of the fascines, gabions, platforms, and
magazines, the dimensions of batteries, manner of arranging, working
parties, etc."
With regard to the suggestion of Captain McClellan, it is
sufBcient to remark, that it seeks to remedy one evil by intro-
ducing another equally as great and equally as objectionable.
The defect in our present army organization is that one of its
arms is too small for the duties which, from the very nature
of military service, naturally and properly belong to it ; and it
surely is no remedy for this defect to permanently transfer a
part of these duties to another arm. As well might it be said,
if our artillery force were "ridiculously and shamefully small "
in proportion to the infantry and cavalry, that the field bat-
teries should be permanently transferred to those arms, and
NOTES. 435
that light artillery tactics should be comprised in our infantry
and cavalry manuals.
There are certain duties which the military experience of
ages has shown to properly and almost necessarily belong to
each particular arm of an army organization, and every at-
tempt to make one branch perform the appropriate duties of
another has invariably destroyed its efBciency for either ser-
vice. Suppose our medical corps were '"'ridiculously and
shamefully small " in proportion to our pay department, shall
our paymasters perform the duties of surgery, and be instructed
in the use of the scalpel and amputating instruments ! This
is, perhaps, an extreme case, but it serves to illustrate the
principle.
The defect referred to by Captain McClelland, and which
has so often been pointed out by our best military men, cannot
be obviated by any transfer or assignment, whether temporary
or permanent, of the appropriate duties of one corps to another.
Indeed, such a measure would only tend to make this defect
permanent, and to convert a temporary into a lasting evil. It
can readily be remedied by legislative action, but in no othei
way. The executive action suggested would be deprecated by
all. Moreover, the evil is now so obvious and so generally ad-
mitted, that there can be little doubt that Congress will soon
perceive the importance of applying the only proper and
effective remedy.
NOTE TO CHAPTER XIII.— Permanent Foktipications.
Although the general principles of the plan and arrange-
ment of a permanent fortification, as established by the great
masters of this branch of military science, remain the same ;
nevertheless, the vast improvements which have, within the
last few years, been made in projectiles, require some changes
in the details of defensive works of this character. These
changes consist mainly in an increased thickness of stone and
earthen parapets and of the covering of magazines, in the
436 NOTES.
arrangement of embrasures, and in protecting the garrison from
an enemy's sharpshooters. The introduction of heavier siege
gims, and of heavier ordnance on ships of war, and especially
on those propelled by steam, require much larger ordnance in
forts designed for the defence of harbors. In the Bussian war,
Svreaborg was made to suffer from a distant bombardment
which left her fortifications intact. These modifications in the
arrangements and armaments of forts are absolutely necessary
in order to restore the relative power of defence against the
improvements made in the means of attack. They can very
easily be introduced without changing the form or general
character of the works, and they are really so very essential
that, without them, a fort constructed 25 or 30 years ago, and
well suited to the then existing state of the military art, will be
likely to offer no very considerable resistanc^o modern siege
batteries or well organized maritime attacks.
Some have gone much further in their estimate of the effect
produced by the increased size and force of military projectiles,
and boldly assert that masonry works of strong rehef can no
longer be used, and that the increased range of small arms
requires an entire change of the bastioned front, with lines
more extended.
With respect to the effect of the increased range of small
arms, it is very natural that a superficial observer should adopt
the opinion that this improvement must be followed by an ex-
tension of the lines of a defensive military work; but a close
study of the subject will probably lead to a different conclusion.
Such at least is the opinion of the ablest military engineers
of Europe. The lines of the bastioned front now generally
in use, were really too long for a good defence with the
arms in use at the time it was adopted, and, in theory, the
" rampart gun " was to be relied upon for the defence of certain
exposed points. But this weapon is no longer in use ; its
place, however, is better supplied by the increased range of the
musket and rifle. The latter weapon is almost invaluable for
defeiiding the approaches to a permanent work.
"With respect to the breaching of stone masonry by siege
NOTES. 437
batteries, it has long been an established principle that all
masonry exposed to the fire of land batteries should be masked
by earthen works. The neglect of this rule caused the fall of
Bomarsund. Those who so readily draw, from the results of
that siege, the inference that the present mode of fortifying
land fronts must be abandoned, exhibit their ignorance of mili-
tary engineering. The facts do not justify their conclusions.
With respect to sea fronts, which can be reached only by
guns afloat, the case is very different. They are usually case-
mates of masonry, not masked by earthen works. Whether
the increased efficiency of projectiles thrown by ships and
floating batteries now require a resort to this mode of protect-
ing masonry on the water fronts of fortifications, is a question
well worthy of discussion. This subject has already been
alluded to in the Note on Sea-coast Defences, and it is there
shown that no facts have yet been developed which require or
authorize any change in our present system.
NOTE TO CHAPTER XIV.— Field Ensineeemg.
As Mexico had no permanent fortifications to be besieged,
the war in that country afforded very little practice in that
branch of engineering which is connected with the attack and
defence of permanent works, particularly sapping and mining.
The only operation resembling a siege was the investment and
bombardment of Vera Oruz, and it is worthy of remark that
if General Scott had stormed that place, weak as it was, he
must have lost a large number of his men, while from his
trenches and batteries he reduced it with scarcely the sacrifice
of a single life.
Nor did either party in this war make much use of field
works in the attack and defence of positions. Nevertheless,
no one can read the history of the war without appreciating
the important influence which Fort Brown had upon General
Taylor's defence of the left bank of the Rio Grande. Again,
438 NOTES.
if we compare our loss in other Mexican battles with that which
the Americans sustained in their attacks upon Monterey, Ohu-
rubusoo, Molino del Rey, and Chapultepec, — places partially
secured by field works — we shall be still more convinced of the
value of temporary fortifications for the defence of military
positions, although it was manifest that the Mexicans neither
knew how to construct nor how to defend them.
Nor was there much practice in this war in the use of mili-
tary bridges, for, with the exception of the Rio Grande, our
armies had no important rivers to cross. We must not, how-
■ ever, omit to note the important fact that General Taylor was
unable to take advantage of the victories of Palo Alto and
Eesaca de la Palma to pursue and destroy the army of Arista,
tecauae he had no pontoon equipage to enable him to follow
them across the Rio Grande. It should also be remarked that
even a very small bridge equipage would have been of very
great use in crossing other streams and ravines during the
operations of this war. One of our cavalry officers vn-ites : —
" On OUT inarch from Matamoras to Yictoria and Tampico, in 1846
and 1847, we had infinite difficulty in bridging boggy streams (there
being no suitable timber), and in crossing ravines with vertical banks ;
a few ways of the'Birago trestles would have saved us many days and
a vast amount of labor. In the operations in the valley of Mexico, our
movements, checked as they so often were by impassable wet ditches
and sometimes by dry ravines, would have been rendered so much more
free and rapid by the use of the Birago trestles, that our successes
could have been gained at far less cost, and probably with more ra-
pidity than they were."
With regard to military reconnoissance, the splendid achieve-
ments of Lee and others connected with the operations of
General Scott, proved the value and importance of this parti-
cular branch of field engineering.
But field engineering, as a branch or arm of the military
service, received its greatest development and most brilliant
application in the Crimean war, particularly in the siege of
Sebastopol, and the measures resorted to by General Todtleben
to defend that place agaiast the attack of superior forces.
NOTES. 439
A brief sketch of these defensive works may be of interest
to the reader : —
When the allies reached Balaklava, Sebastopolwas defended
on the south side only by a loop-holed wall about four feet and
a half thick, and from eighteen to twenty feet high, and a semi-
cireular redoubt with two stories of loop-holes, and five guns
in barbette. These works would have afforded some protection
against a coiip-de^nain by infantry and cavalry, but could have
offered no very considerable obstacle to a combined attack of
these arms with artillery.
The Eussian engineer commenced his operations for
strengthening this position by occupying the most important
points in his line of defence with detached field works of suffi-
cient relief to resist an assault, and generally closed at the
gorge. These works were afterwards connected by re-entering
lines of a weaker profile, which served to enfilade the ravines
and to flank the advanced works. The old wall was strength-
ened with earth, and rifle-pits for sharpshooters were con-
structed at a considerable distance in front.
The most important points of the main line of defence were :
1st. The Flagstaff Bastion. 2d. The Central Bastion. 3d.
TheMalakoff. 4th. The Redan. 5th. The little Redan. The
command of the first was about fifteen feet, its ditch thirty
feet wide and from twelve to fifteen feet deep. A portion of
the scarp was provided with palisades some ten feet high. The
construction of the Central Bastion was similar to that of the
Mag-staff, but weaker in profile. The relief of tbe other
works was still less. The command of the Malakoff was about
fourteen feet, its ditch eighteen feet wide and twelve feet deep.
The thickness of parapet in these works was generally about
eighteen feet, and the bombproofs were covered with timber
eighteen inches thick and six feet of earth. The loop-holed
waUs connecting these works were covered by a rampart and
parapet, or entirely replaced by a simple parapet. Many of
the embrasures were revetted with the common boiler iron
ships' water-tanks filled with earth. The same material was
sometimes used for traverses. Rope mantelets were used to
440 NOTES.
protect the artillerists at the pieces from rifle balls and small
grape. Great attention was given to the constructioij of bomb-
proofs to cover the men from vertical firing. These were
sometimes under the rampart and the second line of defence
(where there was one), often under special traverses, or en-
tirely under ground, and occasionally excavated in the solid
rock. Some had fireplaces and chimneys, and were well venti-
lated. Interior slopes were revetted with gabions, crowned by
fascines and sand bags. Gabions were also employed to repair
the damage caused by the enemy's artillery. Abattis, militajfy
pits, caltrops and spikes, stuck through planks, and explosive
machines were employed in front of different parts of the
defences. Mines were resorted to in front of the Flag-staff
Bastion to retard the French approaches. They were made in
rocky soil with craters from twelve to fifteen feet deep. The
Russian counter-approaches generally consisted of flfecheSj
united by a simple trench.
Captain McClellamd, one of our officers sent to the Crimea,
from whose valuable Report most of the foregoing details are
gathered, adds the following remarks upon these works of de-
fence : —
" From the preceding hasty and imperfect account of the defences
of Sebastopol, it will appear how little foundation there was for the gen-
erally-received accounts of the stupendous dimensions of the works,
and of new systems of fortifications brAugbt into play. The plain truth
is, that these defences were simple temporary fortifications of rather
greater dimensions than usual, and that not a single new principle of
engineering was developed. It is true, that there were several novel
minor details, such as the rope mantelets, the use of iron tanks, etc.,
but the whole merit consisted in the admirable adaptation of well-
known principles to the peculiar locality and circumstances of the case.
Neither can it be asserted that the plans of the various works were
perfect. On the contrary, there is no impropriety in believing that if
•Todtleben were called upon to do the same work over again, he would
probably introduce better close flanking arrangements.
" These remarks are not Intended to, nor can they, detract from the
reputation of the Russian engineer. His labors and their results will
be banded down in history as the most triumphant and enduring monu-
ment of the value of fortifications, and his name must ever be placed
in the first rank of military engineers. But, in our admiration of the
NOTES. 441
talent and energy of the engineer, it must not be forgotten that the
inert masses which he raised would hare been useless without the skil-
ful artillery and heroic infantry who defended them. Much stronger
places than Sebastopol have often fallen under far less obstinate and
well-combined attacks than that to which it was subjected. There can
be no danger in expressing the conviction that the siege of Sebastopol
called forth the most magnificent defence of forti&cationa that has ever
yet occurred."
We will now pass to the works of attack. When the allies
decided that the works of Sebastopol could not be carried by
a simple-' cannonade and assault,' but must be reduced by a
regular" siege, the first thing to be considered was to secure the
forces covering the siege works from lateral sorties and the
efforts of a relieving army. , The field works planned for this
purpose were not of any great strength, and many of them
"were only undertaken when a narrow escape from some immir
nent danger had demonstrated their neeessit}'." The French
line of defence consisted of eight pentagonal redoubts, con-
nected by an infantry parapet. The English seemed to attach
but little importance to field works for the defence of their
position ; the terrible slaughter at Inkerman was the natural
consequence of this neglect.
In describing the engineering operations of the allies at this
siege, Captain McClelland says ! —
" In regard to the detailed execution of the French attacks, little or
nothing novel is to be observed. Even when coolly examining the
direction of their trenches, after the close of the siege, it was very rare
that a faulty direction could be detectedv; they always afforded excellent
cover, and were well defiladed ; in some cases the excavation of the
double direct sap was carried to the depth of six and a half feet in the
solid rock ! The execution of many of the saps and batteries was
worthy of a school of p-aotice. In the parallels, bomb-proofs were
provided as temporary hospitals, ofiices for the generals on duty, eto
They did not use the sapper armor. The use of the sap-roller was
often attempted, but it could be employed only during the latter part of
the attack upon Jhe Halakoff, when the fire of the Bussian artillery was
nearly extinguished by the mortars ; before that, as soon as a sap-roller
was placed in position — some thirty guns would be brought to bear
upon it, the result being its immediate destruction. It may justly b6
said of the French approaches, that they admirably carried into prac-
442 • NOTES.
tice their system of sapping. The technical skill and patient courage
erinced hj their officers and men in pushing forward such excellent ap-
proaches, under a most deadly fire, is worthy of all commendation, and
is such as might hare been expected from the antecedents of their corps
of engineers.
" With regard to the English, the case was different ; it seemed as
if they systematically abandoned the excellent system taught and per-
fected with so much care at Chatham. Whenever the ground was diffi-
cult, their trenches generally ceased to affi>rd shelter ; a shallow exca-
vation in the rock, and a few stones thrown up in front, appeared to be _
all that was considered necessary in such cases. They were often faulty
in direction as well as in profile, being not un&equently badly defiladed,
or not gaining ground enough and entirely too cramped ; nor were
they pushed as close to the Bedan as they ought to have been before
giving the assault. In too many cases the expression ' tatonnement '
of the French would seem to convey the best Idea of their operations.
Their batteries, however, were very well constructed. The magazines,
platforms, etc., were usually similar to those adopted at Chatham, al-
though unnecessary deviations were sometimes complained of. They
employed neither armor nor the full sap, sometimes the half-full, but
generally the flying-sap were employed."
It may also be added, that, at the time of the assault, the
French approaches had been pushed to the distance of thirty-
two paces of the counterscarp of the MalakofF, while the
English had scarcely reached within two hundred and twenty-
five yards of the ditch of the Redan.
This description of the operations of the English at the
siege of Sebastopol carries the professional reader directly
back to their sieges in the Spanish Peninsula. It certainly is
very strange that a great nation leading the yan of civilization
should, after such experience, have neglected to provide its
army with a proper number of engineer officers and engineer
troops, well instructed in the peculiar and difficult duties
of that arm. What excuse can ever be offered for sub-
stituting human life for professional skill in the operations of
a siege, when that skill may so readily be acquired in time of
peace, and is always so necessary an element of a good military
organization !
While every one admits that the siege of Sebastopol proved
the immense importance of fieidworks against land attacks,
NOTES. ■• 445
some would conclude from the operations of that siege that
good earthen works of a large development are better suited
for the defence of a large city than permanent fortifications
with masonry revetments, and which will necessarily have a
less extended line of flre and less capacity for men and military
stores. We quote the remarks of Captain McClelland on this
point, and also make a short extract from the recently pub-
lished Jourrial of the siege of Sebastopol by General Niel.
Captain McClelland says : —
" This would seem to be the proper place to notice a popular fallacy,
which, for a time at least, gained extensive credence. It was, that the
siege of Sebastopol proved the superiority of temporary (earthen) forti-
fications over those of a permanent nature. It is easy to show that it
proved- nothing of the kind; but that it only proved that temporary
works in the hands of a brave and skillful garrison are susceptible of a
longer defence than was generally supposed. They were attacked as
field works never were before, and were defended as field works never
had been defended. The main difference between properly constructed
permanent fortifications (intended to resist a siege) and temporary
works, is that the latter seldom present an insuperable obstacle against
assault, while the former always do. In addition, permanent works
have a better command over the adjacent country, and are more care-
fully and perfectly planned. The masonry walls, which render an as-
sault impossible, cannot be seen from the distance, and can be de-
stroyed only by establishing batteries on the crest of the glacis, or the
edge of the ditch ; the earthen parapet alone being visible beyond 'that
point, they may, until the besiegers arrive there, be regarded in the
same light as field works, with the difference that the garrison are not
harassed by the necessity of being constantly prepared to repel an
assault.
" Now, in the siege of Sebastopol, the trenches of the besiegers
never reached the edge of the ditch ; so that, had the fortification been
a permanent one, the most difiicult, slow, and dangerous part of the
siege remained to be undertaken, viz., the crowning of the cgvered
way, the establishment of the breach batteries, the descent and passage
of the ditch, and the assault of the breach ; in other words, at the mo-
ment when the weakness of the temporary works became apparent and
fatal, the true strength of the permanent defences would have com-
menced coming into play. ~
" Assuming the progress of the attack to have been as rapid as it was
under existing circumstances, the besiegers, on the 8th of September,
444 NOTBS.
would not yet have been in a condition to crown the covered way, the
siege would certainly hare extended into the winter ; and it may even
be doubted whether the place would eventually have fallen, until the
allies were in sufficient force to invest the north as well as the south
side.''
General Neil remarks : —
" Struck by the length of the siege of Sebastopol, certain foreign
officers hare expressed the opinion that masonry-revetted scarps are not
of incontestable utility in fortified places.
" Sebastopol, a vast retrenched camp, defended by field fortifica-
tions of strong proffie, derived its principal strength from an armament
such as could only exist in an extensive maritime arsenal, and from a
large army which always preserved its free communications with the
interior of Russia.
" If the enceinte had been provided with good revetted scarps ;
if it had been necessary to breach these, and subsequently have been
compelled to penetrate through difficult passages, in rear of whicb the
heads of our columns would have met an army, Sebastopol would have>
been an impregnable fortress.
" When we compare, in effect, the works of attack at Sebastopol
with those of an ordinary siege, we will see that on the 8th of Septem-
ber, 1855, the day of the last assault, we had only executed, after the
greatest effort, the besieging works which precede the crowning of the
cohered way ; we had not then, as yet, entered upon that period of the
works of a siege which is the most difficult and the most murderous ;
and there was no occasion to engage ourselves in them, since the ditches
and parapets of the enceinte were not insurmountable, as the sequel
has proved.
" The difficulty consisted in conquering the Bussiaii army upon a
position prepared long beforehand for its defence, quite as inuch as in
Surmounting the material obstacle of the fortification.
" Our places of arms being established at thirty metres from the
besieged works, we were able to choose our own time for action, and to
throw ourselves unexpectedly upon the enemy when the fire of our ar-
tilleiy had forced him to shelter himself, up to the last minute, behind
his numerous blindages ; to have gone further would have been inviting
the initiative in the attack on the part of the Russian army.
" The absence of scarp walls, which would have secured the place
from escalade, did not exercise a less influence upon the defence;
for the besieged were compelled to keep permanently at the gorges
of the works, strong reserves, in readiness to repulse the assault,
which they saw themselves menaced with from the commencement ot
the siege.
NOTES. 445
" Finally, it can be remarked, that these reserves, -which were deci-
mated night and day by the concentric fire of our batteries, were able
to issue out from the enceinte through wide debouches, without having
to pass through the narrow defiles which are formed by the draw-
bridges of revetted places ; they were, then, a permanent threat for the
besiegers, who were exposed to seeing their trenches unexpectedly in-
vaded by the greater part of the Russian army.
" Neither side, consequently, was in a position analogous to that
which is presented in the siege of a fortified place, protected from insult
by good masonry scarps.' (Note to page 4i3.)
And again, page 423, the same authority remaiks :
"Now, it (the Kussian army) is no longer able to escape from the
concentric fires of our batteries ; for, not hei/ng protected ly masonry
ecarps, it is obliged constantly to keep united strong reserves, in order
to repulse the assault with which it ia at every instant menaced,' "
NOTK TO CHAPTER XV.— Military Edttoation, &c.
With regard to the subjects discussed in this chapter it will,
perhaps, be sufficient to remark that the Mexican war incon-
testably proved the value of the West Point Military Academy ;
for the superior efficiency of properly-educated officers over
those who had been appointed from civil life without any
knowledge of the profession they were called upon to practice,
fully satisfied the country of the importance of that institution,
and even silenced the clamors of the few who refused to be
convinced.
The recent abortive attempt to give efficiency to our navy
by means of a retired list, has, it is feared, destroyed for a
time all hopes of introducing this very necessary measure into
our military service ; although it is very certain that without
this we can never have our system of promotion placed upon
an effective and satisfactory basis, which shall give efficiency to
the army by rewarding merit, while it prevents injustice by
closing the avenues of political favoritism.
The Mexican war also most abundantly proved that our
38
446 NOTES.
objections to Ijhe system of military appointment were well
founded, and it is hoped that the more recent abuses of that
system will call public attention to the necessiiy of a change;
for if miUtary office continue to be conferred for partisan ser-
vices, it will soon destroy the integrity as well as the efficiency
of our army.
EXPLANATION OF PLATES.
Figs. 1, S, 3. — ^Used to illustrate the strategic relations of the
armies A and B.
Fig. 4. — Line of operations directed against the extremity of the
enemy's line of defence, as was done by Napoleon in the
Marengo campaign.
Fig. 5. — ^Napoleon's plan of campaign in 1800, for the army of the
Rhine, and the army of reserve.
Fig. 6 shows the plein adopted by Napoleon in the campaign of
1800, to preserve his communications.
Fig. 7 illustrates the same thing in the campeiign of 1806.
Fig. 8. — Interior and central Ime of operations.
Fig. 9 represents a camp of a grand division of an army. The
distance from the front row of tents to the line of camp-
guards should be from 350 to 400 feet ; thence to the line
of posts, from 150 to 200 feet ; thence to the line of sen-
tinels, from 100 to 200 feet. In meiny cases, the line of
posts between the camp-guards and sentinels may be dis-
pensed with. The distance between battalions will be
from 50 to 100 feet ; and the same between squadrons
and batteries.
Fig. 10. — ^Details of encampment for a battalion of infantry. The
width of company streets will depend upon the strength
of a company, and will be so arranged that the front of
the camp shall not exceed the length of the battalion,
when drawn up in line of battle. This width will be from
50 to 100 feet. The distance between the tents of each
row will be 2 or 3 feet ; the distance between the tents of
one company and those of another, from 4 to 6 feet-
Fig. 11 is the camp of a squadron of cavahy. A single company
encamping alone, would be arranged in the same way as
an entire squadron. The horses eire picketed in two lines
parallel to the tents, and at a distance from them of about
12 feet. The forage is placed between the tents. A squad-
ron of two companies will occupy a front of about 180
feet. The fires, or company kitchens, should be 50 or 60
feet in rear of the non-commissioned officers' tents.
448 MILITARY ART AND SCIENCE.
Fig 12 ia the camp of two batteries of foot artillery, or two com'
panies of foot en^eers.
[Tlie plan of encampment for artillery, as giren in the
" Instruction of U. S. Field Artillery, horse and foot," may
be employed where a single battery encamps by itself, or
where only the skeleton pf companies J^, maintained ; but
it wiJI be found exceedingly inconvenient, where a full
batteiy, with a large, train, encamps on the same line with
other troops. The plan we have given is th»t which is em-
ployed in most European services.]
Fig. 13. — In this plan for mounted artillery and engiQeers, the fires
are so arranged as to expose the ammunition as Uttle aa
possible to the sparks &oim the kitcliens.
Fig. 14. — Simple parallel order of battle.
15. — Parallel orider,; vifitl) a crochet on the flank.
16. — ^F^allel order, reinforced on a wing.
17.— parallel order, reinforce^ on the centre.
18. — Simple ob]ique order.
19. — ^ObUque order, reinforced on the assailing wing.
20. — Perpendicular order.
, 21..-^pncave order. \ . » ■
S3. — Convex order.
23. — Order by echelon on a wing.
S4. — Order by echelon on the centre.
25^— Combined order of attack.
26.; — Formation of infantry )}y two deployed lines.
37, 38.— Arrangements corresponding to depth of column.
29. — Formation hy squares.
30.— Mixf d formation of t]|irpe battalions.
31. — ^Peep formation of heavy columns.
32. — Formation in columns by brigade.
331^ — Formation of two brigades of cavaby, by the mixed
system-
34. — Passage of the Sound by the British fleet, in 1807.
35. — lAttack on Copenhagen.
36.— Attack on, Algiers.
37. — Attack on San; Juan d'UlIoa.
38. — ^Attack on ^. Jean d' Acre.
39<— PlEUi of a regulair bastioned front of a fortification.
40. — Section of do. do.
41.^ — ^Tenaillous.
EXPLANATION OF PLATES. 449
Fig. 42. — Demi-tenaillons, with a bounet.
43. — ^A ham-work.
44. — A crown-work ^
45. — A redan.
46. — A lunette.
47. — ^A mitre or piieet-cap.
48. — A bastioned fort
49. — ^Verticed section of a field intrenchment
50. — Simple eap.
51. — ^Flying sap.
52.— Full sap.
53. — Crater of a military mine.
54. — Flan of the attack of a regular bastioned work.
T„i .'
i-^"^
n-
^
A
B
^i
A
F,y 3
QiLo/reJrroRQi
Oiy„
L 4
«SSgj»g
■ I'optjl'ion
V ■SI'Kiwf /^AjOnMfWfBP "«1 111
■Mrf/i S'et
^
^
'v o G&rt' \
lieip^ic
1
Tr&fic/i^
French hase on. ffte^ .JWcart
/'}?/ /J
Fu,. /4
S'rpiadrrM i//^' Cava/rr
®
O/n/p^^ O/Twerp
J^iehl Of^icp/^s-
"~T
Off,
l'ir^-.^.i
J'v^ .?S.
ii'AJIi/r-MltmA
"**ssa^
^'-^
%
^&~17
-^^i:i
cas-
J—
^^4?r«
^'-1^
'^'^^'^^W
-- —
-~-c:d-
^<^
~'-,^
-'^'^r//^^
\/
"■--,
"' -~
- '
/'If/ 8'/
Z^-
/
/
/•-..
/>!(/. '36'
i ■"'" a
■Vr»c'.«»./i'""j:w/wia«- tVi'i'
-- ■ilaff Sc
Cbmfty. Ofi'weTTi'.
MeUrMcers
Rg'IZ.
2 Gimps-ufFeot ^ty orSnffrs.
It
-oo
WMmjjy.(^M
^azn-
' © t ^ ®
(hrrtfJV- O/B:
Tra^i.
;®]iiiniii: *\
O/BofXmn
FwU OK.
'',in i/ '